summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/67869-0.txt6850
-rw-r--r--old/67869-0.zipbin114379 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67869-h.zipbin298309 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67869-h/67869-h.htm9305
-rw-r--r--old/67869-h/images/cover.jpgbin84393 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67869-h/images/cover_illo.jpgbin55293 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67869-h/images/i005.jpgbin34257 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/67869-h/images/publishers_icon.jpgbin3804 -> 0 bytes
11 files changed, 17 insertions, 16155 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..c1c7b41
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #67869 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/67869)
diff --git a/old/67869-0.txt b/old/67869-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index f8e995f..0000000
--- a/old/67869-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,6850 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg eBook of Love Conquers Pride, by Mrs. Alex.
-McVeigh Miller
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you
-will have to check the laws of the country where you are located before
-using this eBook.
-
-Title: Love Conquers Pride
- or, Where Peace Dwelt
-
-Author: Mrs. Alex. McVeigh Miller
-
-Release Date: April 18, 2022 [eBook #67869]
-
-Language: English
-
-Produced by: Demian Katz, Craig Kirkwood, and the Online Distributed
- Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (Images courtesy
- of the Digital Library@Villanova University.)
-
-*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK LOVE CONQUERS PRIDE ***
-
-
-Transcriber’s Notes:
-
-Text enclosed by underscores is in italics (_italics_).
-
-Additional Transcriber’s Notes are at the end.
-
- * * * * *
-
-NEW EAGLE SERIES No. 1164
-
-LOVE CONQUERS PRIDE
-
-_BY MRS. ALEX. McVEIGH MILLER_
-
-[Illustration]
-
- * * * * *
-
-POPULAR COPYRIGHTS
-
-New Eagle Series
-
-PRICE, FIFTEEN CENTS
-
-Carefully Selected Love Stories
-
-_Note the Authors!_
-
-There is such a profusion of good books in this list, that it is an
-impossibility to urge you to select any particular title or author’s
-work. All that we can say is that any line that contains the complete
-works of Mrs. Georgie Sheldon, Charles Garvice, Mrs. Harriet Lewis,
-May Agnes Fleming, Wenona Gilman, Mrs. Alex. McVeigh Miller, and other
-writers of the same type, is worthy of your attention, especially when
-the price has been set at 15 cents the volume.
-
-These books range from 256 to 320 pages. They are printed from good
-type, and are readable from start to finish.
-
-If you are looking for clean-cut, honest value, then we state most
-emphatically that you will find it in this line.
-
-_ALL TITLES ALWAYS IN PRINT_
-
- 1--Queen Bess By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon
- 2--Ruby’s Reward By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon
- 7--Two Keys By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon
- 9--The Virginia Heiress By May Agnes Fleming
- 12--Edrie’s Legacy By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon
- 17--Leslie’s Loyalty By Charles Garvice
- (His Love So True)
- 22--Elaine By Charles Garvice
- 24--A Wasted Love By Charles Garvice
- (On Love’s Altar)
- 41--Her Heart’s Desire By Charles Garvice
- (An Innocent Girl)
- 44--That Dowdy By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon
- 50--Her Ransom By Charles Garvice
- (Paid For)
- 55--Thrice Wedded By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon
- 66--Witch Hazel By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon
- 70--Sydney By Charles Garvice
- (A Wilful Young Woman)
- 73--The Marquis By Charles Garvice
- 77--Tina By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon
- 79--Out of the Past By Charles Garvice
- (Marjorie)
- 84--Imogene By Charles Garvice
- (Dumaresq’s Temptation)
- 85--Lorrie; or, Hollow Gold By Charles Garvice
- 88--Virgie’s Inheritance By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon
- 95--A Wilful Maid By Charles Garvice
- (Philippa)
- 98--Claire By Charles Garvice
- (The Mistress of Court Regna)
- 99--Audrey’s Recompense By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon
- 102--Sweet Cymbeline By Charles Garvice
- (Bellmaire)
- 109--Signa’s Sweetheart By Charles Garvice
- (Lord Delamere’s Bride)
- 111--Faithful Shirley By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon
- 117--She Loved Him By Charles Garvice
- 119--’Twixt Smile and Tear By Charles Garvice
- (Dulcie)
- 122--Grazia’s Mistake By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon
- 130--A Passion Flower By Charles Garvice
- (Madge)
- 133--Max By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon
- 136--The Unseen Bridegroom By May Agnes Fleming
- 138--A Fatal Wooing By Laura Jean Libbey
- 141--Lady Evelyn By May Agnes Fleming
- 144--Dorothy’s Jewels By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon
- 146--Magdalen’s Vow By May Agnes Fleming
- 151--The Heiress of Glen Gower By May Agnes Fleming
- 155--Nameless Dell By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon
- 157--Who Wins By May Agnes Fleming
- 166--The Masked Bridal By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon
- 168--Thrice Lost, Thrice Won By May Agnes Fleming
- 174--His Guardian Angel By Charles Garvice
- 177--A True Aristocrat By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon
- 181--The Baronet’s Bride By May Agnes Fleming
- 188--Dorothy Arnold’s Escape By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon
- 199--Geoffrey’s Victory By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon
- 203--Only One Love By Charles Garvice
- 210--Wild Oats By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon
- 213--The Heiress of Egremont By Mrs. Harriet Lewis
- 215--Only a Girl’s Love By Charles Garvice
- 219--Lost: A Pearle By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon
- 222--The Lily of Mordaunt By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon
- 223--Leola Dale’s Fortune By Charles Garvice
- 231--The Earl’s Heir By Charles Garvice
- (Lady Norah)
- 233--Nora By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon
- 236--Her Humble Lover By Charles Garvice
- (The Usurper; or, The Gipsy Peer)
- 242--A Wounded Heart By Charles Garvice
- (Sweet as a Rose)
- 244--A Hoiden’s Conquest By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon
-
-
-
-
-Love Conquers Pride
-
-
- OR,
- WHERE PEACE DWELT
-
- BY
- MRS. ALEX. McVEIGH MILLER
-
- Author of “The Man She Hated,” “A Married Flirt,” “Loyal
- Unto Death,” “Only a Kiss”--published in the NEW EAGLE
- SERIES.
-
- [Illustration]
-
- STREET & SMITH CORPORATION
- PUBLISHERS
- 79-89 Seventh Avenue, New York
-
- * * * * *
-
- Copyright, 1888
-
- NORMAN L. MUNRO
- Renewal for 28 years, from
- November 8, 1916, granted
- to Mrs. Alex. McVeigh
- Miller
-
- Love Conquers Pride
-
-(Printed in the United States of America)
-
- * * * * *
-
-LOVE CONQUERS PRIDE.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER I. A PRETTY FACTORY GIRL.
-
-
-Pretty Pansy lay lazily in the hammock at the foot of the lawn, and
-listened to the south wind rushing through the tree tops overhead,
-thinking to herself, with a blush, that it seemed to be whispering a
-name--whispering it over and over:
-
-“Norman Wylde!”
-
-At the top of the green, sloping lawn stood a big white farmhouse,
-with long porches shaded by rose vines and honeysuckles. Pansy’s uncle
-and aunt lived there, and she had come on a month’s visit to them. The
-month was slipping away very fast now, and she must soon return to
-her work in Richmond, for Pansy Laurens was no pampered favorite of
-fortune, but an employee of one of the great tobacco factories.
-
-Pansy was only fifteen when her father, a machinist at the Tredegar
-Works, had died and left his wife and five children penniless, save for
-what they could earn by the labor of their own hands. Pansy was the
-eldest, and her mother had to take her from school that the labor of
-her little white hands might help to earn the family support.
-
-Nothing offered but the tobacco factories, and Pansy went there, while
-her brother Willie found work as a cash boy in a dry-goods store on
-Broad Street. The three younger ones, being too small to work, were
-continued at school, while the mother took in sewing to help eke out
-the family income.
-
-It was hard on them all, most especially on Pansy, who was so
-intelligent and refined, and who hated to leave school and toil at
-repulsive tasks among companions who were mostly uncongenial, for,
-although some of the girls were sweet and pretty as herself, others
-were coarse and rude, and sneered at her, calling her proud and
-ambitious, although they knew at heart that they were only jealous of
-the lovely face, so round and dimpled, with its big purplish-blue eyes,
-shaded by such a beautiful fringe of long black curling lashes.
-
-They all envied her that fair face and those silky masses of wavy dark
-hair that made such a becoming frame for the transparent white skin,
-with its wild-rose tints and delicate tracery of blue veins.
-
-But, pretty or ugly, it did not matter, the girl said to herself
-sometimes, with bitter discontent, as she looked at her fair reflection
-in the mirror. She was nothing but a factory girl, after all, and there
-were people who looked down on her for that act as if the very sound
-were the essence of vulgarity. To have been a shopgirl even, or a
-dressmaker, or milliner, would have been far more genteel, she said to
-herself.
-
-This was the first time in three years that she had got away from the
-factory, and she would not have done so then if she had not been given
-a furlough from work because there was a temporary dullness in trade.
-
-Then Uncle Robbins had come to Richmond from his country home on a
-little business, and, struck by her pale cheeks and air of languor,
-invited her to go home with him. Mother urged her to accept the
-invitation, declaring that she could get along without her, and Pansy
-went gladly away on her little summer holiday, which was now drawing to
-an end.
-
-Her heart was full of this as she swung to and fro in the hammock
-beneath the trees, and listened to the wind rustling the leaves so
-musically, seeming to murmur over and over that name so dear to her
-heart:
-
-“Norman Wylde!”
-
-He was a summer boarder at her aunt’s, and he had been kind to her, not
-cool and supercilious like the others, who looked down upon her because
-she was a working girl.
-
-Pansy thought him the handsomest man she had ever seen, and she was
-grateful to him for the courteous way in which he treated her, never
-seeming to realize any difference in the social position of herself and
-Miss Ives, the Richmond belle, who was here with her mother because
-the doctors had tabooed any gayety for the elderly lady this summer on
-account of a serious heart trouble.
-
-Juliette Ives was as much in love with the handsome young gentleman as
-Pansy herself, and she sneered at the factory girl in her cheap lawns
-and ginghams.
-
-“Actually setting herself up as an equal among her aunt’s boarders,”
-she said disdainfully. “I mean to put her down at once, and let her
-know that we do not desire her company.”
-
-So she boldly asked Pansy if she could hire her to do the washing for
-her mother and herself.
-
-“I am not a servant,” Pansy answered, flushing angrily.
-
-“You are a factory girl, aren’t you?” disdainfully.
-
-“Yes, but not a servant.”
-
-“I don’t see much difference,” said the rich girl insolently; and from
-that moment the two were open enemies.
-
-Juliette Ives knew in her own heart that her spiteful actions had
-been the outcome of jealousy because Norman Wylde had looked so
-admiringly at Pansy when he first met her, and Pansy was quick enough
-to understand the truth.
-
-“She is in love with him, and is jealous of me, in spite of my poverty
-and my lonely position. Very well, I’ll pay her back for her scorn, if
-I can,” she resolved, with girlish pique.
-
-And as she possessed beauty equal to, if not greater than, Juliette’s
-blond charms, and was fairly well educated and intelligent, she had
-some advantages, at least, with which to enter the lists with the
-aristocratic belle who scorned her so openly.
-
-And Norman Wylde, who had a noble, chivalrous nature, could not help
-taking Pansy’s part when he saw how the boarders tried to put her down.
-
-“Poor little thing! It’s a shame, for she is as sweet and pretty as a
-wild rose, and they ought to be friendly with her and help to brighten
-her hard lot,” he thought, with indignation.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER II. LOVE ALL HIS OWN.
-
-
-The boarders had organized a fishing party, and everybody had gone,
-even Mr. Wylde, so it was very quiet at the farmhouse. Aunt Robbins and
-her servants were busy making preserves, and Uncle Robbins was in the
-meadow, hauling and stacking the wheat he had cut a few days before.
-Pansy had helped to peel apples for the preserves until her back ached
-and her hands smarted, so at last Aunt Robbins sent her out to rest.
-
-“I shan’t need you any more to-day, so you had better go and take a nap
-in the hammock before that stuck-up Jule Ives comes to turn you out of
-it,” said the good woman.
-
-Pansy went out, but she took off her calico dress and gingham apron
-first, and donned her prettiest dress, an organdie lawn with a white
-ground sprigged with blue flowers. A pretty bow of blue ribbon fastened
-the white lace at her throat, and another one tied back the mass
-of rippling dark hair from the white temples, leaving just a few
-bewitching love locks to curl over the white brow. Thus attired, she
-looked exquisitely fair, cool, and charming, and she knew well that
-when the boarders returned, tired and hot from the day’s amusements,
-they would envy her sweet, comfortable appearance.
-
-She was not disappointed, for by and by, when they came trooping
-through the big white gate close by her, every one stopped and stared,
-and Miss Ives exclaimed, in a loud, sarcastic voice:
-
-“Good gracious, is it Sunday?”
-
-“Why, no, of course not, Juliette,” said Chattie Norwood. “Why, what
-made you think of such a funny thing?”
-
-“Why, Pansy Laurens has on her Sunday dress, that’s all,” with a loud
-laugh.
-
-“Oh, pshaw! Her other one is in the washtub,” tittered Miss Norwood,
-and every word came distinctly to Pansy’s ears. An angry impulse
-prompted her to make some scathing reply, but an innate delicacy
-restrained her, and she would not lift her beautiful, drooping lashes
-from the book she pretended to be reading, although the angry color
-deepened to crimson on her cheeks.
-
-The tittering party passed on toward the house, but, although Pansy
-did not look up, she was conscious that one had lingered and stopped.
-It was Norman Wylde, and he came up to the hammock, and said gently:
-
-“Poor little Pansy!”
-
-Her sweet lips quivered, and she looked up, meeting the tender,
-sympathetic gaze of his splendid dark eyes.
-
-“You are a brave little girl,” he continued warmly. “I was glad that
-you proved yourself too much of a lady to reply to their coarse sneers.
-Your sweet dignity makes me love you all the more.”
-
-Pansy gave a little start of surprise and rapture. Did he indeed love
-her? The color flamed up brightly on her delicate cheeks, and the
-lashes drooped bashfully over her eyes.
-
-“Look at me, Pansy,” said the young man, in a tone made up of tender
-command and fond entreaty. “You are not surprised. You guessed that I
-loved you, didn’t you?”
-
-“No. I was afraid that--that you loved Miss Ives,” she faltered, and a
-frown darkened his handsome face.
-
-“Do not speak to me of her,” he said impatiently. “Who could love her
-after the meanness and injustice of her conduct to you?” He imprisoned
-both her little hands in his, as he continued ardently: “Pansy, do you
-love me, my little darling?”
-
-A bashful glance from the sweet blue eyes answered his question, and,
-stooping down, he was about to press a kiss on her beautiful lips when
-a stealthy footstep came up behind them, and an angry voice exclaimed:
-
-“Really, Mr. Wylde, when you want to flirt with factory girls you
-should not choose such a public place, especially when the girl you are
-engaged to is close at hand.”
-
-He started backward as if shot, and Pansy sprang from the hammock with
-a shriek:
-
-“It is false!”
-
-Juliette Ives laughed scornfully, and replied:
-
-“Ask him. He will not deny it.”
-
-Pretty Pansy, with a face that had grown white as a lily, turned to
-Norman Wylde.
-
-“Is it true? Are you engaged to her?” she demanded sharply.
-
-“Yes, but----”
-
-“That is enough!” interrupted Pansy, with flashing eyes. She would
-not let him finish his sentence, so keen was her resentment at his
-trifling, as she deemed it; and, looking scornfully at him, she said:
-
-“Never presume to speak to me again, sir!”
-
-Then she walked rapidly from the spot, and Norman Wylde and Juliette
-Ives stood looking at each other with angry eyes.
-
-“Are you not ashamed of yourself?” she cried indignantly.
-
-“Eavesdropper!” he retorted passionately, forgetting his
-gentlemanliness in his resentment at her conduct.
-
-“Traitor!” she retorted defiantly, then burst out fiercely: “Call me
-what names you will, I have borne your trifling until I could bear no
-more. If you wanted to flirt, why couldn’t you have chosen some one in
-your own station in life, instead of that miserable tobacco-factory
-girl?”
-
-He had folded his arms across his chest, and was listening with a sneer
-to her angry speech. When she paused he answered, in a low yet distinct
-voice:
-
-“I beg your pardon. It was not flirting, but earnest.”
-
-A sharp remonstrance sprang to her lips, but, without taking any note
-of it, he continued coldly:
-
-“I had a fancy for you once, Juliette, but it perished when I saw how
-mean and base you could be to a less fortunate sister woman. I have
-watched you and your clique, Juliette, and I have been ashamed of
-you all--ashamed and indignant, and my heart turned away from you to
-that sweet persecuted girl with a deeper tenderness than it ever felt
-before. I made up my mind to snap the bonds that held me as your slave,
-and to win her for my own. But I acted prematurely in declaring my love
-for her first. You drove me to it with your unwomanly conduct of a
-little while ago, else I had not been so hasty.”
-
-She stood staring at him with angry incredulity, wondering if he spoke
-the truth, if he really meant to throw her over for the sake of a girl
-he had barely known a month.
-
-“What if I refuse to give you your freedom?” she asked harshly.’
-
-“You would not wish to hold an unwilling captive,” he replied, with
-a touch of scorn, and she saw that it would be impossible to hold him
-without a sacrifice of her pride. Curbing herself a little, she asked
-humbly:
-
-“Hadn’t we better take time to think it over, Norman? I admit I was
-jealous and a little hasty.”
-
-He looked disappointed and uneasy. Was she really going to hold him to
-that bond of which he was so weary, against which he chafed so fiercely?
-
-She caught that look, and comprehended it with bitter mortification.
-Anger came to her aid. “Go--you are free as air, and I am well rid of a
-fickle flirt,” she exclaimed hotly.
-
-“I thank you, Miss Ives,” he replied, in a tone of relief, and, bowing
-coldly, he walked away toward the house, leaving Juliette stamping on
-the soft grass in a tempest of fury and disappointment.
-
-He was anxious to find little Pansy and explain his conduct to her.
-Surely she would forgive him when she knew that it was for her sake he
-had broken faith with Juliette Ives. Of course she would be ready to
-make up with him.
-
-And his heart throbbed madly at the thought that sweet Pansy’s love
-was all his own. He knew that there would be a bitter battle with his
-relatives, but he was determined to make her his wife.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER III. A JEALOUS RAGE.
-
-
-Juliette Ives rushed up to the house presently and poured the story of
-her lover’s treachery into the ears of her mother, who became quite
-indignant at the turn affairs were taking.
-
-“I will go at once to the farmer’s wife, and give her a piece of my
-mind about her impudent niece,” she said, and she went immediately
-to Mrs. Robbins, who was in the pantry, labeling the nice jars of
-preserves she had made that day.
-
-“I have come to complain of your niece, that bold factory girl, who has
-been making trouble between my daughter and the gentleman she’s engaged
-to,” she began.
-
-Mrs. Robbins looked around in amazement.
-
-“What has Pansy done, ma’am, to be called sech names?” she exclaimed,
-rather resentfully; and then Mrs. Ives poured out a garbled version of
-poor Pansy’s flirtation with Norman Wylde, making it appear that she
-was a bold, forward creature, who had actually forced the gentleman to
-pay her attention.
-
-“Maybe she thinks he will marry her and make her a fine lady, but she’s
-mistaken,” she sneered. “It’s only a way he has of flirting, but it
-means nothing, as many a poor girl in Richmond and elsewhere knows
-to her cost. He’s very wild, but he promised my daughter, when she
-accepted him, that he would reform. I believe he was trying to do so,
-but when Pansy Laurens kept throwing herself in his way he couldn’t
-resist the temptation to make a fool of her. So when my daughter caught
-him kissing the girl, just now, in the hammock, she discarded him at
-once, and he’s so angry he’ll maybe fall into some mischief that will
-make Pansy Laurens rue the day she ever saw him. If I were you, Mrs.
-Robbins, I’d send the girl home to her mother at once,” she advised
-eagerly.
-
-Mrs. Robbins sat silent, gravely cogitating. She was a large, fleshy
-woman, good-natured, and slow to anger. It did not occur to her to fly
-into a passion and resent Mrs. Ives’ harsh opinion of Pansy.
-
-On the contrary, to her calm, equable nature, it seemed best to weigh
-the pros and cons in the case. Besides, Pansy was her husband’s niece,
-not hers, and she had no special fondness for the girl, whom she had
-never seen till this summer.
-
-Mrs. Ives watched her closely, and, seeing how quietly she had taken
-everything, took heart to continue pouring out her venom.
-
-“I’m afraid that girl is going to make you lots of trouble,” she
-ventured. “She will want to hang on to Mr. Wylde, of course.”
-
-Mrs. Robbins turned her large, ruminating eyes on the lady’s face, and
-remarked:
-
-“Perhaps he means fair. Rich men have married poor geerls before now.
-And Pansy Laurens is a good-looking geerl--as pritty as your Jule, I
-think, ma’am.”
-
-Mrs. Ives grew quite red in the face with anger, but she restrained
-herself, hoping to mold the simple-minded woman to her will. Shaking
-her head vehemently, she replied:
-
-“Ah, you don’t know the Wyldes! They are the proudest people in
-Richmond, rich and fashionable, and belong to one of the oldest
-families in Virginia. All of them have been professional men, and
-they consider working people as no better than their servants. If
-Norman Wylde was fool enough to want to marry a mechanic’s daughter
-and a working girl, which you may be sure he isn’t, his folks would
-disinherit him, and never speak to him again.”
-
-Mrs. Robbins shook her head and sighed.
-
-“I hate to think of my husband’s niece a-being in sech a scrape. Ef
-she’s been bold and forrard, ma’am, I never noticed it.”
-
-“Of course not. She was too sly,” sneered Mrs. Ives. “But I see you’re
-bound to take her part, Mrs. Robbins, and I’ll say no more, only this:
-If disgrace comes on your family through that audacious piece, remember
-I warned you.”
-
-“I’ll talk to Mr. Robbins,” was the only answer from the woman of few
-words.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IV. THE BIRD FLIES.
-
-
-Meanwhile poor Pansy, half crazed with shame and grief, was sobbing
-forlornly up in her little chamber under the eaves.
-
-She believed that Norman Wylde had been amusing himself with her, and
-the thought was agony to her fond, loving heart.
-
-“I loved him so! Oh, I loved him so! And it was cruel, cruel for him
-to deceive me,” she moaned bitterly, while the shame of it all weighed
-heavily on her sensitive spirit.
-
-Suddenly the hired girl, a bright mulatto, put her head into the room,
-and started at seeing Pansy lying on the floor in tears.
-
-“Lor’, Miss Pansy, what’s de matter? You sick?” she exclaimed.
-
-“No--yes. What do you want, Sue?” fretfully.
-
-“Mr. Wylde tole me to tole you to come downsta’rs. He wants to tell you
-sumfin.”
-
-Pansy’s blue eyes flashed through their tears.
-
-“Tell him I won’t come, that I don’t want to see him!” she replied
-spiritedly.
-
-Norman Wylde sighed when he received the message, and turned away
-without a word. Going to his room, he dashed off a hasty letter to
-Pansy, explaining everything, and begged her consent to become his
-wife. Then he went down, and, finding Sue alone in the kitchen, gave
-her the letter to take to Pansy, liberally rewarding her for the
-service.
-
-Just outside Pansy’s door she came upon Juliette Ives, who said
-carelessly:
-
-“Give me that letter. I’ll hand it to Pansy.”
-
-She held up her hand, with a silver piece shining in its palm. Sue
-snapped at the bait, and immediately delivered up the precious letter,
-which Miss Ives hid in her pocket, then ran away to her own room.
-
-Her pale-blue eyes sparkled with fury as she read the tender love
-letter Norman Wylde had written to Pansy.
-
-“She shall never be his wife if I can prevent it!” she vowed bitterly.
-
-The impatient lover waited in vain for a reply to his letter, for Pansy
-did not come down that evening, and when he arose, very early the next
-morning, he learned, to his dismay, that Farmer Robbins had taken his
-niece away on the midnight train.
-
-He went impatiently to Mrs. Robbins, and she told him, in her cool,
-straightforward way, that Mr. Robbins had taken Pansy away because he
-did not approve of her flirting with young men.
-
-“But, my dear madam, my intentions were strictly honorable. I wished to
-marry Pansy,” he expostulated.
-
-“You are engaged to Miss Ives, ain’t you?” she returned curtly.
-
-“I was, but I am no longer. I broke off with her that I might ask Pansy
-Laurens to marry me.”
-
-He seemed so manly and straightforward that Mrs. Robbins must have
-been forced to believe in his sincerity had not her mind been poisoned
-beforehand by the slanders of Mrs. Ives. But the poison had done its
-work, and she looked on him as a liar and a libertine. So she answered
-curtly again:
-
-“Rich young men like you, Mr. Wylde, don’t marry poor working geerls
-like little Pansy Laurens. I’ve heerd all about your character from
-Mrs. Ives, sir, and I know you didn’t mean any good to Pansy, so her
-uncle up and took her away out o’ harm’s reach.”
-
-His black eyes flashed with anger.
-
-“I shall follow her!” he exclaimed hotly, and rushed out on the lawn,
-where Mrs. Ives was leisurely promenading under the trees.
-
-She cowered a little when she saw his handsome face so pale with anger,
-and his burning dark eyes fixed on her with such resentful passion.
-
-Controlling his fierce anger by a strong effort of will, he advanced
-toward her, and said, with forced calmness:
-
-“I am curious to know, Mrs. Ives, what kind of character you have
-given me to Mrs. Robbins, since it had the effect of incensing her so
-bitterly against me?”
-
-She tossed up her head defiantly, and replied:
-
-“It was your flirting with her niece that angered Mrs. Robbins.”
-
-His brow darkened, and he waved his hand, as if thrusting aside her
-petty subterfuge.
-
-“Mrs. Robbins told me that she had had my character from you.”
-
-“Oh, pshaw! What was the foolish creature thinking of?” cried the
-lady airily. “She asked me about you, and I merely said that you were
-fickle-minded--that was all. You will grant that I had room to say that
-much, after your treatment of my daughter?”
-
-He recoiled from the envenomed thrust, and turned away, with a cold
-bow. He felt sure that she had said much more, but she was not a
-man--he could not force her to answer for the slanders she had uttered
-against him.
-
-As he left her side, Juliette approached eagerly, and inquired what
-Norman had said. Mrs. Ives repeated it, and added, with a chuckle of
-triumph:
-
-“He did not believe me, but he dared not say so.”
-
-“Have you written to the Wyldes, mamma?”
-
-“Yes; and colored the whole affair as highly as possible.”
-
-“You do not believe they will allow him to marry that upstart girl?”
-
-“No, indeed; for I have given her a fine character, you may be sure,”
-replied the heartless woman complacently.
-
-“I should die of spite if he married her,” cried Juliette jealously.
-
-“He will not marry her, my dear, for I am determined to thwart her, if
-possible. I have poisoned the minds of all her relations against him,
-and they will be sure to keep him at a distance. Besides, you said
-yourself that she was angry with him, and declared she would never
-speak to him again.”
-
-“Yes; but if he had a chance to explain----”
-
-“They will have no chance to explain. Their relations will keep them
-apart,” interrupted her mother firmly.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER V. THE LOVER REAPPEARS.
-
-
-Arnell & Grey, the firm at whose immense tobacco factory Pansy
-Laurens worked, were noted for their kindness and liberality to their
-employees. Every year they planned and carried out, at their own
-expense, some pleasant entertainment, to which every one in the factory
-was cordially invited; and this summer it took the form of a delightful
-excursion.
-
-A crowded steamer carried the large number of employees down the James
-River, and a fine band furnished music for the gay young people, who
-danced all day upon the deck, under the blue sky and bright sunlight of
-August. Downstairs a dinner was waiting, and nothing that could conduce
-to the pleasure of the occasion had been forgotten by Arnell & Grey,
-who delighted in the success of their generous undertakings.
-
-Pansy Laurens went, of course--naughty Pansy, who had been in disgrace
-for a month with her relations, on account of her crime of stealing a
-rich girl’s lover away. Yes, it was almost five weeks now since Uncle
-Robbins had taken Pansy back to Richmond and told her mother sternly
-that he was sorry he had ever taken her away, since she had made
-serious trouble among his boarders, and flirted boldly with a young man
-who was engaged to another girl.
-
-He had brought her home to get her out of harm’s way, he said, and he
-advised his sister to keep a sharp lookout upon the willful girl, as
-Norman Wylde had vowed he would follow her to Richmond.
-
-Mrs. Laurens expressed herself to her brother as being ashamed of her
-daughter’s bad conduct, and determined to keep her in strict bounds
-hereafter.
-
-She scolded Pansy, and threatened to lock her in her room on bread and
-water if she ever spoke to that dangerous young man again.
-
-Poor Pansy could do nothing but tell her own side of the story.
-
-She had not been bold and forward. She had not known Norman Wylde was
-engaged to anybody, and she did not know that he was amusing himself
-only, when he made love to her in those bright summer days. When she
-found out that he was only flirting she had told him never to speak to
-her again.
-
-“Stick to that, little gal, and there won’t be no more trouble,” said
-Uncle Robbins approvingly.
-
-“Yes; don’t let him come near you again as long as you live,” added
-Mrs. Robbins sharply, and Pansy thought to herself that she never would.
-
-She was overwhelmed with shame and grief at this pitiless exposé of
-her futile love dream, and down in her little heart was a secret
-resentment, too, at the hardness of everybody. Why should they declare
-that she had been bold and forward? She knew that it was untrue, and
-their blame cut deep into the sensitive heart. Norman Wylde, too--how
-could he have been so cruel, so unkind? Her pillow was wet with tears
-every night as she strove through long, sleepless hours to banish from
-memory the false, sweet smiles and loving dark eyes that haunted her
-and made so hard the bitter task she was essaying.
-
-She was not among the dancers to-day, although she was the prettiest
-girl on board, and had many invitations from gallant young men. But
-she chose rather to sit leaning pensively over the handrail and gaze
-with grave blue eyes into the foamy depths of the water. Many eyes
-wandered to the pretty figure in the snowy-white dress and wide,
-daisy-trimmed straw hat; many wondered why she seemed so sad, but none
-guessed that she was thinking that she would like to be at rest under
-those softly lapping waves, with the story of her young life ended here
-and now.
-
-Ah, how suddenly her despondent mood was changed! A shadow came between
-her and the light--some one sat down beside her and facing her. She
-looked up, startled, and saw--Norman Wylde.
-
-Norman Wylde, pale and impassioned-looking, with a determined light in
-his splendid dark eyes.
-
-As she made a movement to rise, his strong hand closed over her weak
-little white ones, and forced her back into her seat.
-
-“Sit still,” he whispered hoarsely, desperately. “I must speak to you,
-and you shall listen.”
-
-She glanced about her with frightened eyes. No one was looking. The
-music was pulsing sweetly on the air, and the dancers were keeping
-time with flying feet. She looked up at him, pale with emotion.
-
-“You can have nothing to say to me that I wish to hear, Mr. Wylde, for
-I despise you,” she answered bitterly.
-
-“That is not true, Pansy, for a month ago you owned that you loved me,
-and you have not unlearned your love so soon. Falsehoods have been told
-you, and you knew no better than to believe them without giving me a
-chance to defend myself. I have written to you, but my letters came
-back to me unopened. I have dogged your footsteps on the streets, but
-you fled from me, and, as a last resort, I came upon this excursion,
-determined to force a hearing from you. Will you listen to me? Will you
-let me explain the meaning of that scene with Juliette Ives that day?”
-
-She struggled under his detaining hand, anxious to escape, yet not
-wishing to make a scene.
-
-“You were engaged to her, yet you made love to me; that is enough for
-me to know,” she answered, turning crimson in her humiliation; but her
-indifference and eagerness to get away only made him more determined to
-conquer her pride.
-
-“Pansy, you are driving me mad,” he cried imploringly; then, with
-sudden passion, he added: “Unless you will sit still and listen to what
-I have to say to you, I swear I will drown myself before your eyes!”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VI. A HAPPY EXCURSION.
-
-
-Pansy was so startled by the threat of her desperate lover that she
-sank back into her seat without a word, her slight form trembling with
-terror. She certainly did not want him to drown himself, although he
-had treated her so cruelly.
-
-So she consented to listen to him. There could be no great harm in
-that, for it would not alter her opinion of him at all. He had been
-false to Juliette Ives and false to her. She was quite sure that she
-despised him, although her heart was beating furiously as she looked
-up into the pale, impassioned face, with its eager, burning dark eyes,
-that seemed fairly to devour her white, startled young face.
-
-Now that he had his chance, he improved it in eloquent fashion. He
-explained everything clearly, making her understand that he was not the
-villain they made him out, and that if he were to blame in any way it
-was for breaking loose from the bonds that held him to a girl whose
-selfishness and cruelty had changed his love to hate.
-
-“If I ever really loved her, which seems doubtful to me now,” he said.
-“It was last winter that we became engaged, and, although I admired
-her fair face and enjoyed her society, I swear to you, Pansy, that the
-thought of marrying her never crossed my mind until one night in the
-conservatory, when I was, somehow, drawn into asking her to marry me.
-I hardly know how it was, unless it was the romance of the moment. You
-remember the lines:
-
- “Azure eyes, golden hair, scented robes--
-
-“They had crazed my hot, foolish brain then.
-
- “Ah, the silliest woman can make
- A fool of the wisest of men!”
-
-“But they say that you are fickle,” murmured Pansy, speaking for the
-first time.
-
-“It is not true, my little darling. I never really fell in love until
-your sweet face dawned on my vision. Then I began to realize that my
-engagement to Juliette was a terrible mistake, and that I would be
-wrong to continue it. But I kept waiting from day to day, hoping she
-would see how things were and throw me over herself, as she did at
-last, but only after I had bungled matters by telling you too soon of
-my love.”
-
-Where was Pansy’s bitter resentment now? It was melting like snow in
-the sunshine under his eager words. Everything looked so different now
-in the light of his manly, straightforward explanations.
-
-Her sad heart bounded with renewed hope, and a leaden weight seemed to
-be lifted from her spirits.
-
-“Now, Pansy, you see that I was not to blame,” said her lover eagerly.
-“You will forgive me, will you not, and promise what I was going to ask
-you that day--that you will be my own little wife?”
-
-She blushed brightly, and could not utter a word. He took her little
-hand tenderly in his, and whispered:
-
-“‘Silence gives consent.’”
-
-Presently she lifted her little head from his breast, where he had
-drawn it in reckless defiance of the whole world, if it had been
-looking on. But, fortunately, no one saw or heeded the pair of happy
-lovers.
-
-“But how can I be your wife?” she whispered, in a troubled tone. “Mrs.
-Ives told Aunt Robbins that your family was very rich and grand--that
-they would never permit you to marry me.”
-
-“Never mind, I will bring them around,” he replied, with pretended
-carelessness.
-
-He would not tell her that he had spoken to his parents about her, and
-that both had sternly forbidden him to think of marrying one so far
-beneath him in position, birth, and fortune.
-
-“Remember that you are descended from one of the first families of
-Virginia,” exclaimed his haughty mother.
-
-“I shall only regret that fact if it is to separate me from the girl
-I love,” he replied angrily, and then his father threatened him with
-disinheritance if he did not give up Pansy Laurens. He told Pansy
-nothing of all this, although it lay deep in his own heart, like a
-leaden weight, for he knew that he could not support a wife if his
-father threw him over. He had no fortune of his own, and, although he
-had been educated for the law, he had only just hung out his “shingle,”
-as he humorously called it. It was folly, madness, to woo Pansy
-Laurens in the face of such prospects, and yet he went straight on,
-hoping against hope that something would turn up in his favor.
-
-“I will bring them around in time,” he repeated, and she, looking up at
-her splendid lover in worshipful adoration, believed him, and bright
-visions of happiness flitted before her mind’s eye. She could not help
-triumphing in her thoughts over her insolent rival, Juliette Ives.
-
-Oh, how suddenly the face of all the world was changed to the girl who
-such a little while ago was so unhappy that she wished herself dead!
-The beautiful face grew so animated that he was charmed and delighted.
-He told her that she had the fairest face he had ever seen, and that he
-would like to be a king, that he might make her a queen.
-
-All too soon that happy excursion came to an end, but it stood out
-brightly forever in Pansy’s memory. She had been so happy, so blessed;
-and when she parted with her lover it was to look forward to secret
-meetings--pleasant walks with him that would take away the dreariness
-and loneliness of her life. He told her that it would not be wrong,
-and she loved him too well to doubt his word.
-
-Several weeks afterward Pansy’s mother was quite sick one day with a
-headache, and the girl had to stay home from work. Toward afternoon she
-grew much better, and then Pansy, who was sitting near the bed with her
-sewing, said timidly:
-
-“Mamma, I am afraid that we have all been too hard on Norman Wylde.
-Perhaps he did love me and mean to marry me.”
-
-“Nonsense!” the mother exclaimed curtly, and then she saw tears in
-Pansy’s blue eyes, much to her dismay, for she thought Pansy had got
-over her fancy for Norman Wylde.
-
-“But, mamma----”
-
-“I do not wish to hear anything about that villain,” answered the
-mother sharply, and, although the girl had made up her mind to
-confess everything to her mother, she was frightened out of it by her
-harshness; and the next time she saw Norman she told him that she had
-made the effort to tell her mother all, but had failed through dread of
-her anger.
-
-They were in the Capitol Square, for it was Sunday afternoon, and
-Pansy had told her mother that she was going for a little walk.
-
-Norman Wylde was waiting for her under the tree in a secluded part of
-the grounds, and they sat down together on a rustic bench while Pansy,
-half in tears, related her failure with her mother.
-
-“I am sorry, for I have wished so much that I might be able to visit
-you at your own home,” said her lover. Then his face brightened, and he
-added:
-
-“But never mind, darling, it does not matter so much now, for I am
-going away from Richmond very soon. Do not look so woebegone, my little
-Pansy, for I have good news for you.”
-
-She started and looked up eagerly, wondering if his parents had
-relented.
-
-But it was nothing like that.
-
-In a moment he continued:
-
-“Congratulate me, my dearest. I have at last found a client!”
-
-“Oh!” cried Pansy gladly.
-
-“Yes, and a wealthy one, too,” said the young man exultantly. “He
-wishes me to go to London upon some law business for him, and if my
-mission proves successful my reputation will be made at once, and I
-shall earn a princely fee, also.”
-
-“But to go away so far--oh!” cried Pansy, in unutterable distress.
-
-But her lover laughed.
-
-“Pshaw! Not so very far,” he said lightly, then, pressing her little
-hand warmly, he whispered: “We can bear the separation, my darling,
-since, in reality, it only brings us nearer together, as, of course I
-shall be in a position to marry then.”
-
-But Pansy had burst into tears. A dark cloud had settled over her
-spirits.
-
-No one was near them, and he bent tenderly over her, trying to soothe
-her girlish distress.
-
-“It is only for a few months, dearest, and we will write to each other
-every week. Then, when I come back, we will be happy.”
-
-“I feel as if we were parting forever,” she sighed, but he smiled
-tenderly, and answered:
-
-“No, no, Pansy--only for a little while.”
-
-But his own heart was heavy, too. He adored his lovely little
-sweetheart, and vague fears assailed him lest some one should win
-her away from him during his enforced absence. She was so young, so
-untaught, what if she learned to doubt him? What if the enemies that
-encompassed both should turn her heart against him?
-
-A sudden mad resolve came over him. With quickened breath, he whispered:
-
-“Pansy, in a week I must go and leave you. What if I married you before
-I went, and left my own sweet wife waiting for my return?”
-
-She started and gazed wildly at him.
-
-“They--they--would not permit it,” she returned breathlessly.
-
-He smiled triumphantly.
-
-“We could run away, my pet,” he said. “For instance, suppose when you
-started to work to-morrow morning I should meet you? We could take the
-early morning train for Washington, be married, and return by the time
-the factory closes for the day. You could go quietly home again, and no
-one need know our sweet secret until I came back to claim you.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VII. ACQUIRING A STEPFATHER.
-
-
-Mrs. Laurens would have been only too glad to listen to her daughter,
-if she had had any idea that Norman Wylde’s intentions toward Pansy
-were strictly honorable. But her brother’s representations had so
-thoroughly alarmed her that she deemed it proper to repress the girl
-with the utmost sternness, while at the same time her motherly heart
-yearned tenderly over her and she longed for the means of lightening
-the girl’s hard lot in life. And it was for her children’s sake more
-than aught else that the yet young widow began to contemplate the idea
-of a second marriage.
-
-She was still a pretty and attractive woman, and for a year past she
-had had an admirer who had pressed his suit more than once, and would
-have been accepted only for the fact that her five children were, with
-one accord, vehemently opposed to having a stepfather.
-
-The widow could not help feeling vexed with her dictatorial brood.
-
-Her suitor was a groceryman with a fair business, and owned a neat
-brick house, well furnished, from which a wife had been carried out
-more than two years ago to her grave.
-
-The widower sadly wanted a housekeeper, and it seemed to him that
-pretty little Mrs. Laurens was the proper one to fill the position.
-
-The children were rather a drawback, it was true, but he had decided
-that Pansy could go on earning her living at the factory and Willie at
-the store.
-
-Mrs. Laurens, all unconscious of her suitor’s sordid intentions,
-wished very much to marry Mr. Finley, and at last permitted him to
-overrule her objections and persuade her that her children had no right
-to dictate to her in regard to a second marriage. It seemed quite a
-coincidence that, on the very Sunday when Norman Wylde was persuading
-pretty Pansy to a secret marriage, her mother was listening to counsel
-somewhat similar from her elderly lover.
-
-And on Monday evening, when Pansy got in, rather late, flustered
-and frightened lest her mother should chide her for her tardiness,
-she found the children sitting around, supperless and forlorn, and
-manifestly relieved at her entrance.
-
-“Where is mamma?” she asked, glancing around, rather guiltily; and
-Alice, the eldest of the three younger children, replied:
-
-“Mamma had on her gray cashmere dress when we got home from school, and
-she put on her bonnet and said she was going out a while, and that we
-must be good children till she got back.”
-
-“Very well; I will get you some supper,” their sister answered,
-relieved to think that her own escapade would pass undetected. She
-bustled around with glowing cheeks and curiously bright eyes, until, in
-a few moments, carriage wheels were heard pausing in the street before
-their door, and the eager children hastened to open it, tumbling over
-each other in their gleeful excitement.
-
-What was their surprise to find that it was their own mother who had
-come in the carriage. She was accompanied by Mr. Finley, who came with
-her into the house and stood by her side with a consequential air,
-while she said, in a half-frightened voice:
-
-“Now, don’t get mad, children, for it won’t do any good. I was married
-half an hour ago to Mr. Finley.”
-
-Sheer surprise sealed every mouth, and, taking advantage of the
-momentary pause, she continued:
-
-“I did it this way to escape the fuss I knew you would all make. I
-am going with Mr. Finley on a wedding tour of a week, to visit his
-relations in North Carolina. I packed my trunk to-day, and I depend
-on you, Pansy, dear, to keep house for me while I’m gone. You needn’t
-go to work any more till I come back. Now, come and kiss me good-by,
-my precious children, for the carriage is waiting to take me to the
-train.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VIII. SECRET VISITS.
-
-
-Poor Mrs. Laurens! Her anticipation of a brighter future for her
-children very speedily dissolved into thin air.
-
-She came back in a week from her wedding tour, and moved into her new
-home, Mr. Finley’s nice brick residence on Church Hill; and then she
-hinted broadly to her new-made husband that she would like to take
-Pansy from the factory and Willie from the store, and send both to
-school again.
-
-To her grief and dismay, Mr. Finley promptly refused her requests.
-
-“I married you, not your family, Mrs. Finley,” he said coarsely.
-
-“But I surely expected--and you certainly let me think, sir--that you
-would support my children,” faltered the bride.
-
-“The three younger children, who are yet too young to work for
-themselves, I expect to board and clothe, certainly, but not the two
-others. They must remain at work, clothe themselves, and pay a small
-sum monthly for board,” was the stern reply, which so angered the
-astonished woman that she cried out resentfully:
-
-“If I had known this I would not have married you!”
-
-“If you married me with mercenary motives you deserve to be
-disappointed,” was the cold reply of her liege lord, and, as may be
-supposed, the honeymoon did not proceed very smoothly after that.
-
-Willie kept on at the store, the children at school, and Pansy at the
-factory. She had not expected anything else, she told her mother,
-with some slight bitterness, when she half apologized to her for the
-necessity of her keeping on at work.
-
-She resented with silent jealousy her mother’s marriage to this stern,
-hard man, so unlike her own father, who had been so gentle and loving,
-and the breach between her heart and her mother’s grew wider still as
-days passed on and brought the cold, dark days of winter.
-
-For one day one of the little children had unwittingly let out a secret
-that Pansy had adjured her to keep. It was the fact that Norman Wylde
-had several times visited the house during Mrs. Finley’s absence on her
-wedding tour.
-
-There had been a scene between mother and daughter, harsh reproaches
-and upbraidings, answered first by tears, then by girlish resentment.
-
-“I had as much right to deceive you as you had to run away and marry
-that horrid man!” the girl cried, with flashing eyes.
-
-Then Mrs. Finley had so far forgotten love and dignity as to strike
-her rebellious daughter--slapping both cheeks soundly, and threatening
-something of the same kind unless Pansy broke off with Norman Wylde.
-
-“He is gone to England,” the girl answered sullenly, and the mother
-prayed in secret that he might never return, unwitting of the terrible
-interest Pansy had in the absentee.
-
-So the long winter days wore away, and Pansy’s companions at the
-factory began to remark a great change in the young girl. Her cheeks
-had grown pale and wan, and her eyes dim, as if from constant tears.
-Her light, dancing step had become heavy and dragging, and she no
-longer seemed to care about her personal appearance, for her dresses
-were cheap and ill-fitting, and she was always shivering with cold,
-although constantly wrapped in a thick shawl. The gay girls at the
-factory often teased her about her chilliness, and told her she must be
-going into a consumption.
-
-Poor child! If they had guessed what was aching at her heart they must
-have pitied her. Not a word or line had she received from Norman Wylde
-since the day he had sailed away from Richmond, after the one week of
-delirious happiness in which she had been his adored wife.
-
-Faithfully had she kept the secret of her marriage, but the time was
-coming when it must be declared, or she would have to bear the burden
-of a bitter shame. Unless Norman Wylde returned soon, she would be the
-mother of a child on whom the world would frown in scorn, while she,
-poor girl, would never be able to lift up her head again.
-
-Oh, how she repented her disobedience to her mother! If she had
-listened to her she would not have come to this terrible pass. Perhaps
-Norman was false to her, perhaps that marriage in Washington had been a
-fraudulent one. She had read of such things.
-
-“Heaven pity me, how shall I ever confess the truth to my mother?” she
-sobbed nightly, as she lay wide awake in her little room, too wretched
-and frightened to sleep, wondering why her husband did not write to
-her, and praying always that Heaven would remove her very soon from a
-world that she had found so dark and cruel.
-
-A dark, terrible day came to her at last--dark, although the sun was
-shining in the sky, the green grass springing, and the gay birds
-chirping in the budding trees, for it was May now, and the world was
-made new again--she was discharged from the factory.
-
-No reason was given, none asked. She understood.
-
-For many days she had seen that her companions at work shunned and
-sneered at her. She had had many friends among them once, but now not
-one. She did not blame them. In their place she would perhaps have
-acted the same. There is a wide, wide gulf between womanly purity
-and fallen virtue, and they believed that she was a lost and ruined
-creature.
-
-As she went slowly, wearily homeward she felt that she could not bear
-to tell her mother of her discharge, for then she would have to
-confess all the rest.
-
-“I could more easily die than confess to her, for, oh, she will be so
-angry, so angry!” she shuddered weakly, and a desperate resolve came to
-her.
-
-She would run away and hide herself from all who had ever known her.
-
-Perhaps she would die when her trouble came. She hoped so, for she was
-weary of her life.
-
-Out of the money that remained from her wages after paying her board,
-she had saved a few dollars. She would take it and go away. Mamma
-would not miss her much. She had never seemed the same to her children
-since she married the hard, stern man who kept her at work even more
-slavishly than when she was a widow, for he would not hire a servant,
-and she was compelled to do the drudgery of the house herself.
-
-Pansy went into the house very quietly, then helped her mother with
-the supper, as was her usual custom. She pretended to eat something
-herself, then went up to her own little room, eager to make her
-arrangements for getting away.
-
-There was not much to do, only to make up a bundle of such clothing as
-she would need the most and could conveniently carry. There were some
-tiny garments, too, clumsily fashioned by the poor girl’s unskillful
-hands; they must not be left behind. She tied them all up securely, put
-on her hat, and sat down to wait until the house should be still, when
-she would slip quietly out and make her way to the station, where she
-could take the first train to Petersburg.
-
-She felt ill and wretched. Her heart was throbbing to suffocation. How
-dreadful the suspense was, how slowly the time crept by!
-
-Thank Heaven, they were all abed at last, and she could go now.
-
-She rose up with her bundle, shrinking a little at the thought of being
-alone in the streets by night.
-
-At that inauspicious moment Mrs. Finley suddenly entered the room.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IX. THE SECRET DIVULGED.
-
-
-At the opening of the door, mother and daughter recoiled from each
-other with smothered cries of amazement.
-
-Pansy, who had counted herself so sure of escaping, saw herself
-detected in the act of flight, forced to confession, shamed, disgraced;
-but after that one exclamation of alarm she hurriedly determined to
-brave it out, if possible; so, clutching her bundle tightly, she
-assumed an expression of calmness that she was very far from feeling.
-
-“Why, Pansy, what does this mean? I expected to find you abed,”
-exclaimed her mother, staring in astonishment at the shrinking girl.
-
-“I--I--wanted to go out a few minutes, mamma, dear. My new calico,
-you know, I must take it to that sewing girl on the next square,
-for I shall need it next week,” stammered Pansy, trying to push by
-her mother; but Mrs. Finley suddenly put her back against the door,
-exclaiming suspiciously:
-
-“Going to the dressmaker’s at this time of night? I don’t believe it!
-You are up to some mischief, Pansy Laurens! Running away, perhaps, and
-it’s a good thing I caught you in the nick of time. Give me that bundle
-and let me look into it.”
-
-There was a brief, short struggle, then Mrs. Finley triumphed, and
-Pansy flung herself, bitterly weeping, upon the floor, while her mother
-rummaged through the telltale bundle.
-
-“Aha, just as I thought! Change of clothes--oh, you wicked girl! What
-is this? Oh-h-h, heavens! Pa-a-n-sy Lau-rens, what does this mean?”
-
-She was holding up sundry tiny bits of soft flannel and linen trimmed
-with homemade crochet edging. Pansy did not lift her head. She knew
-without looking, and she moaned despairingly:
-
-“Oh, mamma, mamma, if only you had let me go away in peace you need
-never have known!”
-
- * * * * *
-
-“You say that she will live, doctor? Oh, I am so glad! And yet it would
-be better, perhaps, for my poor girl if she had died.”
-
-Pansy’s eyelids felt too tired and heavy to lift from her eyes, but she
-seemed to struggle back to consciousness and hear those words spoken
-above her head. In that moment, too, came a confused memory of the
-stormy scene with her mother when she had been forced to tell all her
-story and to bear such bitter reproach and shame as almost maddened
-her, so that she was glad of the unconsciousness that stole upon her,
-blotting out for a few weeks all the bitter past and shameful present.
-
-Yes, it had been three weeks since that terrible night, and when Pansy
-heard those words spoken over her head in her mother’s voice she
-guessed aright that she had had a dangerous illness.
-
-She opened her blue eyes with an effort, and saw the doctor standing
-with her mother by the bed.
-
-“See--she is conscious at last. She will begin to get well very fast
-now,” he said, and gave her an encouraging smile; but Pansy had none to
-give in return.
-
-It seemed to her that she should never smile again.
-
-When he had gone, she looked wistfully at her mother, without daring
-to speak, fearing to hear again the scathing reproaches with which she
-had been assailed that night; but Mrs. Finley had been softened by her
-daughter’s illness, and she spoke to her very kindly:
-
-“My dear, you have been ill three weeks of fever, but the doctor thinks
-you are going to get well now.”
-
-Pansy thought of the words she had overheard:
-
-“It would be better, perhaps, for my poor girl if she had died.”
-
-She could not speak just yet, but her big, mournful blue eyes asked a
-question that Mrs. Finley quickly understood.
-
-“Yes, it is all over long ago. It happened that night when I kept you
-from running away. You were so ill you never knew.”
-
-She paused, but the big, beseeching blue eyes were still asking silent
-questions, and, putting her hand up to her face, Mrs. Finley said, in a
-broken voice:
-
-“Your child only lived one day, Pansy. It was better so.”
-
-“Dead!”
-
-That one wailing cry broke the stillness, then low and bitter sobs
-heaved Pansy’s breast. The mother who had never seen the face of her
-child was weeping over its death.
-
-“It was better so, my dear, better so. Had it lived it could but have
-added to your disgrace,” Mrs. Finley kept repeating, and at last the
-poor girl, stung by the words, answered petulantly:
-
-“How can you talk of disgrace? I told you that I was the wife of Norman
-Wylde.”
-
-“You were deceived, my poor child,” answered her mother sadly.
-
-“Deceived!”
-
-“Yes, Pansy. I told Mr. Finley everything. He went to Washington to
-find out the truth. My poor girl, that villain deceived you. There was
-no license taken out; there was no minister of the name you told me,
-and you had no marriage certificate. By your confidence in a villain
-against whom we all warned you, you have ruined yourself and brought
-disgrace upon your relations.”
-
-There was a long, long pause of utter consternation, then the stricken
-girl moaned pitifully:
-
-“Oh, mamma, why did you nurse me back to life? You should have let me
-die.”
-
-One week later Pansy was sitting up, a pale little ghost of the bright,
-pretty girl who, just a year ago, had gone home with Uncle Robbins to
-find so cruel a fate. She had been watching the sun set, and turned
-with heavy, listless eyes when her mother entered with a slice of toast
-and some tea for her supper.
-
-“Mamma, will you tell me why you always lock my door on the outside?
-Are you afraid that I will run away?” she asked sadly.
-
-“Oh, my dear, do not be frightened, but--I am afraid of your brother.”
-
-“Mamma--of Willie?”
-
-“Yes, he is sixteen now, you know--old enough to feel keenly the
-disgrace that has fallen on the family. He is so angry, and he has been
-egged on, I know, by Mr. Finley. I--I--hope he will come to his senses
-some time,” sighing.
-
-“Mamma, you said you were afraid. You locked the door whenever you went
-out. Why?” panted Pansy, with dilated eyes; and the wretched mother,
-leaning over her wretched child, whispered plaintively:
-
-“Try to forgive him, my poor child, for he is half crazed now, and his
-passionate boyish temper all ablaze with anger. Poor lad! The disgrace
-has blighted all his future, he says, and he has sworn revenge.”
-
-“Revenge--on me?” questioned Pansy faintly.
-
-“Yes, on you. He has got hold of a pistol somehow, and he is no longer
-very steady at his work. I fear he drinks some. He vows he will shoot
-you on sight.”
-
-“Oh, my Heaven!”
-
-“But do not be frightened, dear. It is nothing but boyish bluster, I
-am sure. Only I am afraid of him just yet, while the drink fires his
-blood. So it is better to keep your room a while.”
-
-“Every one knows, then, mamma?” with a burning blush.
-
-“We could not keep it a secret. Every one suspected you,” sighed the
-unhappy woman, bursting into a flood of tears.
-
-But she wept more bitterly still next morning, for, in spite of the
-locked door, Pansy was missing, and a tiny note on her pillow told the
-story:
-
- Bless you, my faithful mamma, and help you to forgive me for my
- willful ways that caused you so much sorrow. Tell Willie not to drink
- any more. I will never come back, never disgrace him again.
-
- UNHAPPY PANSY.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER X. A HEARTSICK FUGITIVE.
-
-
-Pansy Laurens meant to keep her word when she wrote to her mother that
-she would never come back. She felt that this would be best.
-
-If she remained at home the shadow of her deep disgrace would be
-reflected on her family. If she went away people would forget it in
-time.
-
-“I should like for them to think that I am dead. Then mamma would not
-feel any further anxiety over my fate. Her mind would be easy. She
-would feel that I was at rest,” she thought, and it was this that led
-her to take away with her a small bundle of clothing marked with her
-name, and throw it into the river. “It will be found by some one, and
-then they will say that I drowned myself. It will be a great relief to
-Willie,” she said to herself, with sorrowful satisfaction, and with a
-bravery born of despair, she escaped from her room by means of a rope
-plaited of torn sheets.
-
-Her hands were torn and bleeding when she reached the bottom, but,
-without a murmur, she took up the bundle she had thrown down, and made
-her way to Libby Hill, that beautiful eminence overlooking the historic
-James River. She sat down there a while to rest in the soft gleam of
-the summer moonlight, and to think of the times when she had met Norman
-Wylde there and wandered with him through the beautiful park, while her
-young heart thrilled with love, and hope.
-
-“Alas, alas! he was but amusing himself with the humble working girl;
-he but plucked the flower of my love to trample it under his feet,” she
-murmured, in bitterest despair; and presently she went through the park
-and past the line of stately houses that guarded it on the left side,
-and dragged herself down the steep declivity to the river.
-
-How beautiful, how silvery white it gleamed in the clear moonlight as
-it pursued its winding course toward Chesapeake Bay. The factory girl,
-whose soul was deeply imbued with a love of the beautiful, gazed with a
-sort of solemn rapture on the magnificent scene outspread before her,
-and as she flung her little bundle into the glittering waves, lifted
-her sad eyes to heaven, murmuring, in a tone of awe:
-
-“I am tempted to spring into those bright waves and end all my sorrow.”
-
-Then she saw a dark form moving toward her at some little distance, and
-fled away, fearing lest she should be arrested by a policeman, for it
-was nearing midnight, and she knew that it would seem strange to see a
-woman alone in the streets, deserted as they were by almost every one.
-
-She went along slyly and quietly, like a fugitive fleeing from justice,
-over the long distance--two miles and more--that intervened between her
-and the railway station, at which she meant to take a train for the
-West.
-
-How strange it seemed to be stealing along Main Street like a shadow,
-frightened at the glare of the street lamps, lest they should reveal
-her hurrying form to some alert policeman. She was glad when she
-reached Seventeenth Street Market, and darted inside of it, gliding
-nervously along between the brick stalls as far as they went, and
-coming out at last almost at the end of her journey, for soon Broad
-Street was gained, and then, a little later, the depot.
-
-There was a midnight train making up for the West. She hurried to the
-ticket office and bought a ticket for Cincinnati.
-
-“I shall be sure to find work in a great big city like that,” she
-thought, as she took her place in a car and sank wearily into a seat,
-bursting into tears as the whistle blew and the train rushed out of
-the station, at the thought that she was leaving behind her forever
-mother, home, and native city--dear old Richmond, on its green, smiling
-hills--the place where she was born, and where she had spent her
-eighteen years of life.
-
-She had never known how well she loved Richmond until she felt herself
-leaving it forever behind her, with all the associations so dear to
-her heart. Tears blinded her beautiful eyes, and a sort of passionate
-hatred for the lover who had wrought her so much woe swelled her young
-heart.
-
-“Oh, did he think of all this when he betrayed me?” she wondered
-bitterly, and a yearning for revenge came to her, a bitter longing to
-pay him back in his own coin for all that she was suffering now.
-
-“Heaven will send me the chance, and I will wring his heart as he has
-tortured mine,” she vowed to herself, with eyes that flashed through
-her tears, and just then the conductor came along to take up the
-tickets.
-
-The car was not crowded, and he had time to observe how Pansy’s face
-was all wet with tears, and how nervously her little hand shook when
-she presented her ticket.
-
-“Are you ill, miss?” he asked politely. “Can I do anything for you?”
-
-“No, I am not ill; there is nothing I wish, thank you,” she answered;
-but, as she saw how surprised he looked, she added: “I was only crying
-because I am leaving my native city forever, to go among strangers. I
-am an orphan, and must seek work in the West.”
-
-“I should think you could certainly find work in Richmond,” he said;
-but she shook her head and put her hand to her white throat in such a
-pathetic way that he knew she was choked with tears.
-
-He turned away with a heart full of pity, thinking of his own pretty
-daughter at home, and hoping that she might never come to this. The
-next day he heard that a beautiful young working girl of Richmond had
-drowned herself in the James River, and his thoughts involuntarily flew
-to the one who had left Richmond last night, although he did not think
-of connecting the two together, save as sisters in sorrow.
-
-“There was a tragedy of woe in the beautiful face of that orphan girl,”
-he thought often, for the memory of her grief did not fade from his
-mind for some time.
-
-Pansy was touched by his manly sympathy, but she pretended not to
-notice it. She did not want him to find out who she was, or anything
-about her, lest it should interfere with the success of her plan for
-making everybody believe she was dead.
-
-But, oh, that long, weary night in which she was whirled away so
-rapidly from all that she had ever known--it would stay in her memory
-forever, with all its pain and sadness.
-
-When they reached Staunton, quite a large crowd came in, and there was
-another conductor, who had so many tickets to take up that he did not
-pay much attention to the sad young traveler who seemed so lonely and
-friendless, and who at last fell into a deep sleep of exhaustion, and
-did not awaken for many hours afterward--not, in fact, until a terrible
-railroad collision near Louisville, Kentucky, derailed the train and
-sent many of the passengers into their last long sleep.
-
-Pansy was rudely awakened by the shock and jar, and found herself
-fastened down beneath some timbers which had, fortunately, formed a
-sort of arch over her form, holding her down, yet still protecting her,
-so that she was quite unhurt, although so frightened that she fainted
-dead away at hearing the shrieks of the wounded and dying all around
-her.
-
-Busy, helpful hands were soon at work, and within an hour she was
-released from her uncomfortable position. They carried her out into a
-grassy field, where the survivors of the accident were sitting around
-in the burning sunshine. Pansy was struck by one lady, who looked as if
-she were far gone in consumption, and who was sobbing bitterly over the
-death of her maid.
-
-“I was quite alone but for her, and we were traveling to California for
-my health,” she said. “Oh, I know not what to do! I am too weak and ill
-to travel alone.”
-
-Pansy went up to the poor invalid, and said timidly:
-
-“Lady, I am an orphan, and I was going to Cincinnati to seek for work.
-Perhaps you would be willing to take me in the place of your maid that
-was killed. I would try very hard to please you.”
-
-“Oh, thank you, thank you, my child! I am only too glad to get some one
-to go on with me,” cried the invalid, eagerly accepting the offer.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XI. SHELTERING ARMS.
-
-
-Pansy Laurens had found that “friend in need” who is “a friend,
-indeed,” when she became acquainted with Mrs. Beach, the invalid lady.
-She took a deep, kindly interest in the lonely, friendless girl, and
-during the few days when they stayed over at Louisville to recover from
-the shock of the accident mastered much of her story.
-
-She was surprised when she learned that the lovely girl was of the
-working classes, for she had fancied that Pansy’s wonderful beauty had
-descended from aristocratic, high-bred parentage, but Pansy proudly
-undeceived her.
-
-“My father was a mechanic, and my grandfather was a farmer. My mother
-was a farmer’s daughter, too, so we were only plain, hard-working
-people. I left the public school where I was educated as soon as my
-father died, and worked in a tobacco factory three years.”
-
-Mrs. Beach, who was a Southerner, and “a born aristocrat,” looked
-honestly surprised, and spoke out frankly her astonishment.
-
-“I thought,” she said, “that the girls employed in the tobacco
-factories of the South were of a very low and ignorant class, indeed. I
-have received that impression somehow.”
-
-Pansy thought of Juliette Ives and the scorn she had displayed toward
-her, and answered bitterly:
-
-“Many have thought the same, Mrs. Beach; but in the three years I spent
-in a tobacco factory I met many girls as beautiful, as refined, and
-as good as are met with in the highest circles of what is called good
-society. I cannot believe that nobility is only to be met with in the
-ranks of the rich and well-born. The good and bad are met with in all
-classes.”
-
-“That is quite true, my child,” said the lady, to whom Pansy had not
-confided the story of her cruel experience among the aristocrats of her
-native city. She gazed admiringly at the flushed face of the excited
-girl, and added: “I do not wish to flatter you, my dear girl, but I
-will say frankly that both your mind and person fit you to adorn the
-highest society. It would be an injustice to you to lower you to the
-position of my personal attendant; therefore you shall remain with me
-as my companion, and as soon as we reach San Diego, my destination, I
-will try to secure some elderly woman as my maid.”
-
-Pansy’s tears of gratitude amply thanked the noble woman for her
-generous words, and she sighed to think that she dared not confide to
-her the whole story of her life.
-
-But she could not bring herself to repeat to a stranger, however
-kindly, the sorrows of her unfortunate love affair.
-
-“And, then, I dare not, for she would perhaps spurn me from her
-presence, deeming me wicked where I was only unfortunate,” she thought
-shrinkingly.
-
-She had told Mrs. Beach that her name was Pansy Wilcox, and that she
-had left home because her mother had married a man who was unkind to
-his stepchildren. Mrs. Beach thought the reason was a fair one, and
-did not blame the young girl much. She had some reason for knowing how
-unpleasant a girl’s home could be made under such circumstances.
-
-They safely reached San Diego, one of the most beautiful and romantic
-places in California, and for a while Pansy was so enchanted with her
-new home and its Italian-like surroundings that she ceased to grieve
-for her native Richmond and the dear ones left behind. A new life
-opened before her: one of comparative ease and luxury, compared to what
-she had known, for with the gentle invalid lady her duties as companion
-were usually light and pleasant. Mrs. Beach had soon found a clever
-maid, and, as she rented a small furnished cottage near the beautiful
-bay of San Diego, and hired two Chinese servants, life began to flow on
-very smoothly and fairly to those who made up her household.
-
-She had told Pansy very little about herself, save that she was a widow
-with a fair income that would cease at her death.
-
-“I have no relatives save a distant one of my husband, who will,
-perhaps, be glad when I die, as he will then inherit the property,” she
-said, adding: “But I mean to live as long as I can, and this charming
-climate makes me feel almost as if I am going to get well again.”
-
-“Heaven grant you may,” exclaimed Pansy, but when she looked at the wan
-cheeks and sunken eyes of the hapless lady it seemed to her that Mrs.
-Beach could not live much longer, even in this charming climate.
-
-“And when she dies I shall be thrown homeless upon the world again,”
-she thought, with a shudder of fear and terror.
-
-Perhaps Mrs. Beach thought of this, too, for she took a deep interest
-in her fair young companion. One day she said gravely to Pansy:
-
-“Do you ever expect to marry, Pansy?”
-
-Pansy grew crimson first, then deadly pale.
-
-“No, never. I hate men!” she exclaimed, with such energy that Mrs.
-Beach, a keen student of human nature, exclaimed:
-
-“Ah, then, you have had a lover?”
-
-Pansy saw that she had betrayed herself by her vehemence, and, hanging
-her head bashful she sighed:
-
-“Yes, I had a lover once, and he proved false to me. No one else shall
-ever make love to me again.”
-
-“Poor child!” said the lady compassionately. She remained silent a few
-moments, then said: “I hope you will not think me a meddlesome old
-lady, Pansy, but I have been thinking of your future. If I should die,
-what would become of you?”
-
-Pansy burst into passionate tears. “I should never find such a noble
-friend again,” she sobbed.
-
-“I have been thinking of that,” said Mrs. Beach, laying her thin hand
-gently on the bowed head. “Your future has been on my mind for some
-time. You ought to be learning something by which you could support
-yourself. There are many avenues of support open to women now.”
-
-“Oh, I know it, but I have had no chance to learn anything. Dear, noble
-friend, if only you could suggest something!” cried Pansy gratefully.
-
-“I will think over it a few days, and then advise you,” answered Mrs.
-Beach gravely.
-
-And at the end of a week she told Pansy that she believed that
-typewriting would prove a remunerative business for a young girl.
-
-“I will purchase a good machine, and you shall learn,” she said kindly.
-
-“Oh, how kind you are to me! I wish I knew how to thank you for all
-your goodness,” cried the poor girl, with tears of gratitude.
-
-Mrs. Beach smiled and answered:
-
-“Only stay with me while I live, Pansy, and I shall be well rewarded.
-After all, my kindness to you is only a species of selfishness, for
-I wish to have you with me. It brightens my lonely life to have the
-beautiful face of a young girl about me all the time.”
-
-They stayed in San Diego a year, and every month made the exquisite
-place more dear to them. Pansy worked industriously at her typewriting
-machine, and became quite proficient; but she did not neglect her kind
-benefactress.
-
-It was both her duty and her pleasure to add as much of happiness as
-possible to the life of the suffering invalid. In doing so she reaped
-the rich reward of those who try to lighten the sorrows of others, for
-she had less time to think of her own, and in consequence was far less
-unhappy.
-
-There was not a day in which she did not thank Heaven for providing
-such a safe haven for her when she had fled, frightened and despairing,
-from her old home; not a day in which she did not pray for the dear
-ones she had left behind. Most bitterly she repented the willfulness
-that had led to all her sorrow.
-
-“Had I only minded my mother, no harm would have come to me,” she
-sighed over and over.
-
-Suddenly over the calm, peaceful life they were leading in the little
-cottage home fell a dark shadow.
-
-Mrs. Beach had been failing for some time, and at last it became only
-too evident to Pansy and the few friends they had made in San Diego
-that her days were numbered. The invalid herself was not ignorant
-of the fact, for after an interview with her physician one day she
-sent for Pansy and gently broke the sad tidings that she had, in all
-probability, but a few weeks to live.
-
-“Do not grieve, my dear. You know I have been prepared for this some
-time,” she said, with sweet resignation. “It only remains now for me to
-make my arrangements for the end.”
-
-Pansy’s irrepressible sobs drowned her voice for a while, but when the
-agitated girl had grown calmer she continued:
-
-“I have telegraphed for my husband’s cousin, who will inherit the
-fortune whose income I am using, to come at once to San Diego; and he
-will attend to all the final arrangements. I will be buried here, as
-my husband was lost at sea many years ago, and it matters not to me
-where my ashes repose, as they can never rest beside his. I wish, my
-dear girl, that I had a fortune to leave you, more especially as the
-man who will inherit mine does not need it, being already very wealthy.
-But my husband’s wealth, as I never bore him any children, reverts by
-his will to his own family.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XII. BEGINNING OVER AGAIN.
-
-
-Colonel Falconer, the man whose coming was so anxiously expected by
-Mrs. Beach, arrived in ten days at San Diego; but the invalid had died
-just a few hours before his arrival.
-
-Poor Pansy was once more alone in the world, for Colonel Falconer,
-though full of pity and sympathy for the friendless girl, could not
-be to her such a friend as he wished. He was fifty years old, and a
-bachelor, therefore if he had offered to divide with her the fortune
-that had come to him by Mrs. Beach’s death the world would have caviled.
-
-He was a typical Virginian, generous and true-hearted, and he grieved
-that such should be the case, for he would willingly have made ample
-provision for the support of the lovely, penniless girl who had been so
-dear to his deceased relative.
-
-“It is a deuced shame that my hands are tied in this way. I feel mean,
-taking all that money and seeing that beautiful little creature go
-out to earn her own living,” he said to himself the day after the
-funeral, when Pansy had come to him to tell him, with a pale, sad
-little face, that she had been so fortunate as to be offered a place in
-a real-estate office as a typewriter.
-
-“I have accepted the place, and will enter on my duties to-morrow,” she
-said simply; and then he drew forward a chair, and begged her to be
-seated.
-
-“It seems very sad that you should be left alone like this. Have you no
-relations, no friends, Miss Wilcox?”
-
-Pansy flushed warmly, then grew pale again, and, after a moment’s
-hesitancy, said:
-
-“I came from Louisville to this place with Mrs. Beach because I wished
-to work for myself. My father was dead, my mother had married again,
-and my stepfather was not kind to me. I prefer to remain in California
-alone, rather than to return to my own home.”
-
-“She is a plucky little thing,” thought the colonel admiringly, and he
-answered, aloud:
-
-“I don’t know but what you’re right, Miss Wilcox, and I admire your
-independence. I want you to promise one thing: You will let me be your
-friend? I shall remain in San Diego some time yet, and if you will
-permit me to call on you sometimes I shall be very glad.”
-
-He did not mean to lose sight of her if he could help it, for he had
-a fancy that if Mrs. Beach had lived to see him again she would have
-commended her protégée to his care.
-
-“Hang it all, if I were twenty years younger I’d marry her if she would
-have me,” he said to himself, when she had gone out, after giving her
-consent to his request and telling him where she should go to board. It
-was at a very simple, unpretentious place, for in San Diego, as in all
-of the rapidly growing towns of southern California, board and lodging
-were very high. It would take all of her salary to support her even in
-a simple fashion.
-
-Colonel Falconer knew this well, and his heart ached for the brave,
-beautiful girl who had made a stronger impression on him than any woman
-he had ever met. When she bade him good-by that afternoon and went away
-with Mrs. Beach’s maid, who was also rendered homeless by the death of
-her mistress, he felt a strangely tender yearning to take the beautiful
-girl in his arms and kiss away the tears that he saw trembling on her
-long, curling lashes.
-
-He retained the Chinese servants, and stayed on at the cottage during
-the summer, and in that time he managed to see a great deal of
-beautiful little Pansy, although he knew that it was unwise, for he
-soon found that his ardent admiration for the lovely girl was deepening
-into love.
-
-If he had been younger he would have proposed to marry her; but it
-seemed to him that Pansy would only laugh at the idea of having such an
-old fellow for a husband.
-
-He did not know how Pansy was touched by his kindness and friendship.
-She was very lonely, for the few acquaintances she had made during
-Mrs. Beach’s life did not trouble themselves about her now that she
-was poor and friendless. They were rich, fashionable people, too, who
-had no time, if they had had the inclination, to look after any one
-not in society. They were very gracious to Colonel Falconer, but that
-little typewriter girl to whom he was so attentive--that was altogether
-different. Some there were who hinted to him that it was a mistake on
-his part to show her so much kindness. It would spoil her for her
-humbler lot, awaken in her aspirations for higher things than she could
-reasonably expect.
-
-They set Colonel Falconer thinking, and the upshot of it was that he
-went away to San Francisco for several months. He did not go to bid
-Pansy good-by, but simply sent her a note of farewell, saying that he
-would write her sometimes and requesting the favor of a reply.
-
-“Oh, how I miss him! It was like having a kind elder brother,” Pansy
-sighed to herself, and now the evenings and Sundays grew very lonely,
-indeed.
-
-There were no more pleasant drives Sunday afternoons, spinning over the
-sands past the glittering bay; no more books, nor fruits and flowers.
-There was a young clerk in the office where she worked who would have
-made love to her if she would have noticed him, but she never did, and
-in her loneliness her thoughts went back more and more to her lost love
-and her dead past.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIII. IN A BOARDING HOUSE.
-
-
-Perhaps it was the brooding over the past and the pain and remorse that
-wore upon Pansy until she fell ill and had that long fever, although
-some of the little household declared that it was something she had
-read in a Southern paper.
-
-When Colonel Falconer, who had grown uneasy because his last letter to
-Pansy was not answered, came suddenly back to San Diego, he found that
-the girl had been ill of a brain fever for several weeks.
-
-The mistress of the boarding house, who had been very kind to the sick
-girl, explained everything as well as she could:
-
-“She had been looking droopy an’ peaked some time, an’ her appetite no
-better than a baby’s, when she kem inter the parlor one Sunday after
-church, an’ set down to read. All at once she screamed out, an’ fell
-in a faint. She had this paper in her hand, an’ I’ll allus believe
-she read something in it that was bad news to her. But I’ve read it
-through an’ through, and I can’t guess what ’tis. Maybe you kin.”
-
-She put the newspaper in his hand--one almost two months old. It was a
-daily paper, published at Richmond, Virginia.
-
-“I do not think anything in this could have affected her. She was from
-Kentucky. Where did she get this?” he asked.
-
-“Some transient boarder must have left it, I think. It had been laying
-around on the parlor table several days when she picked it up.”
-
-He went over the paper carefully--the deaths, the marriages--but he
-saw nothing about any one by the name of Wilcox. There was a society
-column, and he went over that, too, although he did not expect to find
-anything relating to her, for she had been very careful to impress
-upon his mind, with a sort of proud humility, that she belonged to the
-humble walks of life.
-
-“Ah!” he exclaimed suddenly.
-
-“You’ve found it?” exclaimed Mrs. Scruggs.
-
-“Oh, no, nothing relating to her,” he answered quickly.
-
-The paragraph that had surprised him was this:
-
- Norman Wylde has returned from his long sojourn abroad, and his
- much-talked-of marriage to the beautiful Miss Ives will take place
- very soon.
-
-Major Falconer knew both parties very well, but he had never spoken of
-them to Pansy. He forgot both almost immediately in his anxiety over
-the sick girl.
-
-“Mrs. Scruggs, I wonder if I might see her? I am a very old friend,” he
-said.
-
-“She is sitting up a little while to-day. I know she would be glad to
-see you,” was the answer, and she immediately conducted him to Pansy’s
-room.
-
-The sick girl was so surprised that she uttered a cry of joy. Her blue
-eyes lighted with pleasure.
-
-“Oh, I am so glad!” she exclaimed impulsively.
-
-Mrs. Scruggs went quietly out. He knelt down by her side and kissed her
-little hands with the ardor of a younger lover.
-
-Yes, all his prudent resolves had melted before his joy at seeing her
-again, and his pity for her suffering. Gently, so as not to startle her
-from him, he told her of his love, and begged her to be his wife.
-
-“I am old enough to be your father, I know; but my heart is young, and,
-then, I could take such good care of you, my darling,” he said.
-
-“Oh, you are too good to me, and I--I could not love you enough,” she
-faltered.
-
-“I would teach you to love me,” he answered. And she had such a deep
-regard for him that it seemed to her that it would be very easy to
-learn that lesson.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIV. A SECOND MARRIAGE.
-
-
-San Diego had a sensation when Colonel Falconer, the rich Southerner,
-married the beautiful young typewriter within a few days after his
-return from San Francisco.
-
-He had pleaded for an early marriage, and she, after some hesitancy,
-had consented.
-
-“There is no one whose consent I have to ask, I suppose?” he said; and,
-after a moment’s silence, she answered:
-
-“No, there is no one. I have reason to think that my mother believes me
-dead. I have no wish to undeceive her.”
-
-“But does not that seem cruel?” he asked, and tears started to her eyes
-as she answered bitterly:
-
-“She has her new husband and other children to comfort her for my loss.”
-
-He said no more on the subject, and preparations were made for a speedy
-marriage. He declared that that would be best, and Pansy could not
-gainsay the assertion. Her small stock of money had been exhausted
-during her illness, and she was still too weak to go back to work.
-
-So when her lover declared that they would be married quietly this
-week, and go at once upon a wedding tour abroad, she did not make any
-objection to the plan. She was glad to have her way smoothed out before
-her by his kindly, generous hand.
-
-“Oh, how good he is to me--how noble! I wish that I could love him more
-in return for all his goodness,” she thought, sadly contrasting her
-gentle, quiet affection for this good man with the passionate love she
-had felt for one less worthy.
-
-“Perhaps even now he is the husband of haughty Juliette Ives,” she
-thought, and grew cold and pale at the fancy.
-
-She believed that she hated Norman Wylde, and she trusted that she
-might never meet him on earth again. To Colonel Falconer she gave the
-utmost respect, and a placid, gentle affection utterly unlike that
-ardent passion which she had outlived and outworn, as she believed, in
-her heart.
-
-She thought it a little strange that he never mentioned any of his
-relatives, and, the day before they were married, she said:
-
-“Are you sure that none of your grand relatives will object to your
-marrying a poor little typewriter girl?”
-
-To her surprise, he started and looked visibly embarrassed.
-
-“Ah, I made a clever guess!” she exclaimed, with faint sarcasm, and
-then he recovered himself.
-
-“No--yes,” he stammered, and then added: “I have no near relatives,
-Pansy, except a widowed sister. She has one child--a beautiful
-daughter, who has counted confidently on being my heiress. I think they
-both will feel disappointed at hearing of my marriage, but they have no
-right to do so. My sister has a neat little fortune of her own, and her
-daughter is soon to marry a rich man.”
-
-“Then you have not written to ask their consent?” Pansy asked, with
-unconscious bitterness, feeling an unaccountable antagonism to those
-two unknown ones.
-
-“Certainly not,” Colonel Falconer answered, with some surprise, and
-continued: “I’m ashamed to confess that I don’t pretend to keep up any
-correspondence with my sister. I have written her once since I came to
-San Diego. She has not answered yet, so I shall not take the trouble to
-announce my marriage to her until we are safe on the other side of the
-Atlantic. She will be glad for such bad news to be delayed,” laughing
-grimly.
-
-Afterward it seemed strange to her that she had never thought of asking
-the names of these people, who would soon be related to her so closely
-by her marriage with Colonel Falconer. And it seemed equally strange
-that he did not tell her without the asking. There was a fate in it,
-she told herself, when she came to know, for if she had heard those two
-names she would never have married Colonel Falconer, and run the risk
-of again meeting Norman Wylde.
-
-The next day they were married quietly at church, but there were quite
-a number of people present, for the affair had become known through the
-gossip of the delighted Mrs. Scruggs. Pansy remembered with a bitter
-thrill that ceremony in Washington, which had made her so blindly
-happy.
-
-“Poor, deluded fool that I was!” she sighed, thinking how much sadder
-and wiser she had grown since then, for now she was past twenty,
-although she looked so fair and girlish no one would have thought she
-was more than sixteen.
-
-They left San Diego directly, and went abroad. They spent a year in
-travel, and in that time Pansy learned much and improved much. The
-clouds passed from her beautiful face, and she was tranquilly happy
-with her husband, save when one blighting memory intervened. It was the
-thought of Norman Wylde and the dark episode in her life that she had
-concealed from Colonel Falconer.
-
-“He believes me pure and good; he has the greatest confidence in my
-goodness; yet all the while I am hiding from him a dark secret which I
-dare not disclose. Heaven grant he may never find out the truth, for it
-would be so hard for me to convince him that I was innocent, although
-so foully wronged,” she thought often, when the unfailing kindness of
-her husband touched her with ardent admiration for his noble nature and
-awakened self-reproach within her sensitive mind.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XV. STARTLING NEWS.
-
-
-Colonel Falconer had written, quite six months before, to his
-relatives, apprising them of his marriage to a beautiful young girl
-in California, but apparently they did not have any congratulations
-to offer him, or they were deeply offended, for no reply came to his
-letter.
-
-“I am glad that they can afford to be so independent,” he thought, with
-pique and contempt commingled.
-
-He felt quite sure that they were indignant at the marriage that
-deprived his niece of her anticipations of being his heiress, and he
-resented the way in which they had treated him.
-
-“Not even to wish me joy, after all the kindness they have received
-from me,” he said bitterly; and, dismissing them from his thoughts, he
-gave all his attention to his lovely young bride, who was so grateful
-for his love, and who seemed to return it in a shy, gentle fashion that
-was very pleasing.
-
-They had not given a thought to returning home yet, when one morning
-he found in his morning’s mail an American letter, broadly edged with
-black. He turned pale as he caught it up, exclaiming:
-
-“Juliette’s handwriting! My sister must be dead!”
-
-And, tearing it open, he ran his eyes hastily over the black-edged
-sheet.
-
-Pansy watched him with startled eyes. That name Juliette had touched an
-unpleasant chord in her memory.
-
-Colonel Falconer heaved a long sigh, and placed the letter in her hands.
-
-Pansy, womanlike, read the name at the end first. It was traced in
-ornate characters, but it stung her like a serpent’s fang:
-
- Your unhappy niece,
- JULIETTE IVES.
-
-She glanced at the top of the sheet, and read:
-
- RICHMOND, Virginia.
-
-Colonel Falconer had walked to the window of their pretty breakfast
-room, and was looking out--perhaps to hide a moisture in his eyes.
-
-He did not see how pale grew the beautiful face of his young wife, nor
-how her jeweled hands trembled as they held the letter before her eyes.
-She read on, with a sinking heart:
-
- DEAR UNCLE: This is to tell you that mamma died yesterday, although I
- do not suppose you will care much, as you are so happy with the wife
- who crowded poor mamma and me out of your heart. She died suddenly,
- of heart disease, from which she suffered so long, and I am left
- penniless and friendless, for she spent everything she had before she
- died. We would have been more saving, but you always let us think I
- would have your money, and I think the news of your marriage hastened
- her death, she was so disappointed.
-
- Now what am I to do? I have no money, as you know, and I am not
- fitted to work for my living. Has your wife turned your heart against
- me, or are you willing to take mamma’s place and support me in the
- style I’ve been used to? I suppose I’ll be married, some time,
- although poor girls don’t stand much chance. I don’t think Norman
- would care for poverty, though, if only he would come to his senses
- in other things. I am here in your house still. We were glad you left
- us that when you married so suddenly and strangely. I’ve promised
- the servants you will pay their wages. I hope you will come home and
- settle with the people mamma owed. I charged the funeral expenses to
- you. I knew you wouldn’t mind. Please answer at once, and let me know
- what to expect from you.
-
- Your unhappy niece,
- JULIETTE IVES.
-
-“So she is my husband’s niece? What a fatality!” Pansy murmured to
-herself, fighting hard against the weakness and faintness stealing over
-her. “And Norman Wylde has not married her yet,” her thoughts ran on,
-with a sort of bitter triumph.
-
-She sat silent, crushing the black-bordered sheet in her hands, her
-heart beating slowly and heavily in her breast, a chill presentiment of
-evil stealing over her mind.
-
-“Is it possible that I shall have to come in contact again with that
-proud, cruel girl? Oh, if I had only known this I should never have
-married Colonel Falconer,” she thought bitterly.
-
-Colonel Falconer turned around suddenly from the window.
-
-“Well, my dear, what do you think of my niece’s letter?” he asked.
-
-Pansy’s face flamed and her eyes flashed.
-
-“I think it is impertinent, selfish, and heartless,” she answered
-spiritedly.
-
-He sighed, for that was his own impression of the letter, although he
-hated to acknowledge it, even to himself. What hurt him most was her
-half-contemptuous allusions to his wife, and the fact that she had
-disdained to send a single kindly message to the woman who was, by
-marriage, at least, her near relative.
-
-“Juliette is a spoiled child. She has been pampered and indulged until
-she considers no one but herself,” he said uneasily.
-
-“That is easy to be seen,” she answered, with a touch of scorn.
-
-“But there is some excuse for her just now,” continued the colonel, who
-could not overcome at once the habit of long years of affection. “We
-must consider the petulance of affliction, so natural in one reared
-selfishly and luxuriously, as Juliette has been. Then, too, the poor
-girl has had a love trouble that has helped to sour her temper.”
-
-“A love trouble?” Pansy questioned, in a thick voice, without looking
-up.
-
-“Yes; she was engaged several years ago to a Mr. Wylde, of Richmond--a
-fine young man in every respect, handsome, rich, and of fine family.
-Juliette adored him, and was very jealous, so that when he engaged
-in a flirtation with a designing little beauty of the lower classes
-Juliette would take no excuses, but dismissed him in bitter anger. He
-went abroad, leaving her to repent her harshness, and to try to mourn
-her haste; for love soon conquered pride, and she would give the world
-now to win him back. I had reason, a year ago, to believe that they had
-made up their quarrel and would soon be married, but I was mistaken,
-and Juliette no doubt is still pining for her lost lover.”
-
-Pansy made no comment, for her husband’s words still rang in her ears:
-
-“‘A designing little beauty of the lower classes.’ Oh, what if he knew!
-what if he knew!” she thought, in terror that held her lips dumb.
-
-Colonel Falconer took up a package of newspapers, and drew out one--the
-Richmond _Dispatch_.
-
-“Ah, this, too, is from Juliette. No doubt it contains the notice of
-her mother’s death,” he said.
-
-His surmise was correct. It recorded the death of Mrs. Ives, at the age
-of fifty-four, for she had been his elder by several years.
-
-He placed the paper, as he had done the letter, before Pansy’s eyes;
-and she read and reread the words announcing her enemy’s death, but in
-a dull, mechanical way, without any triumph in the fact that those
-cruel lips would never utter any falsehoods against her again. She felt
-half dazed by the suddenness with which the past had risen before her
-just as she began to hope and believe that it was buried forever.
-
-Her dull eyes traveled soberly up and down the short list of married
-and dead, and suddenly a wild gleam came into them. A familiar name had
-caught her attention. She read:
-
- On the 6th instant, at the residence of her mother, on Church Hill,
- Rosa Laurens, aged nine years and seven days, of diphtheria. Funeral
- private.
-
-It was Pansy’s youngest sister--the baby, as she was always called in
-the family. A wave of passionate grief overflowed Pansy’s heart and
-forced a cry of despair from her white lips. Then she slipped from her
-chair and lay in a long swoon upon the floor.
-
-When reason returned she was lying upon her bed, with her maid chafing
-her cold hands anxiously, and her husband bending over her with
-frightened eyes.
-
-“Oh, Pansy, what a shock you have given me!” he exclaimed; and as
-everything rushed quickly over her she realized that she must hide her
-troubles under a mask of smiles.
-
-With a pitiful attempt at gayety, she faltered:
-
-“You must learn not to be frightened at a woman’s fainting. It means
-nothing but temporary weakness.”
-
-“Are you sure of that?” he asked. “Because----” Then he paused.
-
-“What?” she questioned.
-
-“I feared you had read something in that paper that grieved or
-frightened you,” he answered, remembering at the same time that when
-she had that illness in California Mrs. Scruggs had asserted that
-something she had read in a paper was the primary cause.
-
-But Pansy denied that anything in the paper had affected her in the
-least.
-
-“How could it be so, when I had never been in Richmond, and knew no
-one there?” she said. “Besides, I had but just taken the paper and had
-read nothing but your sister’s death, when suddenly I felt my strength
-leaving me, and I fell. Tell him, Phebe,” she said, looking at her
-maid, “that it is a very common occurrence for ladies to faint.”
-
-Phebe asserted that all fashionable ladies were given to fainting, and
-his own experience bore him out in the fact. The only difference was
-that he had never regarded Pansy in the light of a society lady. She
-was a beautiful, natural child of nature, he had been proud to think.
-
-She insisted on getting up to dress and to drive in the park.
-
-“I want fresh air,” she said; and, looking at her pale cheeks and heavy
-eyes, he thought so, too.
-
-“Mind you don’t give me another such scare shortly,” he said, as he
-went out to order the carriage, for they had taken a pretty house in
-Park Lane for the season, and surrounded themselves with luxuries. They
-had been going into society some little, but neither cared much for it.
-He had seen enough of it to be blasé, and she was timid.
-
-When they were driving along he said abruptly:
-
-“I suppose we must make some plans for my poor niece. What do you say,
-darling? Shall we go home and take care of Juliette?”
-
-“Oh, must we go home? I am so happy here!” she cried.
-
-“But I shall be obliged to go back and settle up my sister’s affairs,
-Pansy.”
-
-“Couldn’t you leave me, and come back when you had fixed everything?”
-she inquired vaguely.
-
-“But--Juliette?” he objected.
-
-“Couldn’t you give her some money, and leave her there with--with some
-of her friends?”
-
-He looked in surprise at the girl who was usually so sweet and gentle.
-Her words sounded heartless.
-
-“How strangely you talk--as if you had taken a dislike to that poor
-orphan girl whom you have never even seen,” he said severely.
-
-“Oh, forgive me!” she cried, frightened at his displeasure. Nestling
-closer to his side, she murmured: “It is naughty of me, I know, but I
-can’t help feeling jealous of that girl you like so much. She will come
-between us. We will never be as happy again as we were in this past
-year.”
-
-“Nonsense!” he answered; but he was secretly pleased at her jealousy,
-although there was really no cause for it, as he hastened to assure
-her. “I am only thinking of what people will say,” he explained. “I am
-sure we should be happier without her, spoiled little beauty that she
-is. But she has no relative but me, and if I desert her people will say
-that it is all your fault. Do you realize this, my pet?”
-
-Yes, she began to realize it with a sort of wonder. The fate of
-Juliette Ives, her bitter enemy, lay in her hands to make or mar. She
-knew that she could mold her noble husband to her will if she chose;
-could make Juliette Ives’ life infinitely bitter and hard. For a moment
-she was pleased with the thought, half tempted to use her power.
-
-Then her better nature triumphed. She flung revenge to the winds.
-
-“I cannot do it. I cannot be so mean,” she thought, with keen
-self-scorn. “Poor soul! Why should I blame her? We both suffered
-through his falsity, and now I will be her friend if she will let me.”
-
-With all that she knew of Juliette, she did not fully comprehend the
-girl’s ignoble soul. She pitied her, and, out of a generous impulse,
-resolved to stand her friend.
-
-“I will go back with you, Colonel Falconer, and I will try to be a true
-friend to your orphan niece,” she said, believing that as his wife she
-could fairly run the risk of a return to her old home.
-
-“I look older now. No one will recognize me,” she decided confidently.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVI. THE SAD RETURN.
-
-
-In due course of time Juliette Ives received a kind letter from her
-absent uncle, stating that he would return with his wife to Richmond
-within the month.
-
- “You may rest assured, my dear girl, that I intend to act fairly
- by you,” he wrote. “Of course I cannot leave you my fortune, as
- I expected to do if I died single; but you shall receive a fair
- portion of it, so you need not consider yourself penniless. I will
- also pay your mother’s debts. For the rest, your home will be with
- us. My charming wife, who is even younger than yourself, will be
- your warmest friend if you show any disposition toward friendship.
- I inferred from your letter--in which you neglected to send Mrs.
- Falconer a single kind message--that you seriously resented my
- marriage. Of course you understand that my young wife is to be
- treated with all respect and consideration. While you have a strong
- claim on my love and kindness, she has a stronger one, which you
- must never for an instant forget. But I need hardly caution you on
- these points, as your own good sense will sufficiently instruct you.
- Besides, I expect that you will at once fall in love with Pansy’s
- sweet disposition and lovely face.”
-
-“Pansy--Pansy!” Miss Ives muttered sharply, as she flung the obnoxious
-letter on the floor. “So that is her name! Strange that, as that
-name once came between me and love, it should now come between me and
-fortune. Why, if I had not hated her already, I should loathe her for
-that name!”
-
-She was alone in the spacious and elegant parlor of Colonel Falconer’s
-elegant residence on Franklin Street. She wore deep, lusterless black
-that set off her delicate blond beauty to great advantage, and she
-moved with the air of some princess, so proud was her step, so haughty
-the curve of her white throat.
-
-“It is going to be war to the knife between us--I foresee that,” she
-muttered hoarsely. “I mean to make her life as disagreeable as I can,
-out of revenge for the evil she has wrought for me. Yes, she shall not
-sleep upon a bed of roses in this house! I shall be as disrespectful
-as I please. They dare not turn me out of the house for fear of people
-talking, as I am his own niece.”
-
-A few days later she received a telegram from New York, stating that
-Colonel Falconer and wife had arrived in that city, would remain there
-a week, and then come on to Richmond.
-
-Pansy had persuaded her husband to remain in New York and show her the
-sights of the great city. At heart she cared little for it, but it
-served as a pretext to delay for a little her return to her old home,
-and to the memories that would crowd upon her there.
-
-But at last the time was over, and no further pretext could delay her
-going. Pale and heartsick, she was standing on the steamer’s deck
-beside her husband while they rounded the last curve of James River,
-that brought picturesque Libby Hill into full view, with all its
-bittersweet memories.
-
-It was three years and a half since she had crouched on yonder hill, a
-forlorn little figure with wet eyes and a pale, pale face, watching the
-steamer bearing away her young husband on that mission which he said
-was to make him rich enough to claim the bride he had wedded in secret.
-How it all rushed over her again as she stood there by the side of her
-proud, rich husband, and listened mechanically as he pointed out with
-pride and enthusiasm the beauties of the river and the land.
-
-“How glad I am to be in Virginia again!” he exclaimed; but Pansy’s
-smile was sadder than tears.
-
-Juliette had sent the family carriage, with its high-stepping bay
-horses, to meet them, and soon they were borne swiftly toward their
-home; but while Colonel Falconer’s thoughts went toward Franklin Street
-and its aristocratic environments, his fair young bride was thinking of
-the humble house on Church Hill, where her mother was mourning the loss
-of her youngest born--the household pet.
-
-“Oh, mother, mother, mother, if only I dared go to you in your sorrow!”
-was the cry of her heart.
-
-But she knew that she must remain dead to that beloved mother. There
-was her husband and her position to be considered, and there was
-Willie, who had sworn in his wrath to kill the sister who had brought
-disgrace on a respectable family. Her own safety, if nothing else,
-demanded silence.
-
-“Here we are, my darling, at home!” exclaimed Colonel Falconer’s voice,
-seeming to come from far away, so intently had she been brooding over
-her sorrows.
-
-She glanced out, and saw the sunset gleams lighting up, like
-jewels, the windows of an old-fashioned red brick mansion, set in
-a pretty green lawn studded with shrubbery and flowers. He looked
-up at the broad porch, guarded by two lions, and said, in a tone of
-disappointment:
-
-“Juliette is too dignified to come out on the porch to welcome us home.
-She will be waiting in the hall.”
-
-He led his lovely bride up the steps, and, with a strong effort of
-will, Pansy threw off her agitation and braced herself to meet Juliette
-Ives with pride and dignity equal to her own.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVII. A DRAMATIC MEETING.
-
-
-Yes, Juliette was waiting in the hall.
-
-The day was warm, and she wore a black dress, rich in quality, but of
-a soft, diaphanous material, through which her neck and arms gleamed
-snowy white. Her golden hair was arranged so as to make the very most
-of its beauty. She wished to overawe her uncle’s wife, if possible,
-with her dignity and beauty.
-
-The door opened, and as soon as Colonel Falconer appeared she rushed to
-his arms with theatrical effect. He returned her kiss, and disengaged
-himself as soon as possible from her embrace, that he might present her
-to the beautiful creature waiting in the background:
-
-“My wife, Juliette.”
-
-Juliette looked, and saw a figure of medium height, but so exquisitely
-slender, though rounded, that it looked taller. It was clothed in a
-Parisian suit of dove gray, and from under the demure little bonnet
-looked the loveliest face in the world--sweet yet spirited, with
-exquisite features, dazzling complexion, and eyes of purplish blue
-under lovely curling lashes, dark as night.
-
-But what was it that made Juliette stare in wonder and gasp in fear?
-She caught her uncle’s arm, and he felt her trembling from head to foot.
-
-“Juliette, my poor girl, this meeting has unnerved you,” he exclaimed
-pityingly, and Pansy advanced, as if to offer assistance, but was
-instantly repulsed, Juliette flinging out a frantic arm to keep her off.
-
-“Keep back, keep back! Do not come near me with that face!” she hissed
-angrily; and Pansy looked at her husband in cold amazement.
-
-“Has Miss Ives gone suddenly mad?” she demanded haughtily, and at the
-sound of her voice, so cold yet silvery sweet, Juliette shrank closer
-to her uncle, crying out:
-
-“I am not mad, uncle, but I shall be soon if you do not take away that
-ghost! Oh, that face, that voice! They have been drowned almost three
-years, and now they rise to haunt me from their watery grave!”
-
-She began to scream with actual terror, bringing the housekeeper and
-several servants to the scene. Her uncle caught her in his arms and
-carried her into the parlor, saying to Pansy over his shoulder:
-
-“Keep out of sight a few moments, dear, and I will bring her to her
-senses. She has evidently been startled by your likeness to some one
-she has known.”
-
-Pansy sat down just inside the parlor door, which she carefully closed,
-thus shutting out the gaping servants. Colonel Falconer set himself to
-the task of quieting his hysterical niece.
-
-Believing herself alone with him, she soon grew calmer, and asked:
-
-“Oh, uncle, where did you find that girl? I thought she was dead!”
-
-“Of whom does she remind you, dear?” he asked soothingly.
-
-Shivering with terror, she replied:
-
-“Of Pansy Laurens, the girl who made all the trouble between Norman and
-myself. You know, it was thought she drowned herself, but now I can no
-longer believe it, for surely this is no other than Pansy Laurens!”
-
-Pansy sat motionless, and heard her husband saying sternly:
-
-“You will oblige me, Juliette, by never making such foolish remarks
-again. I never saw Pansy Laurens; but if my wife resembles her, that
-is nothing but a chance likeness. Mrs. Falconer was a Miss Wilcox, of
-Louisville, and has never been in Richmond until to-day.”
-
-“Oh, uncle, are you sure? For indeed she frightened me with her
-awful likeness, although I believe she is prettier than that Laurens
-creature,” gasped Juliette.
-
-“Prettier--well, I should say so! My wife is the loveliest creature on
-earth!” exclaimed the jovial colonel.
-
-But Juliette, still shivering, sighed:
-
-“How can I live in the same house with that face and voice?”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVIII. A FALSE SMILE.
-
-
-Colonel Falconer began to grow angry at Juliette’s foolishness, as he
-called it to himself. Drawing back from her, he said stiffly:
-
-“If you cannot live in the same house with my wife, Juliette, you are
-quite at liberty to seek a boarding house anywhere you choose, and I
-will pay your board and furnish you pin money.”
-
-Juliette sprang upright in a perfect fury, shrieking out:
-
-“You are planning to get rid of me already!”
-
-Before the poor, badgered man could reply, Pansy came gliding forward,
-and said sweetly:
-
-“Perhaps Miss Ives would prefer for us to go away, and leave her in
-possession of the house. If so, I am perfectly willing to do so, as I
-fear we shall not get on together, judging from what I have already
-seen of her disposition toward me.”
-
-She hoped that Juliette would take her at her word, and that by this
-means she would be enabled to leave this once dear, now dreaded, city.
-She was frightened, too, at Juliette’s recognition of her, and foresaw
-trouble if she remained.
-
-But Juliette was startled at her uncle’s proposition, and she began
-to come to her senses. She remembered that but for his liberality she
-must be a beggar, and she dared not try him too far. Summoning a false,
-sweet smile to her lips, she turned to him, and exclaimed:
-
-“Dear uncle, forgive me. I fear I have been acting very foolishly. Of
-course, I do not want to go away from the only relative I have in the
-world, now that poor mamma is dead. I love you too well to leave you,
-or to drive you from me. And, indeed, I was preparing to welcome my new
-aunt with affection, when her striking likeness so startled me that I
-behaved ridiculously, I fear, on the impulse of the moment. You will
-excuse me, Mrs. Falconer, will you not?” turning to Pansy and holding
-out a hand sparkling with costly gems.
-
-Pansy clasped the offered hand with one as cold as ice, even through
-its tiny gray kid glove, as she replied:
-
-“Certainly, Miss Ives, for I am anxious to be your friend, if you will
-let me.”
-
-“Oh, thank you! I shall only be too glad, for I had feared that a
-beautiful young wife would prejudice my uncle against me, and I am
-glad to find that it is not so,” exclaimed Juliette, with pretended
-cordiality. Rising to her feet, she continued: “Excuse me one moment,
-while I see if your rooms are in readiness.”
-
-She ran hastily to her own apartment, where she secured a framed
-photograph of Norman Wylde, which she placed conspicuously on the
-mantel of Pansy’s room.
-
-“I believe she is Pansy Laurens, and I shall prepare many a severe test
-for her,” she muttered angrily, as she returned to the parlor and told
-Pansy, with a show of friendliness, that her rooms were in readiness,
-and she was ready to show them to her.
-
-They walked side by side through the broad hall, with its Turkish
-carpet, statuary in niches, and stands of blooming flowers, up the
-broad stairway to a suite of beautiful rooms in cream and scarlet.
-
-“I hope you will like these rooms. Mamma had them furnished over but
-a few months ago. Mine are like these, only in blue,” said Juliette,
-with a patronizing air that at once aroused a teasing mood in Pansy,
-and she exclaimed:
-
-“Then I ought to have had your rooms instead of these, for blue is my
-color, too!”
-
-She saw a frown contract Juliette’s eyebrows, but she took no notice,
-and walked over to the mantel, where the first thing she saw was the
-handsome face of Norman Wylde smiling on her from an easel frame. It
-gave her a start, but she had nerved herself to meet even the original
-in this house, and now she merely lifted her arm to take up a piece of
-bric-a-brac and examine it more closely, when the hanging sleeve of her
-light gray wrap caught the top of the small easel, and it was instantly
-hurled to the floor.
-
-“Oh, what have I broken?” she cried, in pretended dismay. And Juliette
-came forward to gather up the fragments.
-
-“The easel is broken, but the photograph is unhurt. See,” she said,
-holding it up before Pansy’s eyes and watching her closely; but Pansy
-glanced at it with the careless interest of a stranger.
-
-“What a handsome young man!” she said. “Is he one of your admirers,
-Miss Ives?”
-
-“I was once engaged to him,” Juliette answered. “I will take it away,”
-she added, hurrying out of the room to conceal her chagrin at the
-failure of her first test.
-
-She could not decide whether the accident had been a real one or not.
-Pansy had carried it out with such perfect ease that she began to
-falter in her belief that this was Pansy Laurens.
-
-“I may possibly be mistaken, but the likeness is so startling that I
-shall test her in every way,” she decided.
-
-The next morning Pansy appeared at their late breakfast in such an
-exquisite and becoming morning gown that Juliette could not repress her
-admiration, in spite of the anger with which she saw her uncle’s wife
-take her place in front of the coffee urn.
-
-“I thought you would be too tired to pour coffee this first morning,”
-she said, almost angrily.
-
-“Oh, no, indeed. I feel quite well, thank you,” was the bright reply,
-and, as her white hands fluttered like birds over the china and silver,
-she continued: “Colonel Falconer, I hope you are going to take me for
-a long drive to-day so that I may see some of the beauties of your
-historic Richmond.”
-
-“Just what I was thinking of, my love,” said her husband. “You will
-join us, will you not, Juliette?”
-
-“Gladly,” she replied, thinking that she would thereby have another
-opportunity of testing Pansy’s identity.
-
-After breakfast Pansy invited her to come upstairs, where her maid was
-unpacking her trunks, saying that she had brought her some presents
-from London.
-
-“Of course, as I had never seen you, I could not have decided what
-would be most becoming to you had not my husband assisted me with a
-description of your style and tastes,” she said. And when Juliette saw
-the beautiful gifts that had been chosen for her she could not help
-being pleased, both with the taste and generosity displayed by Pansy,
-whom she thanked quite prettily, saying:
-
-“I did you an injustice, feeling jealous of uncle’s love for you, when
-all the time you were planning these pleasant surprises for me.”
-
-Pansy hardly knew whether to trust these sweet protestations or not.
-She would have liked to be at peace with Juliette Ives, but she could
-not help distrusting her, and she resolved to watch her closely before
-she quite discarded her distrust.
-
-Juliette lay lazily back in a great crimson chair and watched Phebe,
-the maid, unpacking Pansy’s beautiful clothes. She was obliged to own
-that she had never seen such a magnificent trousseau as that with which
-Colonel Falconer had provided his lovely bride.
-
-“You are a woman to be envied, Mrs. Falconer,” she said; and Pansy
-sighed faintly, although Juliette could not have told whether the sigh
-meant supreme content or some hidden sorrow.
-
-“She does not look as if she had always been really happy. There are
-pensive curves about her lips when she is not smiling, and now and then
-her eyes look anxious,” the girl decided.
-
-In the afternoon an elegant open barouche took the three out riding,
-and Colonel Falconer felt very proud of his beautiful wife and almost
-equally beautiful niece, in their carriage costumes.
-
-It was a lovely May day, and the city presented its best appearance
-under a blue, smiling sky, which every Virginian believed as fair as
-that of Italy. They rode out upon the popular Grove Road, then the
-most fashionable drive in the city, and to that beautiful place, the
-New Reservoir, with its bright waters glittering in the sun. Pansy
-exclaimed with delight at the miniature lake, with the water lilies
-fringing the green banks, and the little boats rocking on its breast.
-
-Then the beautiful cemetery of Hollywood, with its magnificent monument
-to the Confederate dead, was the next point of interest. Colonel
-Falconer then gave the command to drive through the principal parks and
-streets.
-
-“Do not forget Seventh Street,” Juliette whispered to the driver, and
-when they were rolling along before an immense structure on that street
-she said: “That building, Mrs. Falconer, is the great tobacco factory
-of Arnell & Grey. They employ an immense number of girls and women to
-work for them--twelve hundred at least, I am told. Would you not like
-to go through the factory? I presume it would furnish some interesting
-sights to one unfamiliar with our Southern institutions.”
-
-“I dare say it would, but unfortunately the smell of tobacco always
-makes me very ill. Colonel Falconer, cannot we drive faster, so as to
-escape this unpleasant odor?” exclaimed Pansy. He saw that her face had
-certainly grown very pale, while her eyes were half closed. He directed
-the driver to hasten out of the neighborhood.
-
-“I am sorry it sickened you, but the odor was strong,” said Juliette.
-“I do not know how those poor girls endure it. Their very clothing must
-be impregnated with the disagreeable odor. But perhaps they do not mind
-it like you and I, Mrs. Falconer--useless, fine ladies that we are.”
-
-Mrs. Falconer’s blue eyes flashed, and the color rushed back into her
-pale cheeks. She answered, with a flash of girlish spirit:
-
-“You and I, Miss Ives, are made of the same clay as those factory
-girls. We are more fortunate, that is all.”
-
-“Goodness, Uncle Falconer, I hope your wife isn’t a socialist!”
-exclaimed Juliette, shrugging her shoulders.
-
-He frowned, and answered:
-
-“My wife is an angel, Juliette, and has the kindest, tenderest heart
-in the world. I’m glad to hear her speak up for our Richmond working
-girls. I have the greatest respect for them all, as well as sympathy
-for the poverty that makes their lot in life so hard. I know also that
-many of them are from good families that were reduced to poverty by the
-late war.”
-
-Juliette turned her back on him impatiently, and addressed herself to
-Pansy:
-
-“You remember how foolishly I behaved last night, taking you for a girl
-that disgraced her family and drowned herself three years ago?”
-
-“Yes,” Pansy answered coldly.
-
-“Well, she was a tobacco-factory girl, and worked at Arnell & Grey’s.
-Her name was Pansy Laurens--similarity in names, as well as faces,
-you see. Your name is Pansy, too, isn’t it? She was a low, designing
-creature, and, by her boldness, caused a rupture between my betrothed
-and myself, over which he grieves to this day.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIX. A POISONED LIFE.
-
-
-Bravely as Pansy carried off everything, she began to fear that her
-life with Juliette Ives would never be one of friendship or peace, for
-the girl seemed to bristle at all points with poisoned arrows for her
-uncle’s wife.
-
-Not that Juliette was outwardly repellent. She had false, sweet smiles
-in plenty for Pansy; but she had also the sharpest claws beneath her
-silky fur. She lost no opportunity of wounding, when she could do so
-with impunity.
-
-A week passed away, and several of the best families in the city had
-called upon Colonel Falconer and his wife. None saw her but to praise
-her wonderful beauty and her graceful ease of manner; although they had
-gathered from Juliette that her origin was obscure, they decided that
-she must certainly have been used to good society, and they made due
-allowance when Juliette sneered for her disappointment in losing her
-uncle’s money.
-
-But the supreme trial of all had not fallen on her yet. Norman Wylde
-had not called, although Juliette had given several intimations that he
-would do so soon. Sometimes Pansy resolved that she would not see him,
-but then that course would be sure to excite remark. The meeting must
-take place some time, and she made up her mind at last that she would
-face it without a falter.
-
-“I despise him, but I will treat him with the same courtesy that I do
-others, that none may suspect what lies hidden beneath the surface,”
-she thought.
-
-She had been home something more than a week when Colonel Falconer told
-her one morning, with a tender caress, that he should have to leave her
-to her own devices, or to Juliette’s society, all day, as he would have
-to spend some hours with his lawyers, settling up his sister’s affairs.
-
-“I have a new book. I will interest myself in that,” she replied,
-returning his kiss in her gentle, affectionate way.
-
-He went away, and, lest Juliette should think her unsociable, she took
-her book into the parlor. It was a warm day, and she wore a lovely
-morning dress, all white embroidery and lace, with fluttering loops
-of blue ribbons. Her lovely dark hair was drawn into a loose coil on
-top of her head, and some curling locks strayed prettily over her white
-forehead.
-
-“How pretty you are in that white wrapper, Mrs. Falconer. I do not see
-how such a plain old fellow as my uncle ever induced a beautiful young
-girl like you to marry him. But, then, these rich old fellows can marry
-any one they choose!” exclaimed Juliette.
-
-“I do not consider Colonel Falconer old,” Pansy answered resentfully,
-but further words were prevented by the loud ringing of the doorbell.
-
-Juliette sat upright, with a gleam of expectancy in her pale-blue eyes,
-and the next moment a servant appeared at the door, saying that a man
-wished to see Mrs. Falconer a few moments.
-
-“Show him in here. It is no doubt some message from uncle,” quickly
-exclaimed Juliette.
-
-Instantly there darted into Pansy’s mind a quick suspicion:
-
-“She has laid another trap for me.”
-
-And she braced herself to bear anything unflinchingly.
-
-The door opened again, and Mr. Finley, the grocer, her hated
-stepfather, entered the room.
-
-Pansy grew pale, but, still holding her book, she arose in a stately
-way, fixing on the intruder a cold glance of inquiry.
-
-Mr. Finley, coming in from the outer daylight into the semigloom of the
-parlor, did not at first see very clearly. He bowed profoundly to both
-ladies, in an awkward way, and began to speak briskly:
-
-“Mrs. Falconer, I am a grocer, and enjoyed the custom and confidence
-of the late Mrs. Ives. I have called to solicit----” He stopped and
-stared. The beautiful face looking at him struck him with fear and
-terror.
-
-He made a retrograde movement toward the door, keeping his bewildered
-eyes on her face, and then he caught a glance from Juliette’s eyes that
-suddenly loosened his tongue.
-
-He stopped short, exclaiming:
-
-“Heavens, I can’t be mistaken! It--is--she! Mrs. Falconer, excuse me,
-please, but are you not my missing stepdaughter, Pansy Laurens?”
-
-A gay little laugh trilled over Pansy’s lips as she blandly assured him
-that she had never seen him before in her life, that her maiden name
-was Miss Wilcox, and that she was a native of Louisville.
-
-“This is the second time I’ve been told of my likeness to Pansy
-Laurens. It is a coincidence, nothing more. Such things often happen,”
-she observed carelessly. “By the way, you called to solicit custom for
-your business, I believe. You may leave your card, and I will refer it
-to my husband.”
-
-Thus coolly dismissed, and quite ignoring the request for his card, Mr.
-Finley stumbled out, with a fixed conviction in his mind that Pansy
-Laurens had never been drowned at all, but had married this rich man
-and come back to triumph over them all.
-
-He understood now why Juliette had sent him that little note, saying
-that her uncle’s wife would be glad to have him call, as she wished to
-make arrangements with him about supplying the family groceries.
-
-“She recognized her, and wished for me to do so, unaided by any hint
-from her,” he thought and wondered: “What ought I to do about it?
-I hope I shall see Miss Ives soon, for this discovery places a mine
-of gold in my reach, and I must speedily find out in what way I am
-to make the most of it. Miss Ives is poor now, and Norman Wylde is
-comparatively so, as he will have no money until his father dies. I do
-not know which I should blackmail--Falconer or his wife.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XX. AN EVENING OF SUSPENSE.
-
-
-When Pansy went to dress for dinner she was so particular that the maid
-smiled, and thought:
-
-“Her husband has been gone all day, and she wishes to look her best
-this evening.”
-
-But Pansy, looking for Norman Wylde’s appearance every hour, was
-anxious to appear as beautiful as possible in the eyes of the man who
-had wronged her so deeply.
-
-A lovely dress of cream-colored mull and Valenciennes lace was donned.
-The sleeves were short, and the bodice was a low V neck. She wore no
-ornaments, except a diamond locket on the black velvet band at her
-throat and a bunch of creamy-white roses at her slender waist. Thus
-attired, she was so dazzlingly lovely when she descended to the parlor
-that Juliette fairly hated her, and could scarcely keep from saying so.
-
-Colonel Falconer came in presently, with his kind, intelligent face
-and fine military bearing, and was charmed with the beauty of the two
-girls, for Juliette looked her best in a dress of black net with pearl
-jewelry.
-
-“It is a pity for so much loveliness to be wasted on an old fellow like
-me. I hope we shall have some callers after dinner,” he said gayly.
-
-After dinner he begged Juliette to give them some music, but, with a
-malicious glance at Pansy, she exclaimed:
-
-“I do not like to touch the piano, as I am sure your wife plays ever so
-much better than I do.”
-
-Pansy smiled, and answered coolly:
-
-“Then your musical attainments must be very superficial, indeed, Miss
-Ives, for I only know enough of music to play my own accompaniments to
-a few songs.”
-
-“Then you will give us a song, won’t you, and I will play afterward?”
-cried artful Juliette, thinking that here, at least, she could outshine
-her uncle’s wife.
-
-“Certainly,” Pansy answered carelessly, and moved toward the piano,
-secure in her consciousness of an exquisitely sweet voice, which had
-had careful culture when she was a simple schoolgirl, before her father
-died.
-
-Colonel Falconer leaned against the piano, with his back to the door,
-and Juliette began to turn over the piles of music.
-
-“Don’t trouble yourself. I will sing some little thing from memory,”
-said Pansy.
-
-Juliette flung herself into an easy-chair and listened with a sneer,
-saying to herself:
-
-“I would not try to play if I knew nothing but a few accompaniments.”
-
-But when that low, sweet, thrilling voice broke the silence, she
-started in wonder and delight, for she was intensely fond of music, and
-Pansy’s touch and voice were both exquisite.
-
-No one noticed that the door had opened to admit visitors, who paused
-uncertainly on the threshold, to listen, too, for all were absorbed in
-the singer.
-
-At last the white hands dropped from the piano keys, the thrilling
-voice became silent. Touched in spite of herself, Juliette said softly:
-
-“Oh, how sweet and sad! You have brought tears to my eyes, Mrs.
-Falconer.”
-
-Before Pansy could reply, all three became aware that visitors were
-advancing into the room.
-
-“Oh, Mrs. Wylde, I am so glad to see you--and you, too, Rosalind. Oh,
-Judge Wylde, it was so kind of you and Norman to come!” rattled quickly
-from Juliette’s lips, as she hastened to welcome the newcomers.
-
-Colonel Falconer also greeted the visitors as if they were old friends,
-and hastened to present his wife.
-
-She, the poor little factory girl whom they had scorned, stood by her
-husband’s side like a queen, and greeted his friends with a calm and
-stately dignity that made a profound impression. She glanced only
-slightly at Norman Wylde, or she would have seen that he was terribly
-agitated. When their hands touched each other both were cold as ice.
-
-When all were seated, Pansy saw that he had retreated to a distant
-corner, and, as the conversation proceeded, he took little or no part
-in it. He was almost stricken speechless by her marvelous likeness
-to one he had loved and lost, and, but for the interval for thought
-afforded him while she was singing, he could not have preserved his
-calmness; he must have spoken out on the spur of the moment, and
-claimed her, as Mr. Finley had done, as Pansy Laurens.
-
-When he had first beheld the beautiful face in profile from the door
-his senses had almost reeled; but before her song ceased he had
-persuaded himself that he was mistaken in thinking her the counterpart
-of Pansy. She was more beautiful, more distinguished-looking. Pansy
-had been very shy and bashful, but this girl held her small head high.
-There was a likeness--a great one--but nothing more. One was the
-wayside rose, the other the cultivated flower.
-
-From his distant seat he watched the lovely face and form with a
-throbbing heart. How the rich, creamy-hued robe and diamond locket set
-off the flowerlike face, with its background of dark, rippling hair.
-The beautiful white hands played with some rose petals she had plucked
-from her belt, and he noticed how small they were, with pink palms and
-finger tips, dimpled at the joint, like a child’s. Pansy had had just
-such dainty hands, although she was only a working girl.
-
-“I wish I had not come,” he thought, with bitter pain. “Mrs. Falconer’s
-face has brought everything back. Oh, how am I to bear it? Does
-Juliette see the likeness, I wonder? Surely not, or else she could
-scarcely endure to be haunted so by the image of one she hated.”
-
-Pansy, on her part, felt a bitter triumph in seeing that he took such
-slight notice of Juliette. Surely he did not care for her, else his
-eyes would have wandered to her face sometimes, for it was plain to be
-seen that she worshiped him.
-
-“He does not care for her,” Pansy said to herself, as she saw how
-carelessly he answered the remarks Juliette addressed to him. “He has a
-fickle heart.”
-
-And she gazed with silent admiration at her noble husband, who loved
-her so devotedly, and who had not been too proud to marry a simple
-working girl and lift her to his own station in life. Although she did
-not love him in a romantic fashion, she admired his noble, manly nature
-more and more daily.
-
-And she found a bitter satisfaction in seeing that her betrayer did not
-look so gay and debonair as in the past. He was certainly altered; his
-face was pale and grave, his eyes were sad and serious.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXI. A RETURN CALL.
-
-
-Something more than a week after the Wyldes had called upon the
-Falconers, Juliette suggested, one day, that it was time that they
-should return the call.
-
-“You and Pansy can do so this afternoon,” Colonel Falconer replied. “As
-for me, I cannot spare a day from those lawyers until I get through my
-business, for I am hurrying all I can, that I may take my family away
-from the city before the heated term sets in.”
-
-“Then we will call to-day, and we can then find out where they intend
-to summer, for I should like to go to the same place,” exclaimed
-Juliette.
-
-So at noon that day they found themselves ringing the doorbell at a
-residence on Grace Street, quite as elegant as the one they had left.
-They were shown into an elegant and tasteful drawing-room, and told
-that the ladies would be down directly.
-
-Pansy sat silent, with her eyes fixed on the door, when suddenly it was
-pushed ajar by a dimpled little hand, and the figure of a child became
-partly visible--a beautiful child, of perhaps three years old. The
-little fellow was simply clothed, in a white Mother Hubbard slip, and
-his big, dark eyes looked fearlessly at the two ladies.
-
-Pansy’s heart thrilled strangely at sight of the child, for there was
-something in his face that suggested Norman Wylde. Holding out her
-hands, she cried coaxingly:
-
-“Come here, you pretty little darling!”
-
-The child hesitated a moment, then pattered lightly across the carpet
-with his little bare feet to her side. She placed him on her knee, and,
-clasping him in her arms, kissed the pretty, rosy face repeatedly.
-
-“What is your name, dear?” she asked.
-
-“Pet!” he replied, while Juliette looked on coldly.
-
-Apparently the child quite reciprocated the fancy Mrs. Falconer had
-shown for him. While she smoothed his sunny curls with loving hands, he
-patted her cheek tenderly, and cooed:
-
-“Pretty yady, pretty yady!”
-
-Suddenly the door unclosed, admitting Mrs. Wylde, the stately matron,
-and her handsome daughter, Rosalind. They frowned at sight of the
-pretty child, and, after exchanging greetings with their guests,
-Rosalind exclaimed sharply:
-
-“What are you doing here, Pet? Get down this instant, and go away.”
-
-But, to her astonishment, the little one clung to Pansy, and cried out
-rebelliously:
-
-“No, no, me stay ’ith pretty yady!”
-
-“The little monkey! He never offered to disobey me before,” exclaimed
-Rosalind, frowning, and she removed him by force from Pansy’s lap, for
-he screamed and struggled to stay.
-
-“Oh, please let me keep him. I love children!” exclaimed Pansy
-pleadingly; but just here Mrs. Wylde chimed in:
-
-“You do not quite understand, Mrs. Falconer. The child belongs to my
-housekeeper, who adopted him in infancy. She has her orders to keep
-him in her own part of the house, but occasionally he slips away and
-intrudes upon us, although this is the first time he has ever ventured
-into the drawing-room.”
-
-“It was my fault. I called him in when I saw him peeping in at the
-door. He was such a lovely little child, and I thought he belonged
-to you,” said Pansy, as her yearning eyes followed Rosalind, who was
-leading the sobbing child from the room.
-
-“He is a very pretty child, and usually a very good-tempered,
-affectionate one,” Mrs. Wylde acknowledged. “This is the first time
-I ever saw him display any temper. Indeed, I have felt myself on the
-verge of falling in love with the little creature often, only I would
-not allow myself to do so, being convinced that he must be a child of
-shame.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXII. A BEAUTIFUL CHILD.
-
-
-“A child of shame!” Pansy echoed, and a wave of hot color rushed over
-her face as she remembered the little child that had died before its
-young mother ever saw its face.
-
-“Yes,” answered the stately lady, rather coldly. “He is a foundling,
-and was left on our steps almost three years ago. We would have sent it
-to the almshouse, but our old housekeeper, who has been with us so many
-years that we like to indulge her some, took a fancy to the little one,
-and begged to keep it.”
-
-“It is a beautiful little child. I could not help falling in love with
-it,” said Pansy earnestly, while Juliette sneered:
-
-“It is a pity you have not a child of your own to love!”
-
-“I wish I had,” Pansy answered. “I am very fond of children.” And she
-wished within herself that she could have little Pet to carry home with
-her, for a wild suspicion was growing up in her heart: What if this
-were her own child?
-
-Her mother had told her that her child had died, but perhaps she had
-deceived her. Perhaps Mr. Finley, whom she had always disliked and
-distrusted, had taken the child away and forced her mother to utter
-that falsehood. What more natural than that he should have placed it on
-the threshold of the Wylde mansion?
-
-Wild suspicion grew almost into agonized certainty as she recalled the
-startling likeness of the child to Norman Wylde.
-
-“Is it possible that his family can fail to see the likeness in his
-face?” she wondered, and, while she held with difficulty her part in
-the conversation going forward over the merits of different summer
-resorts, she was thinking wildly:
-
-“I do not believe now that my baby died. This child, with Norman’s
-eyes, belongs to me. My heart claimed him the moment he appeared at the
-door. And he was fond of me, too. He struggled so hard to get back to
-me when Rosalind forced him away. Oh, I must manage somehow to see that
-old housekeeper soon, and find out all that I can about little Pet.”
-
-“I think I shall go to White Sulphur Springs,” said Mrs. Wylde. “Have
-you decided where you shall go, Mrs. Falconer?”
-
-“No, I cannot come to a decision, so I shall leave it to my husband,”
-replied Pansy.
-
-“Oh, then you must go to White Sulphur! It is charming there,” cried
-Juliette, who wanted to go wherever the Wyldes went.
-
-“One place will please me quite as well as another,” Pansy replied
-indifferently; and when they took their leave it was quite understood
-that the Wyldes and the Falconers were to form a party for the springs
-as soon as possible.
-
-“But,” said dark-eyed Rosalind to her mother, “Juliette is going to be
-disappointed, for, of course, she thinks Norman is going with us.”
-
-“Norman must go. It is quite foolish, his being so stiff with us, and
-resenting things that were only done for his good,” Mrs. Wylde replied,
-in a displeased tone.
-
-When Pansy and Juliette were riding home, the latter observed:
-
-“Mrs. Falconer, did you notice what a strong resemblance that foundling
-child had to Norman Wylde?”
-
-Pansy looked at her with a startled air, and answered:
-
-“You know I’ve only seen Norman Wylde once, and can’t really recall his
-features exactly. Does the child really resemble him? And, if so, what
-does it mean?”
-
-“Norman Wylde has lived a very fast life, you know,” Juliette
-answered. “I have long suspected that the child is his own, flung
-upon his doorstep in desperation by some one of his victims. Perhaps
-he suspects, perhaps he does not--but I feel almost certain of its
-parentage.”
-
-“And the family?” Pansy asked faintly.
-
-“I do not believe they suspect anything. If they did, they would not
-permit it to be kept beneath their roof. They would be perfectly
-furious,” replied Juliette, with an air of certainty, and watching
-Pansy closely for some signs of emotion.
-
-But the beautiful girl seemed to grow suddenly weary of the subject,
-for she said:
-
-“I wonder if my trousseau will do for the White Sulphur, or if I ought
-to order anything new?”
-
-“You will not need a new thing, nor shall I, as I am in mourning, and
-cannot dance this season,” replied Juliette.
-
-As their carriage rolled along Grace Street, they saw Norman Wylde
-among the pedestrians on the pavement. He lifted his hat, and passed on
-without stopping, to the chagrin of Juliette, who hoped he would stop
-and chat with her a while.
-
-Her conscience did not reproach her for the falsehoods she had uttered
-against his fair fame, although she knew that there was not a purer,
-more high-minded young man in the whole city. But while she was still
-uncertain as to the identity of her uncle’s wife, it suited her best
-to pretend that Norman Wylde was dissolute and guilty. Although she
-suspected that little Pet was the child of Pansy Laurens, she was not
-certain, and she did not wish Mrs. Falconer to believe it.
-
-“She will, if she is really Pansy Laurens, hate him more if she
-believes that the child is some other woman’s,” she thought shrewdly,
-and smiled when she saw the signs of trouble that Pansy could not
-wholly disguise on her fair face.
-
-Poor Pansy! Her heart was well-nigh breaking, and when she reached
-home she feigned a headache, that she might have an excuse for shutting
-herself up in her own room to think over the events of to-day, which
-had aroused suspicions never to be laid again until they were either
-confirmed or proved baseless. The dark eyes of the little child had
-aroused the mother’s heart within her breast, and it ached with a
-bitter yearning.
-
-“Oh, if my baby did not die, they were cruel and wicked to deceive me,
-to cheat me out of its love all these years! But only let me find out
-if that child is mine, and I will have it--I will!” she sobbed wildly,
-in a mood of passionate recklessness.
-
-But suddenly she heard her husband’s voice in the hall, and shivered.
-
-“Oh, what am I talking of? How dare I claim my child in the face of
-everything that is against me?” she moaned bitterly; and just then
-Colonel Falconer entered, with a face full of anxiety.
-
-“They told me you had a headache. Can I do anything for you, my
-darling?” he asked tenderly.
-
-“Only love me and pity me,” the girl answered, almost despairingly, out
-of her hidden sorrow.
-
-He was alarmed at her tone, and feared she was suffering greatly.
-
-“Let me send for a physician,” he urged.
-
-“No, no, I do not need medicine--only rest and quiet,” she pleaded,
-with a feeling of remorse in her heart that she could not love him
-better--he was so good and true.
-
-But since she had come back to Richmond, she was conscious that there
-was less chance than ever for her to love her husband in the ardent
-fashion to which he had the best claim. Her affection for him was so
-calm, so friendly, only, while, to her dismay, all her old madness had
-returned at the first sight of Norman Wylde’s handsome face.
-
-“Oh what a tyrant love is!” she sighed bitterly. “I thought I hated
-him--I know I ought to hate him--yet his face haunts me as it did in
-those old days when I loved him first. I dream of him by night, and I
-think of him by day, in spite of every endeavor to forget him. Heaven
-help me, for I am wretched!”
-
-Days passed, and Pansy found some relief from the haunting image of
-Norman Wylde in thinking of the little child that she firmly believed
-to be her own. She struck up a great intimacy with the Wyldes in hopes
-of seeing the little one more frequently; but she was disappointed.
-
-Apparently the housekeeper had received strict orders, for Pet’s black
-eyes were no longer to be seen laughing around the drawing-room door,
-nor his footsteps heard pattering through the halls. There was a sunny
-plot of grass in the back yard where he played all day now, except when
-he was in that part of the house allotted to the housekeeper.
-
-But he had never forgotten the “pretty yady,” and he often asked Mrs.
-Meade, the housekeeper, about her, prattling so sweetly that the good
-old woman grew quite curious, and at last asked Mrs. Wylde about Mrs.
-Falconer.
-
-“Yes, she is very beautiful--the most beautiful woman I ever saw,” Mrs.
-Wylde admitted. “She took quite a fancy to Pet, and admitted she was
-fond of children.”
-
-“He is always talking about her. I never knew him so fond of any one
-before,” said Mrs. Meade. “Did you say she came from California, ma’am?”
-
-“Colonel Falconer married her in California, but she is a native of
-Kentucky, and was never in Richmond until now,” was the reply, which,
-if Mrs. Meade had harbored any suspicion, at once dissipated.
-
-Still she cherished a desire to see the woman who had been so kind to
-her little adopted child as to win its warm little heart.
-
-“I’d like to thank her for noticing the poor, forsaken little lamb,”
-she said to herself. “No one ever shows it any kindness, except Mr.
-Norman, and Heaven knows he ought to love it, for I firmly believe he
-is the father, though whether he suspects it or not, I can’t tell.
-Anyway, he’s fond of it, and kind to it.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIII. A DARING MOVE.
-
-
-Fate helped Mrs. Meade to the accomplishment of her wish.
-
-One day all the negro servants had leave of absence to attend a meeting
-of some society very popular with all of their race, and there was no
-one left to answer the doorbell but the housekeeper.
-
-In the afternoon Mrs. Wylde and Rosalind went out to do some shopping,
-and Mrs. Meade seated herself with Pet in the wide, cool hall, that she
-might be within hearing of the bell.
-
-“Ain’t you doin’ to take me on the Capitol Square dis even’?” queried
-Pet.
-
-“No, my precious, I can’t take you out to-day,” answered the kind old
-woman, putting down her knitting to caress the beautiful boy, whose
-sunny curls and bright black eyes were so dear to her heart.
-
-“Den I wish dat pretty yady would tum adin,” exclaimed the child,
-looking longingly at the front door.
-
-At that moment there came a hurried, nervous peal at the doorbell.
-
-Mrs. Falconer had been driving out alone when she saw Mrs. Wylde and
-her daughter entering a store on Broad Street, and she almost instantly
-left her carriage and directed the driver to wait for her, as she
-desired to do some shopping.
-
-Entering the same store, she bought a box of handkerchiefs, then,
-slipping out quietly, she made her way on foot to Grace Street,
-scarcely knowing what she meant to do, but thrilled by a wild longing
-to see once more the lovely child that she believed was her own.
-
-In the absence of the family, she believed that little Pet might
-perhaps be permitted the freedom of the house. She might make some
-pretext for entering the house and awaiting Mrs. Wylde’s return. Thus
-she might catch a glimpse of the little one whose charms had won her
-heart.
-
-She rang the bell with a trembling hand, and, to her joy and amazement,
-the first thing she saw when the door opened was little Pet, clinging
-to the dress of the white-haired, kindly looking old woman who invited
-her in.
-
-“Pretty yady! pretty yady!” screamed the child, and those words
-acquainted Mrs. Meade with the fact that Mrs. Falconer stood before her.
-
-“Will you walk in, ma’am? The ladies are out shopping, but they may
-come in at any minute,” she exclaimed eagerly, anxious that little Pet
-should have a few minutes at least with the woman he loved so dearly.
-
-Mrs. Falconer trailed her soft summer silk through the doorway, and
-held out her hands to the eager child.
-
-“Well, I will rest a few minutes, anyhow, as I walked from Broad Street
-and feel quite tired,” she exclaimed, adding gayly: “Oh, how cool and
-nice it is here in the hall. I will not go into the parlor, please.”
-
-She sank down upon the broad antique sofa, and little Pet, as clean and
-sweet as a rosebud, in his little white dress and slippers, climbed
-into her lap and clasped his chubby arms about her neck. Mrs. Meade
-closed and locked the door, and began to expostulate with him.
-
-“Oh, please don’t scold him! Let him stay with me. I love children so
-dearly!” exclaimed Pansy, pressing the child to her heart and kissing
-him many times.
-
-Then she looked up a little apprehensively at the old woman, asking
-timidly:
-
-“Are you--his--mother?”
-
-“No, madam; he’s my adopted child. He was left at this door almost
-three years ago, and I begged the family to let me keep the poor little
-forsaken baby for my own. I’m only the housekeeper, ma’am, and the
-child’s company for me,” explained Mrs. Meade, looking curiously into
-the beautiful, agitated face before her and wondering if Mrs. Falconer
-could possibly know anything of the child’s parentage, for the tender
-interest she took in him seemed very strange.
-
-“Can you remember what month it was when the child was left here?”
-queried Pansy eagerly.
-
-“It was on the night of the twenty-eighth of May, ma’am, and I feel
-sure it wasn’t more than an hour old--a poor little deserted newborn
-baby,” said Mrs. Meade, and Pansy sternly repressed a cry of joy as she
-hid her startled face in the boy’s plump neck, pretending to bite him,
-that she might hear his vociferous baby laughter.
-
-“He is mine! It is just as I thought. I was deceived by my mother, and
-my child stolen from me. Oh, what am I to do, for I feel that I cannot
-live without him?” she thought wildly.
-
-The little one clung to her, showering her face with kisses, and
-filling Mrs. Meade with wonder, for he was usually very shy of
-strangers.
-
-“Would you like to see the clothes he wore when he came here?” she
-asked, and went away, returning presently with a bundle, which she
-unrolled before Pansy’s eyes.
-
-“See this little linen shirt and gown, so neatly trimmed with crochet
-edging, and this fine soft flannel petticoat,” she said; and Pansy
-almost fainted when she saw the selfsame baby garments on which she had
-worked, in silence and secrecy, so many nights when she was at home, a
-wretched creature, looking forward with dread to her baby’s coming.
-
-She wound her arms about the child, and said faintly:
-
-“You ought to take good care of these things, for by their aid you
-might be enabled to trace the child’s mother some time.”
-
-But she flushed deeply when Mrs. Meade answered:
-
-“I mean to take care of them, but I don’t know as I care to trace the
-mother. She must be a hard-hearted creature, to abandon her baby like
-she did.”
-
-“Oh, don’t judge her so hardly, please. Perhaps--perhaps--it was
-not her fault. They might have taken it from her,” exclaimed Pansy
-pleadingly, then paused in dismay, for, by the sudden lighting up of
-Mrs. Meade’s face, she saw that she had made a mistake in speaking so
-impulsively. Anxious to remove any suspicion from the woman’s mind,
-she went on apologetically: “Of course, the mother might have been
-hard-hearted. There are plenty such women, but it does seem strange
-that any one could desert such a beautiful child as this one.”
-
-“He is beautiful, and as good and sweet as he is pretty,” said Mrs.
-Meade warmly, and Pansy exclaimed, almost passionately:
-
-“I wish he had been left at my door! I would certainly have adopted him
-for my own. I love him dearly.”
-
-“I ’ove oo!” cried little Pet, gazing into her beautiful face with
-shining eyes, and she strained him close to her heart again, exclaiming:
-
-“Oh, you sweet little darling!”
-
-Mrs. Meade gazed on the pretty scene with wonder and suspicion, asking
-herself why Mrs. Falconer and the child were so strongly attached to
-each other. She knew that Norman Wylde had been in trouble several
-years before on account of a pretty factory girl, who was reported to
-have drowned herself, but she had never heard that there was a child
-in the case. She wondered now if that unfortunate girl had looked like
-Mrs. Falconer.
-
-“I mean to find out,” she resolved, just as Pansy looked up and asked
-pleadingly:
-
-“Won’t you give me this child if my husband will allow me to adopt him?
-I will be like a mother to him, educate him, bring him up to a noble
-manhood, if he lives.”
-
-“Would you like to go with the lady, and leave your poor old Meade,
-my pet?” exclaimed the housekeeper, and the little one murmured a
-delighted affirmative.
-
-“You see!” cried Pansy triumphantly. “Now, may I have him?”
-
-Mrs. Meade shook her head.
-
-“Colonel Falconer would never permit you to have him,” she said.
-
-“My husband has never refused a request of mine in our whole
-acquaintance,” cried Pansy impatiently.
-
-“But he would refuse this,” said Mrs. Meade. “You will have some
-children of your own some time, Mrs. Falconer, then this poor little
-one would be thrust aside. No, no--I could not part with him, even to
-one who likes him as much as you do, dear lady.”
-
-Pansy gazed at her with a grieved and baffled air. Her red under lip
-quivered and tears started to her beautiful eyes. For a moment she
-could not speak, so bitter was her disappointment; and Mrs. Meade
-folded up the tiny garments in an embarrassed fashion, ashamed of
-refusing the lady’s request, but feeling that she was acting for the
-best.
-
-Suddenly a bright thought came to Pansy.
-
-“Mrs. Meade, I see that you love Pet too well to give him up,” she
-said gently. “I don’t blame you, for I love him dearly myself. But
-couldn’t you come and be my housekeeper? Then I could see him every
-day.”
-
-Mrs. Meade threw up her hands in dismay.
-
-“Leave the Wyldes!” she cried. “Oh, my dear young lady, I’ve kept house
-for them these twenty-five years, and to leave them now would be like
-pulling up an old tree by the roots. I’m too old to be transplanted. I
-should die.”
-
-Pansy clasped the child close to her aching heart with a cry of despair
-that she could not repress.
-
-“Oh, my little darling, my little darling, I shall see you no more,
-then! Fate is too strong for us,” she cried.
-
-Mrs. Meade took off her spectacles and wiped the moisture of tears from
-them. She was deeply touched by Pansy’s affection for Pet, and, after a
-moment, she said significantly:
-
-“Mrs. Falconer, I’m sorry to seem harsh and unkind, refusing to give
-you the child, but I know you will forget it directly. While, as for
-me, my heart is bound up in him, and I’ve always said that I’d never
-give up my claim, except to some one who had a better right to him
-than I have.”
-
-Pansy glanced up, startled, and met the significant gaze of the kind
-old eyes. She understood.
-
-With a burning blush, she put the little one out of her arms and rose
-to go.
-
-“Then, of course, I can urge you no longer. Your claim is too
-strong,” she said, trying to speak coldly, as a mask for her bitter
-disappointment.
-
-“As for not seeing Pet any more, Mrs. Falconer, if you care about it I
-can make it easy enough for you to see him. I take him to the Capitol
-Square every pleasant afternoon,” said Mrs. Meade; and then she asked
-eagerly; “Won’t you come in the parlor and play the piano for Pet? He
-loves music so dearly.”
-
-“I ought to go this minute,” she said, but yielded to the tiny,
-persuasive little fingers that clasped hers, and stayed almost an hour
-longer, playing and singing for the delighted little one.
-
-When she took leave she slipped a golden coin in the baby fingers.
-
-“To buy candy,” she said, kissing him fondly, and promising to come to
-the Capitol Square the next afternoon to see him. Then she tore herself
-away, and Mrs. Meade had hard work to console Pet, who wept bitterly at
-the parting.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIV. OLD LOVERS FACE TO FACE.
-
-
-How strange it seemed to Pansy to be going again, after the lapse of
-more than three years, to the Capitol Square to meet one whom she
-loved, but whom she must see in secret because a cruel fate kept them
-sundered in life, but one in heart. Then it was the father--now it was
-the child.
-
-While she was wondering how she was to get away from the lynx eyes of
-her husband’s niece, Juliette came in to say that she would like to
-have the phaëton for her own use that afternoon, if Mrs. Falconer was
-not going out.
-
-“One of my dearest friends, Miss Norwood, is just home from a long
-visit in New York, and I would like so much to take her for a drive,”
-she said.
-
-“Pray do so. I shall not need the phaëton this afternoon,” Pansy
-answered eagerly.
-
-“You are not going out yourself?” Juliette asked.
-
-“I don’t know. Should I do so, it will only be for a short walk.”
-
-Juliette thanked her and hastened away.
-
-“Colonel Falconer is busy with his lawyer, Juliette away, and the field
-clear. I will go and see my child,” she thought gladly.
-
-It was July, and the day was warm and sultry. Pansy dressed herself
-simply, in a plain white dress and leghorn hat, and, taking a large
-sun-shade in her hand, started for the Capitol Square.
-
-Her heart throbbed painfully as she walked slowly along the old
-familiar streets, thinking of those past days, so full of love and pain.
-
-It was only four o’clock when she reached the square, and the nurses
-and children were just beginning to come in. She looked everywhere, but
-there was no sign of Mrs. Meade and little Pet.
-
-“I am too early. I must sit down in some quiet, secluded spot and
-wait,” she thought, and sought a shady seat on the slope of the hill
-back of the Capitol building.
-
-“It was here we sat that day when Norman told me he was going to
-London,” she murmured sadly, and then she recoiled with a sudden cry:
-
-“Oh!”
-
-The quiet bench she sought was already occupied, and by Norman Wylde
-himself.
-
-She could scarcely repress a wild and passionate cry of pain and
-reproach. As it was, she dared not trust herself, and turned to flee.
-
-But Norman Wylde had been aroused from a deep abstraction by her low
-exclamation of dismay, and, starting up, he confronted her, coming out
-of such a mood that he for a moment fancied his lost love had come back
-from the other world to comfort his sad heart. A glad cry came from his
-lips:
-
-“Pansy!”
-
-That name arrested her footsteps. She paused, frightened, moveless. Had
-he recognized her? Would he tax her with her identity?
-
-“Pansy!” he repeated tenderly, and, although she trembled and grew
-faint at the passion in his voice, it came to her suddenly that she
-must make some defense for herself. She, the honored wife of the proud
-Colonel Falconer, must never own herself to be that Pansy Laurens whom
-the man before her had deceived and betrayed. She would be brave and
-proud for her husband’s sake, as well as for her own.
-
-Steeling her heart and her nerves as well as she could, she turned
-toward him, saying coldly:
-
-“It is quite true, Mr. Wylde, that my name is Pansy, but as you and I
-have never met but once before to-day, it seems to me that I should be
-Mrs. Falconer to you.”
-
-Norman Wylde could only stare for a moment with bewildered eyes at the
-lovely speaker, and mutter helplessly:
-
-“Mrs. Falconer!”
-
-“Yes,” she replied coldly, and suddenly he struck his hand against his
-forehead, exclaiming:
-
-“I am a fool, a madman! Madam, pardon me. I--I--was mistaken.” Then,
-seeing that she lingered, he added, with an imploring gesture: “Will
-you not sit down here for one moment and let me explain?”
-
-She knew quite well that she ought not to stay, but she could not turn
-from him. She sank down on the rustic bench and waited with throbbing
-pulses for an explanation. What would he say--what could he say?
-
-He sat down beside her, pale with emotion, but so splendidly handsome
-in his cool summer suit and spotless linen that her heart throbbed
-madly, and she thought:
-
-“Oh, my false love! How grandly handsome, how winning you are! It is
-no wonder that I lost my heart to you, innocent child that I was! Oh,
-would that you had been true and good, as well as fascinating.”
-
-But no one who saw how coldly and proudly her blue eyes looked at him
-would have thought that such passionate thoughts thrilled her heart. He
-himself believed that she was bitterly angry, and he hastened to say
-deprecatingly:
-
-“Mrs. Falconer, you are so startlingly like one I used to know that
-when you appeared before me I did not remember you as Mrs. Falconer,
-and I called you by that name unwittingly. No offense to you was
-intended. I did not know that you were called Pansy.”
-
-“Yes, that is my name. I was Pansy Wilcox when Colonel Falconer
-married me. And so you say that I resemble some one you used to know,
-Mr. Wylde? How strange!” Pansy said, trying to draw him into some
-reminiscences of the past, womanlike, wishing to know whether he
-remembered her with love or remorse.
-
-He sighed heavily, and answered:
-
-“Yes, you are the image of one I loved and lost. Do you remember the
-night I came to your house, Mrs. Falconer? I came very near calling
-you Pansy then--I was so startled at the first sight of your face. But
-while you were singing I recovered myself so that I could greet you
-calmly. It was different just now, for I was thinking of that other
-Pansy, and you came upon me so suddenly that I had no time for thought,
-and I called you by her name.”
-
-“It was some one you loved?” Pansy said, in a low, soft voice.
-
-“Loved!” exclaimed Norman Wylde hoarsely, and his dark eyes seemed to
-burn into her soul as he added: “Love is hardly the word. I worshiped,
-adored my little Pansy.”
-
-“Did she die?” asked Pansy gently.
-
-“Yes, she died,” he replied hoarsely; then, pausing abruptly: “Has not
-Juliette Ives told you all about it?” he asked.
-
-“No.”
-
-“It is a wonder,” he muttered.
-
-“You make me quite curious. I think unfortunate love affairs are so sad
-and romantic. Was yours unfortunate, Mr. Wylde?” asked Pansy, still
-leading him on.
-
-“It was tragic,” he answered gloomily; and she was glad when she saw he
-was suffering some remorse for the ill that he had wrought. Her heart
-began to grow softer toward him.
-
-“He is sorry for his sin. Perhaps he would undo it if he could,”
-whispered her heart.
-
-Norman Wylde lifted his sad, dark eyes and looked at her gravely. Oh,
-how strong was the resemblance to his lost love, and how strangely his
-heart thrilled at the sound of her voice! No one but Pansy Laurens had
-ever made his heart beat faster by a voice of music.
-
-“I wish you would tell me all about it,” she said persuasively.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXV. AN OLD STORY.
-
-
-Pansy had quite forgotten why she came to the Capitol Square. She could
-think of nothing but Norman Wylde and the sorrow on his handsome face.
-She lingered beside him until he consented to tell her the story of his
-unhappy love affair.
-
-“I was engaged to Juliette Ives, but I was not very much in love
-with her. I met, in the country, a beautiful young girl named Pansy
-Laurens,” he said. “The young lady was not in our set. She was poor,
-and worked at Arnell & Grey’s tobacco factory; but she was the fairest,
-sweetest, most charming little creature I ever met. We fell in love
-at first sight, and I broke my engagement with Juliette for her sake.
-But, of course, you think, as every one else did, Mrs. Falconer, that I
-acted badly.”
-
-He stopped and looked searchingly into her pale face. Oh, how like it
-was to his lost love’s, only with a proud smile on it that made it a
-little different from Pansy’s, that had been so sweet and gentle.
-
-“I am very much interested; please go on,” she murmured. And, sighing
-heavily, Norman Wylde continued:
-
-“Of course, everybody set themselves against us, Pansy’s relations as
-well as mine.”
-
-Pansy trembled, for the deep, sweet, thrilling voice went to her heart,
-which began to beat heavily and painfully. How her thoughts went back
-to the past, when he had been her worshiped lover, and she had thought
-him true!
-
-“We met in secret, my sweet little love and I,” continued Norman, “but
-we could not see each other very often, because she had to work in the
-factory all the week. But on Sundays I saw her at church, and in the
-afternoons she would come here, or to Libby Hill Park, always to a
-different place, that no one might suspect us. I would have married her
-at once, but we should have had nothing to live on, as I had no clients
-yet, and my father had threatened to disinherit me if I did not give
-her up. But I vowed in secret that I would not do that, and, at last,
-fate--as I thought--opened out a way for us to be happy. I found a
-client who wished me to go to Europe and manage an important case.”
-
-“And you went?” she asked, for he paused so long that she feared his
-confidences were at an end.
-
-“Yes, I went,” he answered slowly; then he looked at her gravely,
-and said: “You are a stranger, Mrs. Falconer, and there is something
-connected with my trip to London that I should not betray, perhaps, for
-the sake of my family.”
-
-“Whatever you tell me will be held sacred,” she said, almost inaudibly,
-and the dark eyes looked at her in a sort of wonder.
-
-“I ought not to betray this to any one but a dear friend,” he said
-hesitatingly. “Mrs. Falconer, I wonder if you could like me well enough
-to be my friend? It would be very pleasant to me. You look so much like
-her that I should find comfort in your friendship.”
-
-Many and many a time Pansy Laurens had said to herself that Norman
-Wylde was the greatest enemy she had on earth. But now she held out her
-hand to him, in its soft silken glove, and he took it and pressed it
-eagerly.
-
-“I will be your friend,” she said, wondering if he was going to confess
-to her now about the secret marriage that was no marriage, after all.
-She was so curious to hear how he would justify that that she did not
-hesitate to promise him her friendship.
-
-But, to her wonder and indignation, he skipped quite over that
-important era in his love affair, and went on telling her about his
-trip to London:
-
-“Mrs. Falconer, that tour on which I prided myself was a plot, a trap,
-laid by my parents to get me away from Richmond and from Pansy. My
-client was a paid tool of my father’s, and his craft followed me to
-London, where, for almost a year, I remained, vainly seeking links in
-a case that never had existed, save in the fertile brain of those who
-invented that pretext for the purpose of luring me away from home and
-love. My brain whirls yet when I recall how I was duped and deceived,
-my life and hers made pitiable wrecks for the sake of a despicable
-pride of birth and position.”
-
-His agitation was terrible for the moment. His dark eyes blazed, great
-drops of perspiration started out on his pallid brow. As for her, she
-could not speak; she sat staring at him with parted lips and blue eyes
-full of misery.
-
-“Oh, I ought not to have gone back to that time, for it stirs the
-smoldering ashes into fire again,” he cried bitterly. “Think, Mrs.
-Falconer, how I suffered all that time, never hearing a word from my
-darling, although I wrote to her every week, and she had promised to
-write to me. And, at last--oh, Heaven!--there came to me a Richmond
-paper, saying that she had drowned herself.”
-
-“Oh!” sighed Pansy sympathetically, but he did not seem to hear her.
-His head drooped, and his eyes sought the ground. He seemed to be
-oblivious to all but his own pain.
-
-For her, she was thinking bitterly:
-
-“I am glad he is capable of some remorse for his sin. It makes me think
-a little more kindly of him.”
-
-Then she shuddered at herself, for she knew that she was thinking of
-him more than kindly--fast falling under the old glamour--and she knew
-this must not be, that she ought to fly as from the tempting of a
-serpent. She made a motion to rise, but he looked up quickly.
-
-“Do not go--yet,” he said pleadingly. “Somehow, it is a sad pleasure to
-me to see you sitting there, with that face so like poor dead Pansy’s
-that it brings back all the perished past.”
-
-At those words she could not rise. She seemed to have no volition
-of her own. She sat still, comparing herself to a bird charmed by a
-serpent.
-
-“Do you know,” he went on, “we sat here on the very bench one Sunday,
-just a week before I sailed for England. She wore a white dress and
-wide straw hat, something like you wear now. I told her of my good
-fortune, but, poor child, a presentiment seemed to come over her gentle
-spirit, and she wept most bitterly because I was going away.”
-
-“He will tell me now of that most shameful marriage,” Pansy thought;
-but again she was mistaken.
-
-“Poor little darling! No wonder she felt so gloomy, for our parting
-was the knell of her fate,” said Norman Wylde. “I feel quite sure that
-by some underhand means our letters to each other were suppressed, for
-not a line ever came to me, though I shall never doubt that she wrote
-often, and I feel quite certain that it was the agony of suspense and
-hope deferred that drove her to suicide.”
-
-“You came home, then, did you not?” she asked.
-
-“No; for I could not have borne to return and find her gone. What was
-there to come back to, Mrs. Falconer? Not even a grave, for her body
-was never recovered from the river.”
-
-He raised his downcast eyes and looked into her face with such a
-searching expression that she trembled lest he was going to tax her
-with her identity.
-
-But he did not do so. He only said:
-
-“I was too miserable and distracted to come home then. Besides, I had
-not yet discovered the fraud that had been perpetrated on me. I stayed
-in London almost a year longer, vainly prosecuting my search for the
-missing links in my client’s case, and then, by accident, I found out
-how I had been deceived. I came home at once then, and taxed my parents
-with the truth. They acknowledged the deception, but claimed that it
-had been done for my good, and begged my pardon. I would not forgive
-them, yet, for the sake of family pride, I kept secret their perfidy,
-and you are the first one to whom it has been revealed.”
-
-“Oh, what a sad, what a miserable ending for so sweet a love story! It
-seems a pity you did not marry the girl and take her away with you!”
-cried Pansy.
-
-“I wish that I had done so, for then I might have been happy, instead
-of the most miserable and remorseful man in the whole world,” groaned
-Norman Wylde; and she wondered how much of this was acting and how much
-reality.
-
-“Perhaps he loved me better than he knew, and repented when too late
-the miserable betrayal that wrecked my life,” she thought, softening
-more and more toward him whom she knew she ought to hate.
-
-But before either one could utter another word, the prattling voice of
-a little child was heard, and Pansy looked up and saw Mrs. Meade and
-little Pet coming along the path toward where she sat.
-
-Pet caught sight of the two sitting there together, and ran forward
-with a cry of delight.
-
-“Pretty yady, pretty yady!” he cried joyously, and climbed into Pansy’s
-lap and kissed her.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXVI. THE ENEMY AT WORK.
-
-
-Norman Wylde seemed almost petrified with amazement at the scene before
-him. He gazed in wonder at Pansy and the child, and from them to Mrs.
-Meade.
-
-The old housekeeper, on her part, was surprised, too. She scarcely knew
-what to make of finding Norman Wylde here with Mrs. Falconer, but she
-knew not what to say. She could only stand and stare with a look of
-wonder on her fat face, which was flushed crimson from walking in the
-hot sun.
-
-Perhaps Pansy understood something of the surprise she was exciting in
-Norman Wylde’s mind, for the color rose warmly into her face as she
-returned the child’s caress and arose in a hasty way, gently putting
-him down upon the seat, and turning toward Mrs. Meade.
-
-“Good afternoon, Mrs. Meade. I am glad you have brought your sweet
-little boy out for a holiday,” she exclaimed, adding sweetly: “I wish
-I could stay for another romp with him, such as I had the other day.
-But I have an engagement in a few minutes. Good afternoon, Mr. Wylde. I
-have quite enjoyed my little chat with you while I rested under these
-beautiful trees.”
-
-He rose and bowed courteously, giving her a glance of grave
-friendliness that made her heart beat faster as she walked away,
-leaving all her heart behind her with her child and the father of
-her child, for--guilty wretch though she believed him--she could not
-strangle her yearning love.
-
-“I believe that he is sorry for his sin,” she kept telling herself,
-as some palliative of her tenderness for him, when suddenly she heard
-quick footsteps behind her and a hand stealthily touched her elbow.
-
-“He has followed me,” she thought, with some alarm, and turned her head
-quickly.
-
-Then a low cry of dismay and anger came from her lips.
-
-Mr. Finley, the grocer, her feared and hated stepfather, was walking
-along by her side, leering wickedly down into her face with an air of
-recognition that almost made her heart stop its beating.
-
-“Good afternoon, Pansy. I am glad to see that you are making it up
-with your old lover. I was behind a tree, watching you two while you
-sat on that bench talking. You find the old love as sweet as ever, eh?
-Well, no one can blame you for not loving that old man you married for
-his money,” were the impertinent words that greeted her astonished ears.
-
-She drew herself up haughtily, and tried to freeze him with her
-indignant glance.
-
-“Get out of my path, you wretch! How dare you persist in pretending to
-recognize me as some one you have known?” she exclaimed angrily; but he
-only laughed, and, staying close by her side, retorted:
-
-“Somebody else recognized you as some one he had known before, too,
-Mrs. Falconer. Didn’t I hear Norman Wylde calling you Pansy an hour or
-so ago, when you first came up to him?”
-
-She trembled with horror at the accusation, but, remembering that she
-had not admitted the truth to Norman Wylde, took courage.
-
-“Pshaw! Resemblances are common,” she said carelessly. “I do not
-deny that Mr. Wylde took me for some one else, but he immediately
-apologized for his mistake, and if you had the instincts of a gentleman
-you would do the same.”
-
-“But I have not made a mistake,” leered Finley. He kept along by her
-side, although she was walking fast, and continued: “Pansy, you had as
-well own up to me, for I have recognized you, and I mean to make money
-out of my knowledge. I am poor, and I have your mother and sisters to
-support. You are rich, and you must give me some money for them, or I
-will betray you to your husband.”
-
-Although Pansy trembled inwardly at his bold threat, she determined
-that she would not yield to his demands.
-
-“Once own that I am Pansy Laurens, and all is lost. I could never
-satisfy the man’s rapacity, and he would only betray me at last.
-Besides, he cannot prove my identity; he only suspects it,” she thought
-wisely; and, to his angry astonishment, she laughed scornfully.
-
-“Why are you laughing?” he demanded; and, lifting her bright face
-defiantly, she answered:
-
-“I am pleased because I see a policeman up there near the governor’s
-mansion, and I am going to give you into custody for annoying me.”
-
-He followed her glance and grew pale as he saw the blue-coated
-custodian of the law pacing along the walk she indicated. Stopping
-short, he growled fiercely:
-
-“You wouldn’t dare!”
-
-“You will see, my clever friend,” she replied airily, also stopping and
-looking up at him again so coolly that he wondered at her unconcern.
-
-“You had better leave me,” she said calmly, though white to the lips
-with anger. “I do not desire to have you arrested, for I know my
-husband would have you punished to the full extent of the law. He knows
-all about my past, and your talk of betrayal is the senseless chatter
-of a madman. Will you go now, or shall I call the policeman, or any of
-these gentlemen sitting around?”
-
-He was baffled by her cool assumption of fearlessness, for he did not
-dare to drive her to bay. No one knew so well as himself what cause he
-had to dread exposure.
-
-Glowering fiercely on her from his small, beady black eyes, he hissed,
-low and threateningly:
-
-“I am going now, but not that I’m afraid of you, nor that policeman,
-either, only for your mother’s sake, because it would break her heart
-to know that her shameless child was still alive. But you will hear
-from me again--remember that, my saucy madam, and live in fear of my
-vengeance.”
-
-“I am not in the least afraid of you, and I am going to call that
-policeman this minute,” Pansy answered, walking briskly away; and, to
-her joy, Mr. Finley turned and walked quickly off, going out of the
-square at a gate directly opposite.
-
-“He is a coward, despite his threats, and he will not trouble me again,
-I hope,” she murmured, leaving the square and going quickly toward home
-with no other drawback, except meeting several factory girls going home
-from work whose faces were perfectly familiar to her, and who had not
-forgotten hers, either, for one nudged the other and exclaimed audibly:
-
-“Good gracious, the very image of poor Pansy Laurens!”
-
-Pansy’s heart gave a wild throb, and she hurried past the girls,
-thinking:
-
-“I ought never to have come back here. I am not changed as I thought I
-was. Every one knows my face, and I fear trouble will come of it yet.
-Suppose I were to meet my mother, or sisters, for instance, and they
-were to claim me, I do not believe I could be brave enough to deny my
-identity.”
-
-That night she begged her husband to hurry up his business, that he
-might take her away from the city.
-
-“It is so warm and sultry here that I am almost afraid I shall fall ill
-if I stay,” she said; and he, remembering her headache of a few days
-before, took alarm at once.
-
-“It is very vexatious, this law business. My sister’s affairs were in
-a terribly tangled condition, and I’m afraid it will be several days
-yet before I can get away,” he said; then, smiling and encircling
-the graceful figure with his arm, he added; “But that is no reason,
-my darling, that you and Juliette should remain here. Both of you
-are quite ready to go, you say. Then why not start to White Sulphur
-to-morrow, and let me follow when I get through my task here?”
-
-Her heart leaped with joy, then she inwardly chided herself for her
-eagerness to leave him.
-
-“It would not be kind to leave you--and--I should miss you so,” she
-murmured, speaking quite truthfully, for she had a gentle affection
-for him still, in spite of the truant heart that fluttered so at the
-very thought of Norman Wylde.
-
-“But if I can get away from Richmond I shall not think so often of him,
-and I can be truer in heart to my husband,” she thought, for she had
-heard the Wyldes say that Norman would not consent to accompany them.
-
-Colonel Falconer was pleased at the knowledge that she would miss him,
-but he declared that he was afraid she would be sick if she remained
-any longer in the city.
-
-“And as I cannot get away yet, you must not wait for me any longer. You
-can write to me every day, and that will be some consolation for your
-absence,” he said.
-
-Juliette was delighted when she heard that they were not to wait
-for her uncle. She hurried around to the Wyldes the next morning to
-persuade them to go, too, and was successful in her mission.
-
-“Only Norman says he can’t get away from his business this summer,”
-said Rosalind.
-
-“And he won’t go?” Juliette asked, bitterly disappointed.
-
-“No.”
-
-“Oh, very well. There will be plenty of other beaus!” Juliette said,
-tossing her head and pretending to be indifferent. “Well, it is settled
-that we meet at the depot this evening, Mrs. Wylde?”
-
-“Yes,” replied the lady; and Juliette hurried home to make her
-arrangements, and to vent her spleen on Norman Wylde by saying to Pansy:
-
-“Norman Wylde won’t go because I have treated him so coldly, Rosalind
-says; but he may sulk all he chooses. I shall not make up with him in a
-hurry.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXVII. “A MARRIED FLIRT.”
-
-
-When Pansy had left Norman Wylde, Mrs. Meade sat down on the seat she
-had vacated, and her face was very grave and thoughtful.
-
-It had appeared very strange to her to find Norman Wylde and the
-beautiful Mrs. Falconer alone in the park together, and seeming to be
-on very amicable terms with each other, whereas she had supposed them
-to be almost utter strangers.
-
-“Perhaps she is a flirt,” she thought suspiciously; and just then
-Norman Wylde turned his head, after watching Pansy until she
-disappeared, and said:
-
-“How does it happen that Mrs. Falconer and Pet are so well acquainted
-with each other?”
-
-The old housekeeper, who had known him ever since he was a little boy,
-answered dryly:
-
-“Mr. Norman, I was just going to ask the same question about yourself
-and Mrs. Falconer.”
-
-He smiled at first, then flushed a dark red at her searching glance,
-and answered:
-
-“But I do not know Mrs. Falconer very well. I have never met her but
-once or twice until she came down this path, quite by accident, a while
-ago, and I invited her to rest a few minutes--she looked so tired and
-warm.”
-
-“I was afraid she was one of them married flirts that’s getting so
-fashionable nowadays,” muttered Mrs. Meade.
-
-“A married flirt! No, indeed! I believe Mrs. Falconer is as pure and
-sweet and shy as a child. She is so much like one I knew years ago that
-she could not be otherwise,” exclaimed Norman Wylde earnestly, as he
-fondled Pet, who had crept to his knee, thus consoling himself for the
-departure of his “pretty yady.”
-
-Mrs. Meade looked up, all eager interest.
-
-“Like some one you knew?” she exclaimed eagerly.
-
-“Yes,” he replied, with a heavy sigh, and the housekeeper asked
-coaxingly:
-
-“Would you mind telling me whom she looked like, Mr. Norman?”
-
-“Curiosity, thy name is woman!” he said, with a low laugh, half dreary
-amusement, half bitterness; then, with another sigh, he went on: “Mrs.
-Meade, I suppose you know all about my unfortunate love affair of three
-years ago?”
-
-She nodded, and then he said:
-
-“This beautiful Mrs. Falconer is the image of the girl I loved, and
-from whom my parents parted me. She committed suicide by drowning
-within a year after I went away, you remember?”
-
-“Ah!” exclaimed the old housekeeper, and her face began to glow with
-excitement.
-
-“Mr. Norman, are you sure she drowned herself?” she asked eagerly.
-
-“Sure!” he repeated, turning toward her, with wondering eyes. “Why,
-what do you mean, Mrs. Meade?”
-
-“Was her body ever recovered from the river?” retorted the housekeeper
-significantly.
-
-He started violently, then answered:
-
-“No!”
-
-“So I thought,” said Mrs. Meade, and, following up her train of
-thought, she added: “There isn’t any possibility that Mrs. Falconer can
-be the same girl, is there, Mr. Norman?”
-
-He sprang from his seat, pushing Pet unconsciously from him, and
-confronted her, pale with surprise and excitement.
-
-“You must be mad!” he exclaimed. “This lady was one of the belles of
-Louisville--never was in Richmond until this summer, I am told.”
-
-“Sit down, Mr. Norman, and forgive me for talking like an old fool,
-although maybe I’m not such a fool, after all,” answered Mrs. Meade.
-But he would not sit down again; he remained standing in front of her
-and looking down consciously into her agitated face as she continued,
-in a low, grave voice:
-
-“Being such an old woman, Mr. Norman, and knowing you ever since you
-was no bigger than Pet here, you needn’t mind my asking you questions
-that might be impertinent from some people.”
-
-“Ask what you please, Mrs. Meade. I am too much your friend to take
-offense at your plain speaking,” he replied encouragingly; and, without
-any further preamble, she queried:
-
-“In that unfortunate love affair of yours, Mr. Norman, was there any
-prospect of--a--child?”
-
-“No!” he answered quickly, almost angrily, yet she saw the hot color
-shoot up to his brow, and his glance fell before hers.
-
-She sighed, and exclaimed:
-
-“Then I’m all at sea again, for, to tell you the truth, Mr. Norman,
-I’ve been half believing all this time that Pet here was your own
-child!”
-
-He started as if shot, and, dropping into a seat again, caught Pet’s
-hand and drew him forward, scrutinizing his beautiful features with
-eager eyes:
-
-“Can’t you see that he has your eyes, your features?” exclaimed Mrs.
-Meade triumphantly, and, with something like a groan, he muttered:
-
-“And something of her, too!” he said. “That smile, those dainty
-dimples, how like, how like! Now I understand what drew my heart so
-strongly to the child. Mrs. Meade,” looking up at her with blazing
-eyes, “you must answer now the question I asked you first: How is it
-that Pet and Mrs. Falconer know each other so well?”
-
-And, for answer, she began at the first meeting of Mrs. Falconer
-and the child, and related all that had taken place since, dwelling
-strongly on their mutual passionate attachment for each other, and on
-the lady’s eager desire to adopt the child.
-
-“I will tell you the truth, Mr. Norman: I strongly suspect that this
-beautiful lady is the child’s own mother, and if there is no chance
-that the little one can be yours, why, then I ought to let her have
-him, maybe. I refused because I thought he was yours,” she said.
-
-“You were right not to let her have him,” he exclaimed hurriedly.
-Then his face dropped into his hands a moment, and passers-by looked
-curiously at the old woman, the pretty child, and the handsome man
-bowed in an attitude of deep dejection.
-
-Little Pet was so grieved at the man’s sorrowful attitude that he
-went up to him and encircled Norman’s neck with his chubby arms, and
-inquired tenderly:
-
-“Oo kyin’ tause pretty yady gone?”
-
-The young man caught him in his arms, straining him to his breast, and
-again gazed eagerly into his lovely face.
-
-“My little darling, what if it were to prove true?” he muttered
-hoarsely; then, looking around at Mrs. Meade, he asked:
-
-“Do you know where Mrs. Laurens, the mother of poor little Pansy,
-lives?”
-
-“No, I do not know,” she replied; and a look of bitter disappointment
-came over his face.
-
-“I have been trying ever since I came home to trace that woman,” he
-exclaimed. “I remember that just before I went away she was married a
-second time, and went on a bridal tour with her husband. But I do not
-know the name of the person she married, nor where she is living now,
-for she has moved away from where she resided when I went away.”
-
-Was it fate, or only a blind chance, for at that moment there came
-along the walk a plainly dressed, stooping figure, with a sad, worn
-face that had once been very pretty, though now faded and forlorn.
-Norman had seen Pansy’s mother only once, but he recognized her again
-in this passer-by, and, springing to his feet, exclaimed:
-
-“Mrs. Laurens!”
-
-The pale, sad-looking creature recoiled from him with a frightened
-denial:
-
-“I--I--that is not my name!”
-
-Norman caught her wrist in a firm yet tender clasp, for she was trying
-to get away.
-
-“Wait!” he said sternly. “Denials are useless, for I know that you are
-Mrs. Laurens, and I think you know that I am Norman Wylde. I was just
-speaking about you and wishing I knew where to find you. I want you
-to tell me the truth about this child here. Is it not your daughter
-Pansy’s?”
-
-“No--oh, no!” she exclaimed wildly; but just then Mrs. Meade exclaimed
-surprisedly:
-
-“La, me, that’s the very woman I have seen dozens of times, hanging
-about when I took Pet out, but never mistrusted who she was!”
-
-Mrs. Laurens looked at her imploringly, and faltered out:
-
-“You must be mistaken. I never saw you before, ma’am.”
-
-“Well, I never!” ejaculated the housekeeper, and little Pet himself
-gave the lie to Mrs. Laurens’ denial, for he came to her with a smile,
-and cooed sweetly:
-
-“Is oo dot any more tandy to-day?”
-
-“You see, the child knows you. Confess the truth now! Are you not his
-own grandmother?” exclaimed Norman, low but eagerly.
-
-Mrs. Laurens writhed under his grasp, and looked from right to left
-with frightened eyes.
-
-“Answer me!” persisted Norman. But a dogged look came over her face,
-and she replied:
-
-“No, my daughter Pansy never had a child. Why do you want to throw
-disgrace on my poor dead girl?” And she suddenly burst into tears,
-and, tugging at his hand, wailed out: “Oh, let me go! I promised to
-meet my daughter Alice when she was coming home from the factory,
-and--and--it’s past the closing time now.”
-
-“Will you swear that this is not Pansy’s child?” Norman insisted
-hoarsely; but at that moment she succeeded in freeing her hand from his
-clasp and darted away like a startled deer. Not wishing to create a
-sensation, he had to refrain from following her.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXVIII. THE BLACKMAILER BAFFLED.
-
-
-Mr. Finley had left Pansy and sought his home again in a tempest
-of fury and baffled cupidity, realizing fully that his scheme of
-blackmailing her would not succeed, and that he must look elsewhere for
-booty.
-
-Pansy’s dauntless bravery and defiance had certainly staggered his bold
-courage, and he began to fear that he was not going to receive such a
-windfall as he had expected from Pansy’s secret. Having a dangerous
-secret of his own, which would be sure to come to light if he proceeded
-openly against her, he found himself in a quandary.
-
-“The plucky little wretch! Who would have believed that she would
-openly defy me, and deny her identity? Why, she would have handed me
-over to that policeman in another moment if I hadn’t cut and run,”
-he exclaimed angrily, feeling that he would like to shake the little
-beauty for her bold defiance.
-
-He slept but little that night for thinking about her, and the next day
-he came to the conclusion that, of all those concerned in the drama
-in which he was so cleverly enacting the villain’s part, there was no
-chance of blackmailing any but Colonel Falconer.
-
-“He is rich and will pay liberally for the keeping of the secret I
-hold against his wife,” he decided, and then he set his cunning brain
-to work to devise a plan by which to approach Colonel Falconer on the
-delicate subject of his wife.
-
-Poor little Mrs. Finley, whom he had long ago reduced to the status
-of a trembling, obedient slave, looked at him in wonder as he lounged
-about the house, paying no attention to the grocery, for he had long
-ago placed Willie in his store as a clerk, and the youth was very
-reliable. She thought fearfully:
-
-“There is something brewing in his cunning mind. Has he found out that
-I have been seeing my poor little grandchild by stealth, and is he
-planning some punishment for me?”
-
-She trembled at the thought, for she knew that he was both cunning and
-vindictive. He ruled her and her children with a rod of iron.
-
-He had never forgotten or forgiven the assertion of his wife, that she
-would never have married him if she had known that he would not care
-for her children, and he made her and them suffer for it in various
-ways. One of his favorite methods was to taunt them with the disgrace
-that Pansy had brought upon them, and another was to keep alive in
-Willie’s breast the fierce resentment and murderous wrath that had
-taken hold of him when he first learned that his beautiful sister had
-gone astray.
-
-Left to himself and to the remorseful pleadings of his mother, the
-young man might have got over some of his anger, more especially as
-poor Pansy had atoned for her fault with her life. There were times
-when the remembrance of her message to him, her pitiful promise that
-she would never disgrace him again, stung keenly, and forced him to
-accuse himself of being accessory to her death; but these moods never
-lasted long, for whenever Mr. Finley found these kinder impulses taking
-root in the youth’s mind he would dispel them by maliciously hinting
-that, in all probability, Pansy was yet alive, and might turn up at any
-time to recall to the world the scandal that had trailed its slime
-over the name of Laurens.
-
-“Pretty Kate North would not smile so sweetly then when she saw you
-waiting at the church door on Sundays,” he suggested, with a leer that
-brought the hot color to Willie’s cheeks, for this, his first real love
-affair, was a very tender point with him, and he had often wondered to
-himself if pretty little Kate North, with her black eyes and dimpled
-red cheeks, thought any the less of him because of the family disgrace.
-
-His love for Kate made him all the more bitter in his thoughts toward
-Pansy.
-
-“How dared she disgrace the family so? I hate her memory, even though
-believing her dead and if I knew she were alive I should be tempted to
-carry out my threat, and shoot her on sight,” he replied angrily to
-the taunt of his stepfather that day on which Mr. Finley’s mind was
-so engaged in plotting the best means by which to extort money from
-Colonel Falconer for keeping the dark secret of his wife’s past.
-
-He did not know that his malice had overreached itself, and that the
-fury smoldering in Willie’s impetuous mind, and fanned into flame by
-his sneers and gibes, would bear fruit to disappoint him of all his
-avaricious hopes.
-
-Willie was almost twenty now, with an overstrained sense of honor,
-sharpened in intensity by his sister’s fault. He was sensitively alive
-to the disgrace that rested on the family name, and had brooded over it
-until he had grown morbid. His handsome young face remained dark and
-cloudy after Mr. Finley went out, and his thoughts were so absorbed
-that he could scarcely wait upon the customers who came in and out of
-the neat store.
-
-“Strange that he is always suggesting the thought that Pansy may be
-alive, after all. Perhaps he knows more than he chooses to tell,” he
-muttered. And the thought wore on him so that he went to the corner of
-a shelf, where his stepfather kept a private bottle, and took a drink
-of brandy to steady his shaking nerves.
-
-Then, from a case in a hiding place of his own he took a small pistol
-and examined it with gloomy eyes.
-
-“It is all right,” he muttered hoarsely; then, at the sound of a step
-entering the store, he replaced it hurriedly, and turned around, to
-face Mr. North, the father of the girl he loved.
-
-“Good afternoon, Mr. North. What can I do for you?” he inquired
-politely.
-
-Mr. North was only a clerk, but he was inordinately proud and
-ambitious, and his face darkened with anger as he returned brusquely:
-
-“I want a few words with you, young man. My wife tells me that you have
-been paying some attention to my daughter Kate?”
-
-“Ye-es, Mr. North,” Willie stammered, with a boyish flush, adding
-anxiously: “I trust you have no objection to my love for her?”
-
-“Nonsense! You are nothing but a boy,” replied Mr. North curtly, and
-the handsome young face before him deepened in color at the taunt; but
-he answered, in a manly way:
-
-“I am almost twenty, and my stepfather has promised to give me a
-partnership in the store when I am twenty-one. My prospects are fair.”
-
-“I care nothing for your prospects! It is your family I object to,” was
-the brusque, startling reply. Then, as if ashamed of the taunt, Mr.
-North went on, more gently: “I am sorry to wound your feelings, Willie;
-I believe you are a good boy, in the main, although it was said at one
-time that you were dissipated and wild. Still, you had an excuse for
-that--the same excuse that I have in forbidding your attentions to my
-daughter.”
-
-“Mr. North!”
-
-“I said that I forbade any more attentions to Kate. When she marries,
-it must be one with a stainless family record. Your sister’s fault has
-disgraced her family, and may do so even more terribly, for there are
-many who doubt that she was ever drowned, and she may reappear at any
-time.”
-
-“Mr. North, are there any grounds for this belief?” the poor fellow
-asked hoarsely.
-
-“A face like hers has been seen several times in Richmond lately. Some
-of the factory girls believe that they saw her yesterday as they came
-from work. She is always richly dressed, and it must be that she is
-leading a life of gilded shame in this city.”
-
-A hoarse groan came from the stricken young man’s lips; then, with
-flashing eyes, he exclaimed:
-
-“Then she is running a terrible risk, for only let me find her, and I
-will send a bullet crashing through her shameless heart!”
-
-“No, no!” the gentleman exclaimed, recoiling in dismay, but Willie
-Laurens angrily reiterated his threat.
-
-“You will see,” he said. “She wrecked my life, and I will wipe out the
-family disgrace in her heart’s blood.”
-
-“You are mad, simply mad! Would you become your sister’s murderer, and
-break your poor mother’s heart?” cried Mr. North, shocked and pained
-by his furious mood, and not dreaming of the fiery fluid that had
-inflamed the young man’s blood. He turned away from the reckless boy,
-and was going abruptly out of the store when a horseman drew rein on
-the pavement before him, and asked excitedly:
-
-“Does the mother of Miss Alice Laurens live here?”
-
-“Yes; is there anything wrong?” inquired Mr. North curiously, and at
-the same moment the pale, agitated face of Willie Laurens appeared in
-the doorway, and he said:
-
-“I am the brother of Alice Laurens. What is wrong?”
-
-The man looked at him with pitying eyes, and answered:
-
-“Heaven knows I hate to tell you, but I have no choice. An accident has
-befallen your sister. She fell through an open hatchway at Arnell &
-Grey’s a few minutes ago, and--break it to her mother as gently as you
-can, for they are bringing her here now. She is very badly hurt. It is
-not believed that she can live.”
-
-“Terrible!” cried Mr. North, as he flung out his arms to support Willie
-Laurens, who had reeled and staggered in agony at that heart-rending
-announcement.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIX. CAUGHT IN A TRAP.
-
-
-Pretty sixteen-year-old Alice Laurens looked wonderfully like her elder
-sister as she lay, with pale face and close-shut lids, upon her little
-bed, with her mother and only remaining sister, Nora, weeping over
-her, while Mr. Finley hovered, like a bird of prey, in the background,
-heartlessly calculating in his own mind how far this accident might be
-turned to his advantage in forcing Pansy Falconer to own her identity,
-and to pay his price for keeping her secret from her proud husband.
-
-Alice Laurens had a broken arm, and had remained unconscious ever
-since her fall, so that the physicians feared she had sustained
-internal injuries that would speedily result in death. One of them had
-accompanied her home, and sat in grave silence, watching the scene,
-while Willie Laurens, utterly crushed and disheartened, had flung
-himself into a chair, and, with his convulsed face hidden in his hands,
-seemed utterly oblivious to everything but his sorrow.
-
-Altogether, it was a sad scene on which the parting sun’s rays fell,
-as they slanted in at the open door and penciled with golden beams the
-prematurely silvered head of the unhappy mother as she knelt by her
-unconscious child, uttering piteous moans of grief and despair, for her
-afflictions pressed heavily on her heart.
-
-Minutes passed, and there was apparently no change in Alice. That
-she still lived was only evident from a faint pulsation which the
-clever physician could barely detect in her wrist, and every moment he
-expected that even that faint, fluttering spark would go out in death.
-
-The lingering sunset began to fade. Some of the neighbors came in with
-hushed footsteps and sympathetic faces. On the dark, frowning face of
-Mr. Finley a light of satisfaction began to dawn.
-
-When twilight began to darken the summer sky, he slipped from that
-solemn chamber, where they were watching for death to come in and
-dispossess the mother’s heart of its treasure, and disappeared from the
-scene.
-
-He made his way quickly to Franklin Street, and rang the bell at
-Colonel Falconer’s door. When a servant appeared he pushed past him
-and unceremoniously entered the wide hall.
-
-“Tell Mrs. Falconer that a man is waiting with an important message
-from her husband,” he said boldly.
-
-The servant showed him into a small reception room, and disappeared,
-while Finley waited--rather nervously, it must be confessed, for he was
-by no means certain that Colonel Falconer was out. What if he should
-appear, and kick the lying intruder out of doors?
-
-But fortune favored him, for in a very few moments the rustle of a
-woman’s garments was audible, and then Pansy appeared before him,
-simply clad in a pale-gray traveling dress, and with a tear-stained
-face and swollen eyes. She closed the door carefully behind her, then
-started back as she beheld her visitor.
-
-“You!” she exclaimed, in horrified tones.
-
-He rose and bowed profoundly.
-
-“I came to bring you the sad news of poor Alice, but I see from your
-face that you have already heard,” he said pointedly.
-
-Pansy made a scornful gesture, and sank into a seat.
-
-“What do you mean?” she demanded, trying to keep up an assumption of
-indifference that was only too plainly belied by her trembling voice
-and swollen eyelids.
-
-“Your sister Alice, Mrs. Falconer, fell, by accident, through an open
-hatchway at Arnell & Grey’s this afternoon, and is now on her deathbed.
-She raves for you--calls for you every moment. Can you have the heart
-to refuse to go to your dying sister?”
-
-She looked steadily at him, and answered defiantly:
-
-“I have heard of that accident at Arnell & Grey’s, but what is that to
-me? I do not know the poor girl.”
-
-“What is the use your trying to fence with me like this, Pansy? I know
-you!” cried Finley harshly, adding: “But I did not know your cursed
-pride was so strong, else I had not come for you, even to please that
-poor, dying girl, who begged me so piteously to come.”
-
-“She did not send you. She believes that her erring sister died,” Pansy
-answered irresolutely.
-
-“She believed that once, but not lately. There have been rumors that
-she is still alive, that she had been seen of late on the streets of
-this city, and that she is living a life of gilded shame. The story has
-preyed on the poor girl’s mind, and she sent me to seek you, that she
-might pray you with her dying breath to forsake your sinful life.”
-
-“You have told those base falsehoods to that poor, credulous child!”
-Pansy flashed forth indignantly, but he denied the accusation, and
-continued:
-
-“I cannot bear to return to her without you. The disappointment in her
-dying eyes would haunt me. I will make you a proposition, Pansy: Come
-with me to her dying bed, and I will manage things so that you shall
-see her alone. Not even her mother shall enter the room, and you shall
-go away again, and not a living soul be any the wiser for your presence
-there.”
-
-She saw that he was very much in earnest, that he would do as he said,
-and, twisting her little hands together in an agony of indecision, she
-exclaimed:
-
-“Do you know that in little more than an hour I am to leave here for
-the White Sulphur Springs? Miss Ives has already gone around to her
-friends who will accompany us. My husband will come home presently to
-drive with me to the depot.”
-
-“And in the meantime your poor, dying sister is calling for you in
-vain. Pansy Laurens, you are utterly heartless!” exclaimed Mr. Finley,
-with a fine show of indignation.
-
-She trembled perceptibly, and grew pale as a snowdrop under the glare
-of the gaslight.
-
-“May her uneasy spirit haunt you, and drive repose from your breast!”
-he cried tragically.
-
-Whirling toward him with a disdainful gesture of her white hand, she
-exclaimed:
-
-“What if I went with you, simply to humor the fancy of this poor, dying
-girl--mind, I own to no relationship with her--what would be the price
-of your silence?”
-
-Without moving a muscle, he answered coolly:
-
-“A thousand dollars!”
-
-“You are certainly rapacious! I could not give you such a sum to-night.”
-
-“I should not expect it. I would give you a week to raise it, if you
-would leave with me some of your diamonds as a guarantee of good
-faith,” he replied, with an air of business that amused while it
-disgusted her.
-
-“Unfortunately, my jewels are packed and my trunks are gone. You will
-have to depend upon my simple word of honor, or go back as you came,”
-she replied coldly.
-
-He studied her face a moment, then said sullenly:
-
-“I will take your word of honor, then. You have too much at stake to
-risk disappointing me. So that is settled. Of course, if you did not
-pay me in a week I should follow you to the White Sulphur Springs. Will
-you come with me now?”
-
-“Go out and hail some passing cab, and keep it waiting at the corner
-around the next square. I will join you there in a few minutes, for I
-have no time to lose. I must return here in time to join my husband,”
-Pansy answered, dismissing him with a wave of her hand, and then
-hastening upstairs to don a concealing bonnet and veil, and to leave
-some plausible excuse with Phebe for Colonel Falconer, who might return
-at any moment.
-
-She left the house regretfully, with unsteady steps and a foreboding
-heart, fearing that she was doing wrong, but drawn by a passionate
-yearning to the deathbed of her beloved sister.
-
-“How could I refuse her dying prayer, even though its granting be
-attended with so much risk and cost to myself?” she thought, with
-generous pity and self-sacrificing love.
-
-“Remember,” she said to Finley, as they were whirled swiftly up the
-steep grade of Broad Street toward his home on Church Hill, “I must see
-Alice Laurens alone. You will go in first, and see that every one else
-leaves the room.”
-
-“I will do so,” he promised, and no more was said between them. At
-the corner below his residence the hack was stopped. He got out, and
-directed her to wait until he returned for her.
-
-When he reëntered the house he found that a great change had taken
-place in the invalid.
-
-She had recovered full consciousness, and appeared so much better than
-had been expected by her physician that he declared it quite likely she
-would recover, if no untoward circumstances intervened. Fortunately for
-Finley’s purpose, the physician was watching by her bed alone, having
-persuaded the family to go into the dining room and partake of tea. A
-clever thought came to Finley, and he exclaimed:
-
-“Doctor Hewitt, a man has fallen in a fit on the corner two squares
-below, and they are hunting a physician everywhere. I will watch beside
-Alice if you will go.”
-
-The physician seized his hat, and, promising to return after a while,
-darted out, leaving the grocer in possession.
-
-He stooped over Alice, who was regarding him with wide-open, loathing
-eyes, for he was universally hated by his stepchildren, and, bending
-down, whispered hurriedly:
-
-“Your sister Pansy is coming to see you. Mind, there must be no outcry,
-and you must never tell any one she came, for she can stay but a few
-minutes, and no one must ever know she has been here.”
-
-In a few minutes more the two long-parted sisters were weeping in each
-other’s arms.
-
-“Do not try to talk, my darling sister,” whispered Pansy fondly,
-while Finley adroitly lowered the gas and turned the key in the door.
-Tenderly caressing Alice, Pansy continued: “I was not drowned, Alice,
-but I made you all think so that you might not worry over my fate. I am
-the wife of a good man, but he does not know my sad story, and I can
-never own my relatives, for then he would find out everything, and he
-is so proud he would cast me off. But I could not stay away, dear, when
-they told me you were dying, so I came in secret.”
-
-“I am glad that you came, my precious sister; but there is some mistake
-about my dying, for the doctor says I have a fair chance of getting
-well,” Alice answered feebly.
-
-“Thank Heaven!” murmured her beautiful sister, and the silence of deep
-emotion fell over them as they clung to each other.
-
-Finley looked on with exultation. These moments of reunion between the
-long-parted sisters were worth a thousand dollars to him now, and much
-more in the future; for, having once established a claim on Pansy, he
-would never rest satisfied until he had wrung from her every dollar she
-could command for years to come.
-
-“Oh, Alice, I long to see our mother, but I dare not do so. She must
-never know that I am living. You must keep the secret of this meeting,
-and, oh, you must love her well, and be very good to her for my sake,
-as well as your own,” murmured Pansy, with tears in her beautiful eyes,
-as she drew herself reluctantly from Alice’s clasping arms.
-
-“Must you go so soon?” sighed the suffering girl.
-
-“I dare not stay longer,” sobbed Pansy. She bent down and whispered
-hurriedly: “Alice, I will send you some money anonymously, and you must
-let no one know it came from me. Spend it for yourself, mamma, and
-Nora. Good-by, darling!” And, pressing her lips to her sister’s cheek
-in despairing love, she rose upright, and said anxiously:
-
-“Mr. Finley, I must go now, or they will come in and find me here.”
-
-She had pushed her thick veil back to the top of her bonnet, and her
-beautiful, pale face was clearly defined, even in the dim light of
-the room. Mr. Finley had forgotten that in this room, which was upon
-the first floor, there was a window that opened upon a narrow alley.
-The shutters were drawn, but the sash was raised, and Willie Laurens,
-anxious to see how Alice was, but fearful of intruding on the strict
-quiet prescribed for her, had tiptoed through the alley and slanted the
-shutters that he might gaze into the room.
-
-He saw with amazement the beautiful form kneeling by Alice and clasping
-her in its tender arms, saw the fond parting kiss, heard the words
-addressed to Mr. Finley, and beheld with mad, murderous rage the
-beautiful, despairing face of the sister whose sin had disgraced him
-and put the girl he loved so far above his reach.
-
-The seed Mr. Finley had industriously planted in his pliant mind had
-grown by now into a tree that was ready to bear deadly fruit. With a
-smothered imprecation, he rushed back into the store, and presently,
-when Pansy came stealing through the darkened hallway on her way to the
-street, her brother was waiting for her with the fires of hell in his
-young heart.
-
-He lifted the pistol in his hand, fired, and Pansy fell, bathed in
-blood, just inside the doorway.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXX. A SUPPOSED SUICIDE.
-
-
-In the very moment that Willie Laurens beheld his doomed sister fall
-by his hand, a torrent of remorse and despair overwhelmed the anger
-that had hurried him on to the awful deed, and, hurling the pistol from
-his grasp, he rushed to her side, and fell down on his knees, uttering
-bitter cries of remorse and self-reproach.
-
-Mr. Finley, coming instantly upon the scene, dragged him furiously to
-his feet.
-
-“You devil, you have killed your sister! Now fly, fly, and save
-yourself from the law!”
-
-But even while he spoke, the dining-room door was thrown violently
-open, and Mrs. Finley, followed by Nora, rushed upon the scene.
-
-By the light thrown from the open doorway of the room they had left,
-Pansy’s recumbent figure, with the blood flowing from it, was plainly
-seen on the floor.
-
-“Oh, Heaven, what is this?” cried the distracted woman, and Willie
-wrenched himself loose from his stepfather’s hold, and answered
-despairingly:
-
-“Mother, it is Pansy. She came back, as this wretch here was always
-hinting she would, and my fiendish temper got the better of me----”
-
-“And you killed her, you devil!” interrupted Mrs. Finley. She lifted
-her arm, shrieking hoarsely: “Go, go--with a mother’s curse on your
-wicked head! You are no longer a child of mine.”
-
-But Mr. Finley exclaimed sharply:
-
-“Hush your clatter, you parcel of fools! Perhaps she is not dead, after
-all. Doctor Hewitt will be back in a moment. Willie, go to your room,
-and stay there until I come to you!”
-
-Trained to habits of the strictest obedience to his harsh stepfather,
-Willie mechanically obeyed, and then Mr. Finley turned to his wife and
-said sharply:
-
-“I shall tell Hewitt that this is a case of suicide, and don’t either
-of you dare contradict me!”
-
-At that moment Doctor Hewitt appeared upon the doorstep, returning from
-his fool’s errand, and Mr. Finley hurriedly drew him in, and shut the
-door, turning the key in the lock. Strangely enough, no one had been
-attracted to the scene by the sound of the pistol shot, and he felt
-safe to carry out the deception.
-
-“Doctor, here is a new case for you!” he exclaimed, and, turning up the
-gas, the dreadful scene was revealed in all its horror and pathos.
-
-Doctor Hewitt had been physician to Arnell & Grey for many years, and,
-in the beautiful girl lying unconscious in a pool of blood on the
-floor, he instantly recognized the little factory girl who had come to
-harm years ago and then disappeared so mysteriously as to leave abroad
-the impression that she had drowned herself.
-
-“Pansy Laurens!” he exclaimed, in a shocked tone, and Mr. Finley
-replied:
-
-“Yes, it is poor Pansy. Is it not dreadful to think that, after staying
-away all these years, she should return to commit suicide in her
-mother’s house?”
-
-“Suicide?” echoed Doctor Hewitt.
-
-“Yes; we all heard a shot, and, rushing into the hall, found Pansy
-lying like this, and this pistol on the floor, where it had dropped
-from her hand,” exhibiting the pistol Willie had thrown down.
-
-Doctor Hewitt was on his knees by Pansy’s side, examining her wound,
-and in a few minutes he looked up, and said, in a tone of relief:
-
-“She has not succeeded in her awful design. The bullet only went
-through her shoulder, and she is not likely to die from that.”
-
-“Thank Heaven!” cried Mrs. Finley gladly, and her wicked husband could
-not help slightly echoing her words, for he was beginning to feel like
-a murderer, remembering how he kept at white heat, by his taunts and
-sneers, the fire of murderous rage in Willie Laurens’ heart.
-
-“She must be put to bed at once, and her wound dressed,” said the
-physician; and they carried her upstairs to her own room, where she had
-spent such unhappy hours four years ago. Then Mr. Finley said:
-
-“Doctor Hewitt, I would be glad to keep this whole miserable affair,
-even Pansy’s presence in this house, a secret, for the sake of her
-innocent young sisters. Will you help me to do it?”
-
-“Yes,” Doctor Hewitt replied, and then he sent Mr. Finley down to see
-after the patient who had been forgotten for the moment in the horror
-of this new calamity.
-
-When Pansy’s wound had been dressed she revived, and found her mother
-and sister by her side. They greeted each other with solemn, tender
-sadness, and then Pansy recognized the physician, and asked him quietly
-if she were going to die.
-
-“I hope not. Your wound is a painful one, but not necessarily
-dangerous. With good nursing, you will recover,” he replied pleasantly,
-and then he went down to see about Alice.
-
-Pansy lay for a long time in silence, then asked that Willie might come
-to her. When he came into the room, it seemed as if years had gone over
-his head, he was so changed by his grief and remorse.
-
-If she knew that his hand had fired that fatal shot, she made no sign
-of her knowledge. Greeting him with tender sisterly love, she drew him
-down to her, and whispered softly:
-
-“Go to Franklin Street, and tell Colonel Falconer to come with you to
-see his wife. Yes, I am his wife, Willie,” as he started wildly. “Do
-not tell him I was wounded. It would startle him too much. Only ask him
-to come to me.”
-
-She realized that further concealment of her past, after all that had
-happened would be useless. She must confess all, and throw herself on
-Colonel Falconer’s mercy.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXI. AN AMAZED HUSBAND.
-
-
-Willie Laurens found Colonel Falconer pacing up and down the walk in
-front of his house, watching impatiently for his wife’s return from the
-errand of kindness on which she had vaguely told the maid she was going.
-
-It was no wonder he was impatient, for it lacked scarcely ten minutes
-to train time. The carriage was waiting for Pansy, and Phebe, the maid,
-was already seated within it.
-
-“You are Colonel Falconer, sir?” Willie Laurens asked politely.
-
-“Yes. Have you any business with me?”
-
-“A message from your wife. She wishes that I should conduct you to her
-side.”
-
-“Has anything happened to my wife?” exclaimed Colonel Falconer
-excitedly.
-
-“You will soon know if you will accompany me,” returned Willie
-evasively.
-
-“Where is she?”
-
-“At my mother’s house on Church Hill.”
-
-Colonel Falconer gave a keen, scrutinizing glance into the young man’s
-face by the light afforded from a gas lamp near by.
-
-Then he started violently.
-
-In the boyish beauty of Willie’s face he detected a strong likeness to
-his wife.
-
-“Your name?” he exclaimed.
-
-“Willie Laurens.”
-
-“Are you related to my wife?”
-
-“That is for her to say, Colonel Falconer,” replied the young man
-modestly.
-
-“But I don’t understand this at all. My wife should be here to
-accompany me at once. She will miss her train,” exclaimed Colonel
-Falconer testily.
-
-“I think she expected that, sir,” was the answer he received from
-Willie, who began to grow nervous as he scrutinized the big,
-good-looking colonel, wondering what he would say if he knew that the
-slight youth before him had attempted his wife’s life.
-
-“He would strike me down at his feet in a moment,” he decided
-nervously, and, in order to ward off all further questions, he said:
-
-“I think, sir, that if you would come at once with me to Mrs. Falconer
-she would explain everything to your satisfaction.”
-
-“Very well, then, I will do so, for I am very much puzzled over all
-this. Will you come with me in my carriage, Mr. Laurens?”
-
-“I shall be glad of a seat with you, sir, as it will enable us to reach
-Mrs. Falconer sooner.”
-
-“Come, then!” And they entered the carriage, where they found Phebe in
-a fever of curiosity.
-
-“Would it be advisable to take my wife’s maid?” the colonel then asked;
-and Willie, remembering that Pansy would need a nurse, and that his
-mother would have her hands full in caring for Alice, replied in the
-affirmative.
-
-He then gave the address to the driver, and in a very short time they
-arrived at their destination.
-
-“Perhaps you had better leave the maid in the carriage,” suggested
-Willie, and Colonel Falconer readily acquiesced, thinking that Pansy
-would be ready to accompany him home in a few minutes.
-
-During the drive to Mr. Finley’s house he had come to the conclusion
-that Pansy’s warm sympathies had been enlisted by some charitable
-object for which she wished to secure his pity and aid. For this
-laudable purpose she had doubtless delayed starting on her trip,
-thinking that to-morrow would do as well.
-
-“But Juliette and the Wyldes will have already gone,” he thought. “No
-matter; Mrs. Wylde can chaperon Juliette until Pansy goes.”
-
-But his complacent feelings were soon dissipated, for, as they went
-upstairs, Willie Laurens said reluctantly:
-
-“Colonel Falconer, your wife was seized with a sudden sickness an hour
-ago, and you must not be surprised or frightened if you find her still
-in bed.”
-
-Then he threw open Pansy’s door.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXII. THE REVELATION.
-
-
-Colonel Falconer was so shocked and startled by Willie Laurens’ words
-that he staggered rather than walked across the threshold of the room
-where Pansy was lying, with close-shut eyes, among the white pillows of
-the bed, carefully watched by Nora Laurens, who now, at a sign from her
-brother, arose and left the room.
-
-Colonel Falconer found himself alone with Pansy, and, at the closing
-of the door, she opened wide those wondrous eyes of violet blue, and
-looked mournfully up into his face.
-
-Oh, the pain, the grief, the despair of that glance! It went straight
-to the man’s loving heart, and he fell on his knees with a groan, and
-pressed his lips to her white brow in passionate love.
-
-She lay still and sorrowful, while fond words of love poured from
-his lips, and kisses rained on her fair face. She said to herself
-that if he repudiated her and cast her off after he had heard her sad
-confession, she would have the memory of these caresses to comfort her
-when her noble husband was lost to her forever.
-
-By and by he lifted his head, and said reproachfully:
-
-“You should not have gone out, my darling, if you were not feeling
-well. You know you have not been strong for some time.”
-
-She knew that she must speak now, and so she answered faintly:
-
-“I have had an accident, Colonel Falconer. I have been shot in the
-shoulder.”
-
-He recoiled with a cry of dismay, and she continued, in a low but
-distinct voice:
-
-“Stay here by me, and--I--will--tell you all--about it. I am not going
-to die, they say, although it--might--be--better if I were.”
-
-“Pansy, you must be raving! You do not mean that,” he exclaimed, in
-alarm, and with such a tender look that she exclaimed remorsefully:
-
-“Ah, how good you are to me! But I do not deserve it, for I have
-deceived you shamefully, and when I have confessed my sin you
-will--cast me off--you will never--speak--to--poor--Pansy again!”
-
-“Now I am quite sure that you are raving. You have done nothing, my
-precious wife, for which I could visit you with such harsh punishment
-as that,” exclaimed her husband fondly, as he bent over her and
-smoothed back with loving hands the curling locks that strayed over her
-blue-veined brow.
-
-A heavy sigh drifted over the lips that were pale with pain, and Pansy
-murmured sadly:
-
-“I am not raving. Although I am in great pain from the wound in my
-shoulder, I know quite well what I am saying. I have deceived you, my
-kind, noble husband, and when you know all you will hate me.”
-
-“Nonsense!” he replied cheerily, and, clasping her cold little hand
-warmly and closely in his, he murmured reassuringly:
-
-“Come, let us have that dreadful confession, my pet, that your foolish
-alarms may be speedily dissipated.”
-
-But no answering smile met his. Pansy was as pale as death as she began:
-
-“Louisville was not my--native place--as I told you. I--I--was born--in
-Richmond--and I am at this moment--under my mother’s roof.”
-
-Colonel Falconer started violently, but he still kept fast hold of her
-little hand as she continued:
-
-“That is not all. I--I--had run away from my home when I met
-Mrs. Beach. There--there--was a stain--upon my name--although,”
-passionately, “I swear to you it was not my fault! I am--Heaven pity
-me!--that girl whom Juliette Ives hates so relentlessly because she
-caused the breaking of her engagement with Norman Wylde.”
-
-“Pansy Laurens!” Colonel Falconer uttered, in a voice of horror; and he
-dropped her hand and started back.
-
-She made no reply. Her confession had exhausted her strength, and she
-had fainted.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXIII. NOBLE FORGIVENESS.
-
-
-Colonel Falconer stood gazing like one petrified at his unconscious
-wife until suddenly his own face whitened to a marble pallor, an
-expression of keen agony convulsed his features, and, clasping both
-hands upon his breast, he sank backward into a chair, while a low moan
-of pain escaped his lips.
-
-He had been seized with a spasm at the heart, a misfortune that had
-befallen him at various times in his life, but of which he had never
-spoken to Pansy, being very sensitive on the score of the heart
-disease, which was hereditary in the Falconer family, and of which his
-sister, Mrs. Ives, had died.
-
-For a few moments he lay back in the chair, struggling with all his
-strength of mind against his misery; then, putting his hand into his
-breast pocket, he brought out a small vial, from whose contents he
-swallowed a few drops. The effect soon became apparent in a cessation
-of the terrible pain. Then a low, frightened cry from the bed made him
-look toward Pansy, and he found that she had revived and was staring at
-him with a glance of wonder and fear.
-
-“Oh, what is it? Have I killed you?” she gasped faintly.
-
-“It is nothing--a slight spasm of the heart, brought on by excitement.
-I am better now,” Colonel Falconer replied coldly, and just then the
-door opened and Mrs. Finley came nervously into the room.
-
-“Mamma, this is Colonel Falconer,” Pansy half whispered, adding
-anxiously: “I have told you how good he has been to me, and I have told
-him who and what I am, but briefly. Now I want you to tell him the
-story of my willful girlhood, and the full extent of my sin.”
-
-“Will you listen, sir?” asked the pale, gray-haired little woman
-timidly.
-
-A dark frown came between his eyebrows, but he answered impatiently:
-
-“Yes.”
-
-And so, in the little room where Pansy lay, pale with pain and
-despair, the story of her girlhood was told to the husband she had
-deceived--told kindly and gently by her mother’s lips, yet without
-abating one jot of the truth.
-
-“If she had taken her mother’s advice, sir, she would never have come
-to this pass. I told her that a rich young man like Mr. Wylde wouldn’t
-think of marrying a poor little factory girl, but she didn’t believe my
-warning. She wouldn’t heed me,” sighed poor Mrs. Finley, when she had
-told, in her pitiful little way, the story of Pansy’s willfulness and
-disobedience.
-
-But she, poor thing, looked pleadingly at her pale, silent husband.
-
-“But you see how it was, don’t you?” she cried imploringly. “I loved
-him so, and I fell under his fascinations so that I couldn’t help
-myself; and I thought mother would be so pleased when she found out I
-was his wife she would forgive all the rest. Ah, Heaven! I paid dearly,
-dearly for that disobedience!”
-
-He sat silent, rigid, looking and listening without a word, and Pansy
-sobbed bitterly:
-
-“Did I not say you would never forgive me? But I deserve it. I have
-not one word to say for myself, only this: You will keep my miserable
-secret, for when Norman Wylde charged me with my identity I denied it
-bitterly. Oh, he must never know the truth, and if I recover from my
-wound I will go away from here, Colonel Falconer, and never trouble
-your peace again.”
-
-He smiled a sad, derisive smile at those words, as if in mockery of her
-promise, and then said:
-
-“But I have not yet heard how you came by that wound.”
-
-“My brother Willie swore that he would kill me for the disgrace that
-I had brought on the honest name of Laurens. When I came back home to
-see my sister he tried to carry out his threat. I do not blame him, nor
-must you, for my stepfather had goaded him to madness by his taunts and
-slurs. Poor boy! He is sorry now for his insane deed, and the world
-must never know.”
-
-He smothered some angry words under his dark mustache, for Pansy was
-beginning to speak again in her soft, hopeless little voice:
-
-“While I lay here waiting for Willie to bring you, I made some clever
-little plans. Juliette went with the Wyldes, did she not?”
-
-“Of course.”
-
-“Then you will telegraph her to-morrow that I have changed my mind,
-and will go North to some gay watering place, but that she will remain
-under the chaperonage of Mrs. Wylde. My presence in this house can be
-kept a dead secret until I get well enough to go away--into a convent,
-perhaps--into lasting exile, certainly. Do not grieve, mamma,” as a
-whimper of protest came from the little woman’s grieved heart. “You
-will have your other children, you know.” Then, looking back at her
-husband, went on plaintively: “In the meantime, you will have gone
-away, and by and by you will write back to your friends that poor
-little Pansy is dead and buried. You will come home to Juliette then,
-and--after a while--you will forget.”
-
-The plaintive voice broke, and Colonel Falconer sat still for a few
-moments, lost in deep thought. Suddenly he spoke:
-
-“You are very clever,” he said.
-
-“I thought it all out for your sake. I was so anxious that no disgrace
-should touch you,” she answered humbly.
-
-“Poor little one!” he muttered; then rose and laid his hand solemnly
-on her head. “Dear, you have been bitterly punished for your girlish
-fault,” he said gravely; then, in tones vibrating with tenderness, he
-added: “You are my beloved wife still. I forgive your deception, and I
-will never forsake you.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXIV. IMAGINARY DECEIT.
-
-
-“Rosalind, what do you think of this?” asked Juliette, coming up to her
-friend with an open letter in her hand.
-
-It was the second day after her arrival at the White Sulphur Springs,
-and they were out on the lawn before the grand hotel. All was
-brightness and gayety. Throngs of beautiful women and handsome men lent
-variety to the sylvan scene, and the merry music played by the band
-made one’s step light and one’s heart gay.
-
-“What is it, Juliette?” asked Miss Wylde curiously.
-
-“A letter from my uncle, in which he explains the cause of his wife not
-joining us here.”
-
-“Is she not coming, then?” asked Mrs. Wylde, in a tone of regret.
-
-“No.”
-
-“But why not?”
-
-“She was taken suddenly ill that afternoon, but would not send us
-word, lest we should wait for her and be disappointed in going. She is
-better now, and has taken up an idea that sea air would be of more
-benefit to her than the springs,” replied Juliette, reading from her
-uncle’s letter.
-
-“Oh, I am sorry she will not join us. I had fallen in love with her,”
-exclaimed Mrs. Wylde, and her daughter echoed:
-
-“I had, too, mamma.”
-
-A frown crossed Juliette’s pearl-fair face, and she read on slowly:
-
- “So I will take her away to the sea, and you can remain with Mrs.
- Wylde if she will have the kindness to chaperon you.”
-
-She looked at Mrs. Wylde, and that lady said cordially:
-
-“Your uncle ought to know that I will take great pleasure in doing
-that.”
-
-“Thank you,” cried Juliette; then, crushing the letter in her hand, she
-said spitefully: “I believe Pansy had all that planned before, and did
-not mean from the first to accompany us here.”
-
-Mrs. Wylde and Rosalind looked startled.
-
-“Why should she deceive us?” cried Rosalind.
-
-“Oh, she had some hidden design in it, of course. She is naturally
-deceitful. I never liked her from the first!” Juliette cried
-peevishly, goaded to jealous anger by their declaration that they were
-fond of Pansy.
-
-“Well, you ought to know, of course, having lived in the same house
-with her,” exclaimed Rosalind, in astonishment, adding: “But I never
-should have supposed that dear little thing could be deceitful and
-designing.”
-
-“Nor I, for she always seemed so frank and open,” said her mother.
-“Indeed, I had taken a great fancy to her.”
-
-Every word stung Juliette more deeply, for she hated Pansy with an
-intense hatred. She would have hated her for marrying her uncle if for
-nothing else, but added to this was always her suspicion of Pansy’s
-identity, and this fanned the fire of her rage into fury.
-
-She made an excuse for leaving the Wyldes, that she might give full
-vent, in the privacy of her own room, to the spite that possessed her,
-and then Rosalind observed:
-
-“Mamma, I do not think Juliette quite does justice to Mrs. Falconer.
-She hates her because she married Colonel Falconer and disappointed her
-expectations of getting all her uncle’s money.”
-
-“That is it,” replied Mrs. Wylde. “Mrs. Falconer is without doubt a
-charming woman, and Juliette’s suspicions of her deceitfulness have
-their sole origin in nothing but envy and jealousy.”
-
-While Juliette, alone in her own room, was saying bitterly:
-
-“Oh, yes, they have fallen in love with her, have they? That is because
-she is the rich Mrs. Falconer. They have no admiration to spare for
-Norman’s sweetheart, the poor little tobacco-factory girl, who was
-quite as beautiful, innocent, and charming as my uncle’s proud wife.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXV. GENEROUS DEEDS.
-
-
-When Colonel Falconer, out of the generosity of his great heart,
-forgave his unhappy wife the deception she had practiced upon him, he
-made up his mind that he would take her away from the fatal city of her
-birth, never to return.
-
-They would go abroad, and begin a new life, in which they would be all
-in all to each other; and he would try to forget the dark shadow that
-lay on his wife’s past, and make her happy as she had seemed before
-they came back to Richmond and the tragedy of her buried sin rose to
-overwhelm her again with its ignominy.
-
-He made arrangements for keeping Pansy’s presence in her mother’s
-house a secret from the world. Phebe was told only such facts as were
-strictly necessary, and then installed as the faithful nurse of her
-mistress.
-
-Colonel Falconer himself came in disguise to visit her; and Doctor
-Hewitt, who was the only one outside the house who was in the secret of
-Pansy’s continued existence, never dreamed that the invalid was the
-wife of one of the grandest, noblest men in the city, and mistress of a
-palatial home on Franklin Street. He pitied her very much, and advised
-her one day to remain with her mother and begin a new life.
-
-Pansy wept bitterly, but made no reply, and he went away feeling very
-sad over her probable future, for both she and Alice were so much
-better now that there was no occasion for his further visits. He would
-see the beautiful erring girl no more, and he feared that, with the
-return of health and strength, she would drift back to her old sinful
-life.
-
-In the meantime, Colonel Falconer busied himself generously in trying
-to brighten the lives of Pansy’s relatives.
-
-In the first place, he had to bribe that wretch, Finley, to silence on
-the fact that Pansy Laurens was still living. He accepted gladly enough
-a much smaller sum than he had demanded from Pansy, fearing that if he
-demurred he might not get anything.
-
-Colonel Falconer, with his keen insight into human nature, soon saw
-that Pansy’s mother was unhappy and ill-treated--a mere slave to her
-sullen, brutal husband. He proposed to Pansy to settle a sum of money
-on her mother that should be strictly her own, and the income from
-which would enable her to lead a life of ease, independent of her
-miserly husband.
-
-“How shall I ever repay all your goodness?” Pansy cried, when he told
-her that he had settled twenty-five thousand dollars on her mother, and
-that Alice and Nora were to be sent to Staunton to boarding school. His
-kind intentions toward Willie were all frustrated, for the young man,
-ashamed and remorseful over what he had done, and standing in great awe
-of his aristocratic brother-in-law, had abruptly left home the same
-night on which he had wounded Pansy, and as yet no tidings had been
-received from him.
-
-The time came when Pansy was to leave home and mother for the second
-time, and it was, indeed, a sad parting; yet not as bitter as the
-first, for then Pansy was going alone into exile, but now there was a
-strong arm and a brave heart between her and the world.
-
-“Only love me, my poor little darling,” he had answered, gently and
-gravely, in reply to her expressions of gratitude, and she had promised
-that she would, while, at the same time, she contrasted his noble soul
-with that of Norman Wylde.
-
-“One so noble and high-minded, the other so false and cruel! Oh, Heaven
-help me to tear his image from my weak womanly heart, and enshrine
-there this good and noble husband!” she prayed passionately.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXVI. PLANS FOR THE FUTURE.
-
-
-Two months had passed since Colonel Falconer had taken Pansy away from
-Richmond. They were summering quietly at a little mountain retreat
-in the Adirondacks, but his mail was sent to Cape May, and, by an
-arrangement with the postmaster there, was forwarded to him.
-
-He had done this to conceal the place of his residence from Juliette
-and others, not wishing that any prying eyes should intrude upon their
-seclusion, for Pansy was still weak and delicate, and her nerves had
-been sadly shattered by the trying scenes she had gone through.
-
-They had taken a little cottage in the mountains, and, with Phebe and
-a few servants, were keeping house in a simple, quiet way, waiting
-for the roses to come back to Pansy’s cheeks, that the colonel might
-leave her long enough to return to Virginia and settle up his business,
-preparatory to taking up his future residence in Europe.
-
-“You will not take Juliette with us? She hates me, and every word and
-glance has a sting for me. She suspects my identity, in spite of all my
-denials,” pleaded Pansy.
-
-“She shall not go with us,” he said; then a thoughtful frown came
-between his dark eyebrows. “But what under heaven shall I do with her?”
-he asked.
-
-“Let her stay in the house on Franklin Street with a chaperon,”
-answered Pansy readily.
-
-“That will do very well, I suppose; but I wish she would get married. I
-should feel better satisfied over her then,” said the colonel, and they
-both thought at once of Norman Wylde.
-
-The color rose to her delicate pearl-fair face in a warm tide of
-crimson, and Colonel Falconer grew pale, and smothered an oath between
-his lips.
-
-“Pansy, I feel like I ought to kill that fellow for his villainy to
-you,” he said abruptly.
-
-“Let him alone. Heaven will punish him for my wrongs,” she answered,
-and then, clasping her beautiful hands imploringly, she wailed: “But,
-oh, my poor, deserted little child, my heart aches when I think of him!
-If I only had him with me I could be content.”
-
-“Do not grow impatient, darling. I have promised to try to get the
-child for you, but it must be done very quietly, for no one must
-suspect that we had anything to do with abducting him. He must be
-abducted, you understand that, do you not, Pansy?”
-
-“Yes, for I know well that no amount of bribery would induce Mrs. Meade
-to give him up, and I dare not assert my legal claim to him,” sighed
-poor, unhappy Pansy.
-
-He tried to comfort her, as if she had been a little child, and at last
-she sobbed herself to sleep in his arms, and he held her thus for more
-than an hour, gazing on the sweet, sad little face with eyes full of
-love and pity.
-
-“Poor little darling, how bitterly and undeservedly you have suffered,”
-he thought, adding bitterly: “Curses on the false-hearted villain that
-betrayed her innocent youth! I hope I may never meet him again, for if
-I did I fear I should take vengeance into my own hands.”
-
-The next morning, when the colonel’s valet brought in the mail,
-it consisted of nothing but the New York papers. He had finished
-breakfast, and took them out on the porch to read. Pansy followed
-him, and sat down in her little rocking-chair to enjoy the beautiful
-mountain scenery that lay outspread like a succession of pictures
-before her eyes.
-
-Colonel Falconer selected his favorite paper, lighted his morning
-cigar, and disposed himself comfortably to read.
-
-And none seeing the quiet, homelike picture, the handsome man, and the
-lovely woman, seeming so calmly happy in their domestic life, would
-have dreamed that a heavy storm cloud surcharged with woe was about to
-burst in fury upon their heads.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXVII. THE STORM BREAKS.
-
-
-Colonel Falconer opened his fresh paper, and the first thing that
-caught his eyes were these words, in staring headlines:
-
- A VIRGINIA TRAGEDY,
-
- INVOLVING SOME OF THE F. F. V.’S WITH THE WORKING CLASSES, AND BEING
- THE CLIMAX TO A ROMANCE OF LOVE AND SORROW EQUAL TO ANY EVER EVOLVED
- FROM THE BRAIN OF A NOVELIST.
-
-He uttered an exclamation of interest, and Pansy looked around.
-
-“What is it, dear?” she asked languidly.
-
-“Nothing--that is---- Well, you shall have the paper presently,” he
-answered, and read on:
-
- Something more than three years ago there was a ripple of excitement
- in the fashionable society of Richmond over the fact that an
- engagement of marriage between two prominent people had been
- dissolved, owing to a sudden infatuation on the young man’s part for
- a beautiful, charming young girl, an employee at Arnell & Grey’s
- tobacco factory.
-
- The girl, though of poor parentage, and compelled to labor for
- her own support, was said to be wonderfully lovely, fairly well
- educated, and of so fair a character that it had never been sullied
- by a breath of scandal. But parents on either side proved unkind.
- The young man was forbidden to marry the little beauty, and she on
- her part had stern orders from a widowed mother never to hold any
- communication with her lover.
-
- In a few months afterward, the young man was sent on a mission
- to Europe, and it was supposed that all was at an end with the
- unfortunate love affair. But nine months later there was a scandalous
- story circulated about the young girl, to which a color of truth
- was lent by her suicide by drowning in the James River. At last,
- some of her clothing was found in the river, but her body was never
- recovered. At the same time a beautiful, newborn boy baby was left
- on the steps of the young man’s father, and adopted by the old
- housekeeper.
-
- Two years later the hero of that long-past love affair returned, and
- seeing the adopted child, conceived the idea that it was his own. He
- sought the mother of his dead love in order to ascertain the truth,
- but could not find her, she having married a second time and removed
- to another part of the city. Lately, in desperation, he placed a
- detective on the woman’s track, with the result that she was soon
- found, and a story of sorrow laid bare that maddened the hero of the
- story.
-
- He told the mother that her daughter had been his wife by a secret
- marriage in Washington, and by this declaration was laid bare the
- perfidy of a wicked stepfather and a slighted love, who for revenge
- had bribed the man to lie about the marriage. This man, Finley by
- name, was sent to Washington to verify Pansy Laurens’ declaration
- that she was the wife of Norman Wylde. He was bribed by a fair and
- slighted lady to declare that there had been no marriage, thus
- breaking the heart of the poor girl, who had never received a line
- from her young husband during his absence.
-
- When Norman Wylde learned of this horrible perfidy that had made
- of his beloved young wife a suicide, and of his legitimate child a
- foundling, he went wild with rage against the villain who had made
- these things possible, and struck him with all the fierce strength of
- an outraged arm. He fell heavily, and striking his head against the
- counter in his store was rendered unconscious by concussion of the
- brain.
-
- He is lying now in a state of coma, never having returned to
- consciousness since his fall. Norman Wylde is under heavy bonds
- pending the result of Finley’s injuries, but it is believed that a
- chivalrous Virginia jury will acquit him of blame in the vengeance he
- took against the destroyer of his domestic happiness.
-
-Pansy turned her head at hearing a strange, choking sound, and saw her
-husband with his head fallen backward, and his face convulsed with
-pain, as it had been on the night when she made her confession to him.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXVIII. VISIONS OF HAPPINESS.
-
-
-When Pansy saw the condition of her husband she uttered a scream of
-terror that brought Colonel Falconer’s valet and her maid rushing to
-the scene from the back of the cottage, where they had been flirting
-with each other in default of something better to do.
-
-Charles, the valet, immediately ran into the house for his master’s
-drops, while Pansy lifted her husband’s head and pillowed it against
-her breast. Phebe could do nothing but wring her hands and utter
-excited ohs and ahs.
-
-“You had better leave him to me, ma’am,” said Charles, with a composure
-that betrayed his familiarity with these painful attacks. He took
-her place with polite insistence, and then Pansy remembered that her
-husband had seemed a little excited over something in the paper he was
-reading.
-
-She took the paper up from the floor, where it had fallen, and, in a
-very few moments, had found out the cause of Colonel Falconer’s sudden
-seizure.
-
-Forgetful of everything but herself in the wild rush of joy that
-overwhelmed her soul, she rushed upstairs to her room, and, throwing
-herself into a chair, read and reread the precious paper, while her
-love for Norman Wylde, so long repressed and denied, thrilled her whole
-being again with inexpressible rapture.
-
-“Oh, my love, my love! You were true to me--you loved me, you mourned
-for me, for I was, indeed, your wife! The dark stain of disgrace is
-effaced from me, and the whole world may know now that Pansy Laurens
-was an honored wife, and that her child had a right to its father’s
-name. Oh, my little Pet, my precious child, would that I could fly
-this moment and take you by the hand and lead you to your beloved
-father, telling him how much I love you both!” she sobbed passionately,
-forgetting for the moment the man downstairs, whose heart was so bound
-up in her.
-
-It was not natural that she should remember him at that moment, for the
-shock of joy had been so great as to blot out everything else for the
-time being. Joy in Norman’s constancy and love, and horror at the sin
-of Mr. Finley and Juliette Ives, filled her whole mind.
-
-She forgot Colonel Falconer and his illness, forgot that she was
-another man’s wife, forgot everything but her love for Norman Wylde,
-the young husband from whom she had been sundered by such a cruel fate.
-
-“Oh, my love, my darling, would that you were here now,” she kept
-murmuring over and over, forgetful of the lapse of time, until she was
-startled from her blissful reverie by a low tap upon the door.
-
-“Come in!” she exclaimed, and the door unclosed, admitting Colonel
-Falconer, who was ghastly pale, and staggered unsteadily across the
-threshold.
-
-“Oh!” cried Pansy, in a heart-piercing tone, for everything rushed over
-her at once at the sight of his haggard, pain-drawn face.
-
-“Poor child! You were so happy that you had forgotten me,” he said
-gently.
-
-“Forgive me!” she sighed remorsefully, and then suddenly the pretty
-dark head fell back against her chair, and she became unconscious.
-
-Colonel Falconer made no effort to revive her. He stood by her side,
-gazing with gloomy eyes at the white, unconscious face, and at length
-he muttered:
-
-“Poor little one! I wish that you would die now, just as you are; then
-I should never have the pain of resigning you to one who has a better
-right to you than I have, and in whose love you will utterly forget him
-who has had no thought but of you since first he saw your beautiful
-face.”
-
-But he did not have his wish granted, for presently Pansy revived of
-herself, and looked up dreamily into his face.
-
-“I--I--fainted, did I not?” she murmured slowly. Then, remembering his
-illness, she asked: “Are you better?”
-
-“Yes,” he answered, but his face was ghastly as he said it. Making a
-brave effort for calmness, he added: “You stayed away so long, Pansy,
-that I grew uneasy, and came to seek you.”
-
-“While I selfishly forgot you in my absorption. Oh, forgive me! forgive
-me!” she cried remorsefully.
-
-“There is nothing to forgive. Your news was startling enough to excuse
-you for everything,” he replied patiently. Drawing a chair near her,
-he continued wistfully: “It must have been a great shock of joy to you,
-Pansy, to find that Norman Wylde was your true husband, instead of the
-false-hearted wretch we deemed him.”
-
-“Yes,” she murmured faintly.
-
-“And you will wish to be restored to him at once, dear?” he continued,
-masking with a brave effort the pain he felt in speaking those words.
-
-She started wildly.
-
-“But--I--belong--to--you!” she faltered.
-
-“No, dear. The ceremony that bound you to me is void in law, since you
-had a husband living when I married you. You are free of any claim of
-mine. Shall you go at once to him, or will you write for him to come
-for you?”
-
-She read his keen anxiety in his ghastly face, and it came to her
-suddenly that her happiness would prove a deathblow to this good man,
-who was so devoted to her that it seemed impossible for his enfeebled
-heart to bear the shock of her loss.
-
-Looking up at him with troubled eyes, she said:
-
-“Leave me here alone till morning, that I may decide what is best for
-me to do.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXIX. REACHING A DECISION.
-
-
-Colonel Falconer would never forget as long as he lived, nor would
-Pansy, the awful suspense of that night. He spent it among the
-mountains, walking hard all night, in order to overcome his misery by
-sheer physical weakness. She spent it on her knees by her bedside,
-praying.
-
-It seemed to her that it would be wrong to desert Colonel Falconer and
-go back to her dear love, her faithful husband, even though she really
-belonged to him, for it would surely break Colonel Falconer’s heart.
-
-“And how could I be happy even with my beloved Norman and our darling
-child, if I knew that I had caused the death of one who loved me so
-well, and who had died for my sake?” the generous young wife kept
-saying over and over to herself, and resolutely shutting out of her
-heart all thoughts of the happiness she could have if she returned to
-Norman.
-
-Passionately as she loved Norman, her young heart had become so inured
-to sorrow, that she was capable of making a great sacrifice for
-another’s sake, and at last she decided that for Colonel Falconer’s
-sake she would bear the burden of a secret sorrow till the day of her
-death.
-
-“Norman believes me dead long ago, and he need never be undeceived,”
-she thought. “Then, too, he will have our sweet little boy to comfort
-him, while I will pray for them both every night, and feel that I
-have done right to sacrifice my one chance of earthly happiness for
-another’s sake.”
-
-Her resolve did not falter, although it had cost her so much to make
-it, and in the morning, when she went down to breakfast, she was pale
-as a lily, and the blue circles under her downcast eyes hinted at
-bitter tears shed in the lonely vigils of the night.
-
-Colonel Falconer had come in an hour before from his wild mountain
-tramp, and appeared at breakfast freshly dressed, but wretchedly pale
-and weary-looking, with a despairing look in his eyes that it was
-impossible to hide.
-
-The unhappy pair made a slight pretense at eating, then went out on the
-porch together, and Pansy said quietly:
-
-“Let us walk up the mountain road a little way, that no one may
-overhear what I wish to say to you.”
-
-They walked away out of earshot of Charles and Phebe, who had no idea
-that anything was wrong between their master and mistress, and then
-Colonel Falconer asked sadly:
-
-“Have you made up your mind, dear?”
-
-“Yes; I shall stay with you.”
-
-He stared at her, speechless with wonder, until the warm color rose to
-her face; then he exclaimed:
-
-“My dear Pansy, how could you do that? I explained to you, did I not,
-that our marriage was not legal?”
-
-Placing her trembling little hand on his arm, she whispered:
-
-“I understand all that. What I meant was that--you--should--help me--to
-secure a divorce--from Norman Wylde--that I might quietly remarry you.
-It could be done, could it not?”
-
-His face shone with happiness and love as he replied:
-
-“It would be easy enough, I think; but, Pansy, darling, it would not
-be right for me to permit this sacrifice on your part.”
-
-“I will not permit you to call it a sacrifice. I love you, and I prefer
-to cast my lot with yours,” she answered truly.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XL. A GREAT SACRIFICE.
-
-
-“Heaven help me, for I am scarcely brave enough to refuse this noble
-sacrifice of yours, Pansy,” groaned Colonel Falconer. “Oh, my little
-love, are you quite sure you will never regret this--never wish for
-Norman Wylde and your lost happiness?”
-
-Clasping her slender white hands tenderly around his arm, and lifting
-her sad white face, with all a woman’s tenderness shining out of her
-soulful eyes, she replied earnestly:
-
-“The happiness you speak of could not be mine, for if I left you for
-Norman the thought of you would always sadden me so that I should
-suffer from remorse and anxiety. I love you, though not with the wild
-passion I felt for my first love. But this deep, steady affection, born
-of admiration for your manliness and your many virtues, is so strong
-that it would divide the allegiance I should owe to Norman. You would
-be ever in my thoughts, for you need me so much, and would miss me so
-much, while he has long believed me dead and could bear the shock of
-losing me better. Therefore, if you will help me about the divorce, I
-will be your wife again as soon as possible.”
-
-“I will send the most clever lawyer in New York to you, Pansy, and you
-can commit your case to him. Bless you for your noble decision! I did
-not dare hope for such a sacrifice on your part, but I love you so well
-that I have not courage to refuse it.”
-
-She bowed her head in silence, and he continued:
-
-“Of course you understand, darling, that I must leave you to-day and
-remain away from you until the divorce is procured. Do you wish to
-remain here quietly with Phebe, Charles, and the other servants, or
-have you any other plans?”
-
-She was silent a few moments, then she answered:
-
-“I will remain here.”
-
-He left the mountains for New York City that day, and on the next
-she was visited by an eminent lawyer, who took her case in hand, and
-assured her that he believed there would be no difficulty in securing a
-divorce.
-
-When he had gone she fell sobbing on the floor of her chamber, crying
-out:
-
-“Oh, my lost love, my lost love!”
-
-Colonel Falconer wrote her in a few days, saying that he would go to
-White Sulphur Springs, to try to make some arrangements for the future
-of Juliette Ives.
-
-“I shall never care for her in the same fashion as I did before I
-learned her treachery to you and Norman Wylde,” he wrote. “But she has
-no living relative but me, and she is dependent on me for support, and,
-for her mother’s sake, I will not shirk the responsibility.”
-
-He found his pretty niece cool, impudent, defiant. She utterly denied
-her complicity in Mr. Finley’s crime.
-
-“I did not even know the man. Never saw him in my life!” she affirmed.
-
-He was staggered by her effrontery and scarcely knew what to say, and
-she went on eagerly:
-
-“Dear uncle, please tell me the truth: You have found out at last that
-your wife is really Pansy Laurens, have you not?”
-
-“Nonsense!” he answered sharply; and she opened wide her pale-blue
-eyes, exclaiming:
-
-“Is it possible she can still deny it, after finding out that she was
-really Norman’s wife? Ah, I see it all now! She will stay with you
-because you are rich and her legal husband is poor.”
-
-Colonel Falconer’s eyes flashed wrathfully.
-
-“Beware, Juliette, how you try me too far! Remember that you are
-helpless and penniless, except for my bounty!”
-
-“And because I will not cringe and fawn upon the lowbred creature
-you have made your wife, although, unfortunately, the tie is not a
-legal one, you threaten to deprive me of the pittance sufficient for
-my support! Very well, I can go and work in Arnell & Grey’s tobacco
-factory. You will not consider it a disgrace for your niece to work
-there, as the woman you call your wife was an employee there for
-many years!” she burst out spitefully, her virago temper all aflame,
-and goading her to such rebellion that she actually shook her little
-jeweled fist in his face.
-
-She knew his good heart and generous nature so well that she believed
-she could defy him with impunity. He would not dare cast her helpless
-on the world, no matter what she did to him or the wife he idolized.
-
-But her insults to Pansy had struck a fire of rage in his nature, and,
-while his face whitened with pain and his eyes gleamed with anger, he
-turned on her, and said sternly:
-
-“Since you are so willing to earn your own support, I wash my hands
-of a most unwelcome burden! Go into a tobacco factory as soon as you
-please, and I hope you may be industrious enough to retain a position
-there as long as Pansy Laurens did!”
-
-With those words, the offended gentleman stalked out of the presence
-of Juliette, who comprehended instantly that she had gone too far in
-her spiteful defiance, and that she must either humiliate herself by
-apologizing or go to work, as she had threatened, to earn her own
-living.
-
-It did not take her a minute to decide which of these alternatives to
-choose, and as soon as the door banged to behind the irate colonel she
-jerked it open and flew swiftly down the corridor, arresting his quick
-footsteps by clasping both hands around his arm.
-
-“Oh, uncle, dear uncle, come back and forgive me! I am sorry I wounded
-your feelings. I did not mean it; but every one had deserted me, and I
-felt so miserable!” she panted eagerly, as she clung to his arm.
-
-He stopped short and looked suspiciously into her false face.
-
-“Where is Mrs. Wylde?” he asked.
-
-“Come back, and I will tell you. We might be overheard here,” she
-replied, looking uneasily down the length of the broad hotel corridor,
-and very unwillingly he accompanied her back to her room. Then she said:
-
-“Mrs. Wylde and Rosalind have gone back to Richmond, and I am here
-alone with my maid.”
-
-“She promised to chaperon you,” he said, frowning.
-
-“I know,” whimpered Juliette; “but we quarreled dreadfully. They--they
-actually believed that man Finley’s falsehood about me, although I
-denied it bitterly. The truth is that they are the ones in fault,
-for they sent Norman off to London on a false scent, just to break
-up his love affair; but now they have the meanness to say that they
-would never have sent him if they had known he was actually married
-to the girl,” panted Juliette angrily, adding: “So we had a bitter
-quarrel when they refused to believe my story. And Mrs. Wylde said she
-hoped you would take me from under her care soon, as she was tired of
-chaperoning a girl who had brought such trouble on her poor son. I told
-her I would never speak to her again, so then she and Rosalind packed
-up and went back, as Judge Wylde had telegraphed for them. She sent me
-a note, asking if I cared to go back with them, and I declined. But
-they set every one against me. I am so stared at and snubbed by people
-since Finley’s lies against me were published that I cannot bear to go
-outside my room,” concluded Juliette, going into hysterical sobs.
-
-“This is very bad. I do not know what I shall ever do with you,
-Juliette,” sighed the colonel, in dismay.
-
-“I shall go back to you, of course,” she sobbed.
-
-“No; that plan will not answer any longer. I can never have you again
-as a member of my family,” he replied firmly.
-
-She could scarcely resist the impulse to cry out against him with the
-sharpest reproaches, but wisely restrained herself, and presently he
-said:
-
-“I will remain with you here for a week, Juliette, and in that time I
-will decide regarding your future.”
-
-That same day he wrote to Pansy and explained the situation to her,
-asking for her advice in the matter.
-
-When Pansy heard of the sad plight of the girl whose wickedness had
-wrought her so much woe she rejoiced at first, thinking that Juliette
-had met her just reward for her sin.
-
-Then kinder, more pitiful thoughts intervened, and at length she wrote
-to Colonel Falconer:
-
- Send Juliette here to me, and I will stand her friend if she will
- treat me with proper respect.
-
-He read those words to Juliette, who curled her lip, but did not
-refuse, for the contempt of all her old associates in her little social
-world had so cowed her that she was only too happy to accept Pansy’s
-offer.
-
-When they met again, Pansy said determinedly:
-
-“Miss Ives, there shall be no further concealments between us. I am
-Pansy Laurens, as you thought, but I am going to procure an immediate
-divorce from Norman Wylde, that I may be remarried to your uncle,
-Colonel Falconer. Wait!” as Juliette was about to make an excited
-remonstrance. “It will be against your own interest to betray me, for
-your uncle’s will is made in my favor now, and if you go against me I
-will use my strong influence to have you sent adrift penniless.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XLI. A FALSE WITNESS.
-
-
-Juliette Ives was walking along the mountain road just a few rods from
-the cottage, kicking up the dead leaves from the ground at every step,
-and frowning discontentedly.
-
-“It is almost two months since I came to this place, and it is as
-dreary as a prison. I hope we shall certainly get away this week, or
-I shall die of ennui,” she was muttering angrily to herself, when
-suddenly she came face to face with a man who was hurrying in the
-direction of the cottage--Norman Wylde.
-
-It was the first time he had seen Juliette since Finley’s sullen
-confession had convicted her of such a treacherous deed, and Norman’s
-brow grew dark at sight of the fair blond face, with its light-blue
-eyes, and pale golden tresses flying loosely in the wind under a
-picturesque little scarlet cap, for Juliette was always vain and
-coquettish, and even here in this secluded retreat, where she expected
-to see no one, paid particular attention to her personal appearance.
-But her charms were all unheeded by Norman Wylde, who lifted his hat
-with grave courtesy, and was about to pass by when she arrested him
-with a pleading cry:
-
-“Norman--Mr. Wylde!”
-
-He paused, but with an impatient gesture, and, coming close up to him,
-she said eagerly:
-
-“I cannot let pass this opportunity of clearing myself from the foul
-imputation cast upon me by that wicked wretch, Finley. Oh, Norman, I
-swear to you that I had nothing to do with his sin! I did not even know
-the man.”
-
-She never forgot how handsome and how scornful her lost lover looked as
-he fixed his splendid, piercing black eyes on her false face. Regarding
-her with supreme contempt, he answered:
-
-“Unfortunately for your denial, Miss Ives, Finley had written proofs in
-his possession that proved your guilt clearly.”
-
-“I deny it in spite of all his proofs,” she cried desperately, but,
-smiling scornfully still, he answered:
-
-“As you please, Miss Ives; but permit me to pass. I am anxious to meet
-my wife!”
-
-“You have no wife!” she exclaimed, with such spiteful yet earnest
-emphasis that he paused again, and said:
-
-“Deny it as you will; but I have proved to the world’s satisfaction
-that Pansy Laurens is my wife, and a week ago, when Mr. Finley
-recovered from the long stupor and loss of memory that followed upon
-his fall, he told me my wife still lived, in the person of Mrs.
-Falconer. I wondered why she had not come at once to me on learning
-that she was truly my wife. But, guessing that it was owing to
-her sensitive, retiring nature, I set myself to work to learn her
-whereabouts. I learned that she had separated from Colonel Falconer,
-and was living here in strict retirement. I hurried here at once.”
-
-“In spite of all that, I repeat my assertion: You have no wife!”
-answered Juliette, with savage emphasis and barbarous delight in the
-torture she was inflicting on his heart.
-
-“My Heaven!” he cried, shuddering. “You do not mean to tell me that
-Pansy is dead!”
-
-“No; it is worse than that.” She paused a moment, watching him keenly,
-the better to enjoy her triumph, then added: “She has procured a
-divorce from you.”
-
-Then she shrank in spite of herself, for the rage and despair on that
-darkly handsome face frightened her, defiant as she was, and his voice
-seemed to breathe menace as he shouted hoarsely:
-
-“It is false! False as your treacherous heart, Juliette Ives!” And,
-with the words, he rushed madly from her toward the cottage, wild to
-know the truth from Pansy’s own beautiful lips.
-
-Juliette followed slowly after, with a white face of wrath and envy,
-for she well knew that, though Pansy was lost to Norman forever, he
-would never love another.
-
-Phebe went up to her mistress with a message from Mr. Wylde, and, after
-a long interval, returned with a brief, ambiguous note:
-
- I refuse to see you. I received my decree of divorce this morning,
- and to-morrow I shall be married to Colonel Falconer. Forgive me,
- Norman, for I have acted for the best as far as I could see my duty.
- Let our child comfort you. Love him, and make up to him for his
- mother’s loss. I go abroad in a few days, never to return. Forget me
- if you can, and if not, remember me with pity. Farewell forever, and
- may Heaven bless you!
-
- PANSY.
-
-Crushing the perfumed sheet in his hand, he staggered across the
-doorway with a face like a corpse. A white hand fluttered down on his
-coat sleeve, and tender blue eyes gazed into his agonized face.
-
-“You see now!” said Juliette triumphantly. “She was like the majority
-of women. She cared more for Colonel Falconer’s money than for her
-husband’s love! Oh, Norman,” her voice sank into a low, pleading
-cadence, “will you not forget her now and make up our wretched quarrel?
-Remember, we loved each other before you ever saw her face!”
-
-“I never loved you--never! And for the misery your sin has brought me
-I curse you!” he answered. “I have lost her, but it was through your
-treachery at the beginning that she was forced into a position where
-her noble nature made her sacrifice herself and me to a mistaken sense
-of duty. Ah, I understand her generous soul! Do not prate to me of
-gold. She cared nothing for that, but, in her pity for him, she has
-broken both her heart and mine.” And, throwing off her touch as though
-it were a serpent’s coil, he rushed away.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XLII. REMARRIED.
-
-
-In a short time the words were spoken that made Pansy Laurens for
-a second time a wife, and, though it was like a deathblow to her
-happiness, she bore herself with proud calmness that the good man
-by her side should have no cause to suspect that she had sacrificed
-herself for his sake.
-
-In a few days more they went abroad, taking Juliette with them, as also
-the valet and the two maids. Several months were spent in Italy, then
-when winter was past they traveled for several months. When autumn came
-round again Colonel Falconer began to think of purchasing a home and
-settling down in the land of his adoption.
-
-Juliette was behaving herself quite well; that is to say, she was
-treating her uncle’s wife with a show of respect, though hating her as
-bitterly as ever in her secret heart.
-
-At times she complained to her uncle that she did not wish to remain
-always abroad, but he had only to remind her of the snubbing she had
-received from her friends at home to reduce her to instant silence and
-submission.
-
-At such times she would recall the Wyldes with bitter chagrin, and she
-made up her mind that she would marry a title if she could possibly
-compass it, and then go to Virginia to spend her honeymoon, in order
-to mortify those of her old friends who had dared to disapprove of her
-because of the revenge she had taken on her rival, the poor working
-girl, Pansy Laurens.
-
-She was anxious to get away from the guardianship of her uncle and his
-wife. To live always with the rival who had triumphed over her, and to
-have those triumphs renewed daily--for Pansy had been a decided success
-wherever she had appeared in society, and the society journals always
-mentioned them as “Colonel Falconer’s beautiful bride, and his pretty
-niece, Miss Ives”--was too bitter to her pride.
-
-“I am tired of it all! I have eaten humble pie till I loathe the
-taste,” Juliette muttered discontentedly; and when at last old Sir John
-Crowley, who was as yellow as a pumpkin, having spent the best years of
-his life in India before succeeding to a baronetcy, proposed marriage
-to her, she accepted him joyfully.
-
-“Oh, Juliette, that old man! Why, he is past sixty, and yellow and ugly
-and cross!” Pansy cried, in dismay; but Juliette tossed her head, and
-answered:
-
-“You married an old man for his money, and I’m going to marry one for a
-title and money, too, that’s all!”
-
-“But I have heard that he isn’t rich--that the title is almost a barren
-honor. He has nothing but a small estate in Cornwall. You will have to
-nurse him half your time, as he is in poor health.”
-
-“I don’t care, and I wish you would mind your own business! Uncle has
-promised me a marriage portion, anyhow, and that shall be strictly
-settled on myself. Sir John is so much in love with me that he’ll agree
-to anything,” Juliette retorted. But events proved differently. Sir
-John would not agree to the proposition, and so Juliette, in a huff,
-declared the match off, vowing that the baronet was a wretched old
-fortune hunter.
-
-Following hard upon the breaking of this engagement, which occurred in
-the second winter after Pansy’s remarriage to Colonel Falconer, came a
-very sad event.
-
-A beautiful villa at Florence had been purchased, and the small
-family had settled down there for the winter. It was a very pleasant
-neighborhood, and one evening they were entertaining a small party of
-friends, when the colonel suddenly complained of severe pains, and a
-physician was at once summoned to his side. But medical skill proved
-vain, for within an hour he died, as Juliette’s mother had died, of
-heart failure.
-
-He comprehended that the end was near, for, between the paroxysms of
-pain, he whispered to Pansy:
-
-“You have made this past year very happy, my darling. I have never had
-cause to believe that you cherished a single regret.”
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XLIII. A LOVELY WIDOW.
-
-
-“I suppose you will go home now and marry Norman Wylde!” cried Juliette
-spitefully.
-
-It was almost immediately after the funeral, and the sad young widow
-turned a shocked face upon the heartless speaker.
-
-“Juliette, how can you be so cruel? Do you think I do not grieve for my
-noble husband?” she exclaimed.
-
-“Norman Wylde could comfort you very easily in your grief,” was the
-unfeeling reply that sent Pansy from the room in bitter tears.
-
-Juliette was the trial of Pansy’s daily life. She had tried all in vain
-to overcome the girl’s jealous dislike of her, but it seemed a hopeless
-task, and she longed for the time to come when she would marry and
-leave her in peace.
-
-“I believe she would murder me if she thought she could do so without
-being discovered,” she thought sometimes fearfully.
-
-She did not dream that her patient endurance of her dreadful incubus
-and her never-failing goodness had all along been having their effect
-on Juliette, although she struggled bitterly against that saving
-influence.
-
-Just now she felt more bitter than usual, for, in addition to the fact
-that she believed that Pansy and Norman would be reunited in a few
-weeks, she had found out that her uncle’s will was made solely in his
-wife’s favor, with the exception of a legacy to his niece, the amount
-of which was to be decided by Pansy.
-
-The next time Juliette saw Pansy she began to tease her about the will.
-
-“It was a shame for uncle to treat me so shabbily. He might have known
-you would put me off with just a few hundreds!” she cried spitefully.
-
-Pansy sighed at Juliette’s unrelenting hate, and answered patiently:
-
-“Colonel Falconer understood me better than you do, Juliette, or he
-would never have trusted your future to me. When his affairs are
-settled there will not be more than a hundred thousand dollars left, as
-he made several investments lately that resulted disastrously. But of
-that hundred thousand I shall give you fifty thousand.”
-
-“You do not mean it!” Juliette cried incredulously.
-
-“Yes,” Pansy answered; and for a minute there was a silence, which the
-young widow broke in a tremulous, pleading voice.
-
-“Perhaps,” she said, “when this money is settled on you, Juliette,
-it will please you best to leave me, and make a home for yourself
-elsewhere?”
-
-“You want me to go away--you are tired of me!” Juliette cried, in a
-high, resentful key; and then Pansy lifted her head and looked at her
-with those sad pansy-blue eyes, in which tears of grief were standing
-thickly.
-
-“Oh, Juliette,” she sobbed, “I--I--only want peace, and you make my
-life so dreary and unhappy with your unrelenting hate!”
-
-Juliette did not answer. She gave a choking gasp and rushed from the
-room.
-
-Pansy saw her no more for several hours; then she entered her boudoir
-with a pale face and very red eyes, and said humbly:
-
-“Pansy, please do not ask me to leave you! I love you--yes, love you,
-in spite of all my wickedness. Your goodness and sweetness have been
-growing on me for years, although I tried to steel myself to their
-noble influence, and your words just now opened my eyes and showed me
-my heart. I repent all my wickedness toward you, and beg you to forgive
-me for my share in your unhappiness. Henceforth I will love you as
-dearly as my uncle loved you, and I will do all that I can to atone for
-my heartless behavior in the past.”
-
-“Oh, Juliette!” Pansy cried gladly. For it was an exquisite
-satisfaction to her to feel that she had conquered Juliette’s hate at
-last by her gentleness and patience.
-
-She accepted Juliette’s repentance by a gentle kiss on her white brow.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XLIV. A MOTHER’S YEARNING.
-
-
-Pansy wrote to her mother of Colonel Falconer’s death, and in return
-received some unexpected news.
-
-Mr. Finley, after he recovered from the long spell that had followed
-upon his fall and the injury to his head, had become more brutal and
-morose than ever, and made life with him very hard to bear. Finally
-he announced his intention of selling out all his property and going
-to California to invest the proceeds in real estate. He told his
-long-suffering wife that he was tired of her, and did not propose to
-take her with him. She acquiesced very thankfully in this decision, and
-the brute had gone away several months before, and no more had been
-heard of him, much to her joy and relief, for she had long ago repented
-her unfortunate second marriage.
-
-Soon after Finley left, Willie had returned, and, to her surprise, he
-had been hard at work in New York, and brought back his savings. He
-was bitterly repentant for his wicked deed, and would write to his
-sister and tell her how much he had suffered from remorse. Mrs. Finley
-added that she was going to help her son set up business for himself,
-that he might marry little Kate North, to whom he was now engaged, with
-the free consent of her parents.
-
-“Poor brother Willie! I am glad he is going to be so happy,” thought
-Pansy, without a shadow of anger against the hot-headed boy; and then
-she read on, and found that Alice and Nora were still at school in
-Staunton. They were learning fast, and sent much love to their sister,
-and grieved for the good brother-in-law who had been so generous to
-them all.
-
-“But why does she not say something about my boy, my little Pet, who,
-perhaps, has some other name, now that Norman knows he is his son?”
-thought Pansy impatiently; but on turning the next page she read these
-words:
-
- Judge Wylde died last week, and they say he left a pretty penny to
- his family, though I don’t think Norman needs it much, he’s getting
- rich so fast with his law business. He works so hard, they say,
- that he has no time for any one but his child. He has given it the
- name of Charley for your poor, dead father, which I think was quite
- nice of him. I see the little fellow often, as the Wyldes are quite
- friendly with me; also that good Mrs. Meade, who says she was quite
- certain from the first that things would turn out as they have. I
- haven’t seen Norman since your husband died. I don’t know how he
- takes it, but I hope you and he will make it up some time, as it
- can’t do Colonel Falconer--poor, dear saint--any good for you to stay
- always a widow. But forgive me, dear daughter, for I know your sorrow
- is too deep for me to hint at such things yet.
-
-Pansy sat silent for a long time, brooding over those words, and her
-breast heaved with many hopeless sighs.
-
-“No one need ever think of that,” she thought mournfully. “Norman will
-never forgive me for what I did. He will think always that it was for
-Colonel Falconer’s money, not for pity’s sake.”
-
-And at thought of her little child, her beautiful Charley, out of whose
-love she had been tricked and cheated by her wicked stepfather, Pansy
-wept most bitterly and longingly.
-
-“Whether he ever forgives me or not, I must see my child sometimes,”
-she thought; but she determined that she would spend her year of
-mourning at the villa. Life was not so unhappy since Juliette had
-repented her wickedness and fallen in love with her uncle’s wife. They
-had become fast friends, and Juliette now prayed earnestly that the
-time would come when Pansy would again be Norman’s wife.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XLV. SUPREME JOY.
-
-
-A year went slowly past, and found Pansy and Juliette still at the
-villa; but it was not likely that the latter would be there much
-longer, for she had lately made the acquaintance of a handsome young
-man, a rich New Yorker, who had wintered in Italy, and who had been so
-very much smitten with the charms of Miss Ives that he had proposed
-marriage on very short acquaintance, and had been accepted, for he was
-the first man who had ever touched her heart since she had lost Norman
-Wylde.
-
-In truth, Juliette was very much altered for the better. She had
-taken gentle Pansy for her model, and was fast becoming a changed and
-improved woman. Not content with owning her fault to Pansy, she had
-written to the Wyldes, mother and son, and confessed her folly and her
-repentance, declaring that she now loved Pansy as fondly as she had
-once hated her, and that her dearest wish now was for the happiness of
-the two she had injured so much.
-
-When Arthur Osborne first declared his love to Juliette she had a hard
-struggle with her pride, but before she gave him her answer she told
-him the whole story of her folly and sin and repentance.
-
-“If you had known this you would not have asked me to be your wife,”
-she said sadly.
-
-But she was mistaken, for he reiterated his offer, declaring that he
-admired her frankness and believed in her repentance.
-
-“I will help you to forget your bitter past,” he said; then Juliette
-gave him a blushing yes.
-
-The betrothal was a month old when, one day, as Pansy sat alone in the
-drawing-room of her beautiful home, some visitors were announced, and
-Mrs. Wylde, with her daughter and a beautiful little boy, entered the
-room.
-
-Pansy sprang up with a little startled cry, and was immediately half
-smothered in kisses and embraces from all three.
-
-“Forgive me for my share in your past unhappiness. I had never seen
-you, and believed you to be a coarse, ignorant girl, unsuited to my son
-in every way,” murmured Mrs. Wylde regretfully.
-
-“Let us forget the past,” answered the noble girl she had injured, as
-she drew her child to her breast, wondering, yet not daring to ask,
-about his father.
-
-Juliette came in presently, and they met her with the cordiality of old
-friends. Then she looked at Pansy.
-
-“Norman is here, too,” she said smilingly, “but I think he was doubtful
-of a welcome, and he stopped in the summerhouse. Will you meet him
-halfway, Pansy?”
-
-The blush that rose to her face betrayed her heart without words, and
-Mrs. Wylde said tenderly:
-
-“Go, dear; we will excuse you.”
-
-Juliette took her trembling hand and led her to the door. Then she
-kissed her fondly.
-
-“Bless you both, dear!” she said earnestly, and went back to the guests.
-
-But little Charley, now almost five years old, followed his newfound
-mother.
-
-Norman was waiting in the flower-wreathed summerhouse, and at one
-glance into each other’s eyes the two read each other’s heart.
-
-“You will not send me away again, my darling!” he murmured, as he
-clasped her to his heart in passionate love.
-
-A few weeks sufficed for their second courtship. They were married on
-the same day with Arthur Osborne and Juliette Ives. Both the brides
-looked wonderfully beautiful, and both the bridegrooms handsome and
-happy.
-
-In the spring they all went back to America. Juliette’s home was to be
-in New York, but not the least of Pansy’s pleasures was the fact that
-she would spend the rest of her life among the dear friends and old
-familiar scenes of her beloved Richmond.
-
-THE END.
-
-No. 1165 of the NEW EAGLE SERIES, entitled “His Unbounded Faith,”
-by Charlotte M. Stanley, is a fascinating story. The reader will
-sympathize with the heroine in the storms of hate and jealousy that
-rage around her, but they will breathe a sigh of relief when she finds
-a secure haven in her husband’s love and faith.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Love Stories
-
-There is a great deal of difference between love stories and sex
-stories. There is something about _love_ which commands respect and
-reverence.
-
-There is nothing about the sex story which commands either. Most
-decent-minded people are disgusted with the sort of literature that
-some publishers are putting out in the guise of truth.
-
-If you want to know what a really decent, clean, wholesome love story
-is, ask your dealer to sell you a copy of the _Bertha Clay Library_, or
-the _Eagle Library_.
-
-In these two series, you will find everything that is necessary in
-fiction to hold your interest, and a great deal that is preferable to
-the sort of stuff which is being put out under camouflage by certain
-publishers who are not very careful either about the way they make
-money or what they publish.
-
- STREET & SMITH CORPORATION
- 79 Seventh Avenue New York City
-
- * * * * *
-
- _Adventure Stories_
- _Detective Stories_
- _Western Stories_
- _Love Stories_
- _Sea Stories_
-
-All classes of fiction are to be found among the Street & Smith novels.
-Our line contains reading matter for every one, irrespective of age or
-preference.
-
-The person who has only a moderate sum to spend on reading matter will
-find this line a veritable gold mine.
-
- STREET & SMITH CORPORATION,
- 79 Seventh Avenue,
- New York, N. Y.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Transcriber’s Notes:
-
-Punctuation has been made consistent.
-
-Variations in spelling and hyphenation were retained as they appear in
-the original publication, except that obvious typographical errors have
-been corrected.
-
-The following change was made:
-
-p. 118: illegible words at the end of the page were assumed to be “so
-that I” (long drive to-day so that I)
-
-*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK LOVE CONQUERS PRIDE ***
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the
-United States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away--you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you will have to check the laws of the country where
- you are located before using this eBook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that:
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation's website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without
-widespread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
diff --git a/old/67869-0.zip b/old/67869-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 435d415..0000000
--- a/old/67869-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67869-h.zip b/old/67869-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 6b2349e..0000000
--- a/old/67869-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67869-h/67869-h.htm b/old/67869-h/67869-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index 6626af7..0000000
--- a/old/67869-h/67869-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,9305 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
- "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
- <head>
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=utf-8" />
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Style-Type" content="text/css" />
- <title>
- Love Conquers Pride, by Mrs. Alex. McVeigh Miller&mdash;A Project Gutenberg eBook
- </title>
- <style type="text/css">
-
-body {
- margin-left: 10%;
- margin-right: 10%;
-}
-
- h1,h2 {
- text-align: center; /* all headings centered */
- clear: both;
-}
-
-p {
- margin-top: .51em;
- text-align: justify;
- margin-bottom: .49em;
-}
-
-.pminus1 {margin-top: -0.25em;}
-.p1 {margin-top: 1em;}
-.p2 {margin-top: 2em;}
-.s1 {margin-bottom:-0.25em;}
-
-hr {
- width: 33%;
- margin-top: 2em;
- margin-bottom: 2em;
- margin-left: 33.5%;
- margin-right: 33.5%;
- clear: both;
-}
-
-hr.tb {width: 45%; margin-left: 27.5%; margin-right: 27.5%;}
-hr.chap {width: 65%; margin-left: 17.5%; margin-right: 17.5%;}
-@media print { hr.chap {display: none; visibility: hidden;} }
-
-div.chapter {page-break-before: always;}
-.nobreak {page-break-before: avoid;
- padding-top: 0;}
-
-.boxcontents{
- max-width: 18em;
- padding: 1em;
- border: 0em solid black;
- margin: 0 auto; }
-
-.pcontents{
- text-align:left;
- text-indent:-2em;
- padding-left:2em;
- margin-top: 0.1em;
- margin-bottom: 0.1em;
-}
-
-table {
- margin-left: auto;
- margin-right: auto;
-}
-
-/*Table of Contents format*/
-table.toc { max-width: 30em;}
-
-.tbla {text-align: left;padding-left:1em}
-.tblb {text-align: left;padding-left: 0.5em;}
-.tblc {text-align: left; text-indent: -2.5em; padding-left: 2.5em;}
-.tbld {text-align: left;padding-left:4em}
-
-.tbra{text-align: right;padding-left:1em}
-
-.pagenum { /* uncomment the next line for invisible page numbers */
- /* visibility: hidden; */
- position: absolute;
- left: 92%;
- font-size: smaller;
- text-align: right;
- font-style: normal;
- font-weight: normal;
- font-variant: normal;
-} /* page numbers */
-
-.blockquot {
- margin-left: 5%;
- margin-right: 10%;
-}
-
-
-.boxit{
- max-width: 14em;
- padding: 1em;
- border: 0.5em double black;
- margin: 0 auto; }
-
-/*Indent-padding*/
-.ir1{text-align:right; padding-right:1em}
-.ir2{text-align:right; padding-right:2em}
-
-.displayinline{display:inline-block; line-height:1}
-
-.center {text-align: center;}
-
-.smcap {font-variant: small-caps;}
-
-/* Images */
-
-img {
- max-width: 100%;
- height: auto;
-}
-
-img.w100 {width: 100%;}
-
-.figcenter {
- margin: auto;
- text-align: center;
- page-break-inside: avoid;
- max-width: 100%;
-}
-
-/* Transcriber's notes */
-.transnote {background-color: #E6E6FA;
- color: black;
- font-size:smaller;
- padding:0.5em;
- margin-bottom:5em;
- font-family:sans-serif, serif; }
-
-/*CSS to set font sizes*/
-/*font sizes for non-header font changes*/
-.xxlargefont{font-size: xx-large}
-.xlargefont{font-size: x-large}
-.largefont{font-size: large}
-.smallfont{font-size: small}
-.cheaderfont{font-size:medium}
-.boldfont{font-weight:bold}
-
-/* Illustration classes */
-.illowp46 {width: 46%;}
-.x-ebookmaker .illowp46 {width: 100%;}
-.illowp100 {width: 100%;}
-.illowp25 {width: 25%;}
-.illowp62 {width: 62%;}
-.x-ebookmaker .illowp62 {width: 100%;}
-
- </style>
- </head>
-<body>
-<p style='text-align:center; font-size:1.2em; font-weight:bold'>The Project Gutenberg eBook of Love Conquers Pride, by Mrs. Alex. McVeigh Miller</p>
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
-at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
-are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws of the
-country where you are located before using this eBook.
-</div>
-
-<p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Title: Love Conquers Pride</p>
-<p style='display:block; margin-left:2em; text-indent:0; margin-top:0; margin-bottom:1em;'>or, Where Peace Dwelt</p>
-<p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Author: Mrs. Alex. McVeigh Miller</p>
-<p style='display:block; text-indent:0; margin:1em 0'>Release Date: April 18, 2022 [eBook #67869]</p>
-<p style='display:block; text-indent:0; margin:1em 0'>Language: English</p>
- <p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em; text-align:left'>Produced by: Demian Katz, Craig Kirkwood, and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (Images courtesy of the Digital Library@Villanova University.)</p>
-<div style='margin-top:2em; margin-bottom:4em'>*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK LOVE CONQUERS PRIDE ***</div>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp100" style="max-width: 43.25em;">
- <img id="coverpage" class="w100" src="images/cover.jpg" alt="Cover." />
-</div>
-
-<div style="padding-top:2em">
-<div class="transnote">
-<h2 style="margin-top: 0em">Transcriber’s Notes:</h2>
-
-<p>The Table of Contents was created by the transcriber and placed
-in the public domain.</p>
-
-<p><a href="#TN_end">Additional Transcriber’s Notes</a> are at the
-end.</p>
-</div></div>
-
-<hr class="tb x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<div class="boxcontents">
-<p class="xlargefont center boldfont">CONTENTS</p>
-<p class="pcontents"><a href="#CHAPTER_I">Chapter I. A Pretty Factory Girl.</a></p>
-<p class="pcontents"><a href="#CHAPTER_II">Chapter II. Love All His Own.</a></p>
-<p class="pcontents"><a href="#CHAPTER_III">Chapter III. A Jealous Rage.</a></p>
-<p class="pcontents"><a href="#CHAPTER_IV">Chapter IV. The Bird Flies.</a></p>
-<p class="pcontents"><a href="#CHAPTER_V">Chapter V. The Lover Reappears.</a></p>
-<p class="pcontents"><a href="#CHAPTER_VI">Chapter VI. A Happy Excursion.</a></p>
-<p class="pcontents"><a href="#CHAPTER_VII">Chapter VII. Acquiring a Stepfather.</a></p>
-<p class="pcontents"><a href="#CHAPTER_VIII">Chapter VIII. Secret Visits.</a></p>
-<p class="pcontents"><a href="#CHAPTER_IX">Chapter IX. The Secret Divulged.</a></p>
-<p class="pcontents"><a href="#CHAPTER_X">Chapter X. A Heartsick Fugitive.</a></p>
-<p class="pcontents"><a href="#CHAPTER_XI">Chapter XI. Sheltering Arms.</a></p>
-<p class="pcontents"><a href="#CHAPTER_XII">Chapter XII. Beginning Over Again.</a></p>
-<p class="pcontents"><a href="#CHAPTER_XIII">Chapter XIII. In a Boarding House.</a></p>
-<p class="pcontents"><a href="#CHAPTER_XIV">Chapter XIV. A Second Marriage.</a></p>
-<p class="pcontents"><a href="#CHAPTER_XV">Chapter XV. Startling News.</a></p>
-<p class="pcontents"><a href="#CHAPTER_XVI">Chapter XVI. The Sad Return.</a></p>
-<p class="pcontents"><a href="#CHAPTER_XVII">Chapter XVII. A Dramatic Meeting.</a></p>
-<p class="pcontents"><a href="#CHAPTER_XVIII">Chapter XVIII. A False Smile.</a></p>
-<p class="pcontents"><a href="#CHAPTER_XIX">Chapter XIX. A Poisoned Life.</a></p>
-<p class="pcontents"><a href="#CHAPTER_XX">Chapter XX. An Evening of Suspense.</a></p>
-<p class="pcontents"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXI">Chapter XXI. A Return Call.</a></p>
-<p class="pcontents"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXII">Chapter XXII. A Beautiful Child.</a></p>
-<p class="pcontents"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXIII">Chapter XXIII. A Daring Move.</a></p>
-<p class="pcontents"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXIV">Chapter XXIV. Old Lovers Face to Face.</a></p>
-<p class="pcontents"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXV">Chapter XXV. An Old Story.</a></p>
-<p class="pcontents"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXVI">Chapter XXVI. The Enemy at Work.</a></p>
-<p class="pcontents"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXVII">Chapter XXVII. “A Married Flirt.”</a></p>
-<p class="pcontents"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXVIII">Chapter XXVIII. The Blackmailer Baffled.</a></p>
-<p class="pcontents"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXIX">Chapter XXIX. Caught in a Trap.</a></p>
-<p class="pcontents"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXX">Chapter XXX. A Supposed Suicide.</a></p>
-<p class="pcontents"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXXI">Chapter XXXI. An Amazed Husband.</a></p>
-<p class="pcontents"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXXII">Chapter XXXII. The Revelation.</a></p>
-<p class="pcontents"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXXIII">Chapter XXXIII. Noble Forgiveness.</a></p>
-<p class="pcontents"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXXIV">Chapter XXXIV. Imaginary Deceit.</a></p>
-<p class="pcontents"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXXV">Chapter XXXV. Generous Deeds.</a></p>
-<p class="pcontents"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXXVI">Chapter XXXVI. Plans For the Future.</a></p>
-<p class="pcontents"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXXVII">Chapter XXXVII. The Storm Breaks.</a></p>
-<p class="pcontents"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXXVIII">Chapter XXXVIII. Visions of Happiness.</a></p>
-<p class="pcontents"><a href="#CHAPTER_XXXIX">Chapter XXXIX. Reaching a Decision.</a></p>
-<p class="pcontents"><a href="#CHAPTER_XL">Chapter XL. A Great Sacrifice.</a></p>
-<p class="pcontents"><a href="#CHAPTER_XLI">Chapter XLI. A False Witness.</a></p>
-<p class="pcontents"><a href="#CHAPTER_XLII">Chapter XLII. Remarried.</a></p>
-<p class="pcontents"><a href="#CHAPTER_XLIII">Chapter XLIII. A Lovely Widow.</a></p>
-<p class="pcontents"><a href="#CHAPTER_XLIV">Chapter XLIV. A Mother’s Yearning.</a></p>
-<p class="pcontents"><a href="#CHAPTER_XLV">Chapter XLV. Supreme Joy.</a></p>
-</div></div>
-
-<hr class="tb x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p class="center largefont">NEW EAGLE SERIES No. 1164</p>
-
-<p class="center xxlargefont pminus1 s1"><span class="smcap">Love Conquers Pride</span></p>
-
-<div class="center pminus1">
-<p class="displayinline"><em>BY <span class="smcap xlargefont">Mrs. Alex.<br />
-McVeigh<br />
-Miller</span></em></p></div>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp62" style="max-width: 40.625em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/cover_illo.jpg" alt="Cover illustration." />
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p class="center largefont boldfont">POPULAR COPYRIGHTS</p>
-
-<p class="center xxlargefont boldfont">New Eagle Series</p>
-
-<p class="center largefont boldfont">PRICE, FIFTEEN CENTS</p>
-
-<p class="center boldfont">Carefully Selected Love Stories</p>
-
-<p class="center boldfont largefont"><em>Note the Authors!</em></p>
-
-<p>There is such a profusion of good books in this list, that it
-is an impossibility to urge you to select any particular title or
-author’s work. All that we can say is that any line that contains
-the complete works of Mrs. Georgie Sheldon, Charles Garvice,
-Mrs. Harriet Lewis, May Agnes Fleming, Wenona Gilman, Mrs.
-Alex. McVeigh Miller, and other writers of the same type, is
-worthy of your attention, especially when the price has been
-set at 15 cents the volume.</p>
-
-<p>These books range from 256 to 320 pages. They are printed
-from good type, and are readable from start to finish.</p>
-
-<p>If you are looking for clean-cut, honest value, then we state
-most emphatically that you will find it in this line.</p>
-
-<p class="center boldfont"><em>ALL TITLES ALWAYS IN PRINT</em></p>
-
-<div class="center">
-<table class="toc" border="0" cellpadding="0" cellspacing="0" summary="Book list">
-<tr><td class="tbla">1&mdash;Queen Bess</td><td class="tbra" style="width:50%">By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tbla">2&mdash;Ruby’s Reward</td><td class="tbra">By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tbla">7&mdash;Two Keys</td><td class="tbra">By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tbla">9&mdash;The Virginia Heiress</td><td class="tbra">By May Agnes Fleming</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblb">12&mdash;Edrie’s Legacy</td><td class="tbra">By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblb">17&mdash;Leslie’s Loyalty</td><td class="tbra">By Charles Garvice</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tbld" colspan="2">(His Love So True)</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblb">22&mdash;Elaine</td><td class="tbra">By Charles Garvice</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblb">24&mdash;A Wasted Love</td><td class="tbra">By Charles Garvice</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tbld" colspan="2">(On Love’s Altar)</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblb">41&mdash;Her Heart’s Desire</td><td class="tbra">By Charles Garvice</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tbld" colspan="2">(An Innocent Girl)</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblb">44&mdash;That Dowdy</td><td class="tbra">By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblb">50&mdash;Her Ransom</td><td class="tbra">By Charles Garvice</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tbld" colspan="2">(Paid For)</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblb">55&mdash;Thrice Wedded</td><td class="tbra">By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblb">66&mdash;Witch Hazel</td><td class="tbra">By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblb">70&mdash;Sydney</td><td class="tbra">By Charles Garvice</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tbld" colspan="2">(A Wilful Young Woman)</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblb">73&mdash;The Marquis</td><td class="tbra">By Charles Garvice</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblb">77&mdash;Tina</td><td class="tbra">By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblb">79&mdash;Out of the Past</td><td class="tbra">By Charles Garvice</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tbld" colspan="2">(Marjorie)</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblb">84&mdash;Imogene</td><td class="tbra">By Charles Garvice</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tbld" colspan="2">(Dumaresq’s Temptation)</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblb">85&mdash;Lorrie; or, Hollow Gold</td><td class="tbra">By Charles Garvice</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblb">88&mdash;Virgie’s Inheritance</td><td class="tbra">By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblb">95&mdash;A Wilful Maid</td><td class="tbra">By Charles Garvice</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tbld" colspan="2">(Philippa)</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblb">98&mdash;Claire</td><td class="tbra">By Charles Garvice</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tbld" colspan="2">(The Mistress of Court Regna)</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblb">99&mdash;Audrey’s Recompense</td><td class="tbra">By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblc">102&mdash;Sweet Cymbeline</td><td class="tbra">By Charles Garvice</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tbld" colspan="2">(Bellmaire)</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblc">109&mdash;Signa’s Sweetheart</td><td class="tbra">By Charles Garvice</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tbld" colspan="2">(Lord Delamere’s Bride)</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblc">111&mdash;Faithful Shirley</td><td class="tbra">By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblc">117&mdash;She Loved Him</td><td class="tbra">By Charles Garvice</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblc">119&mdash;’Twixt Smile and Tear</td><td class="tbra">By Charles Garvice</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tbld" colspan="2">(Dulcie)</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblc">122&mdash;Grazia’s Mistake</td><td class="tbra">By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblc">130&mdash;A Passion Flower</td><td class="tbra">By Charles Garvice</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tbld" colspan="2">(Madge)</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblc">133&mdash;Max</td><td class="tbra">By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblc">136&mdash;The Unseen Bridegroom</td><td class="tbra">By May Agnes Fleming</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblc">138&mdash;A Fatal Wooing</td><td class="tbra">By Laura Jean Libbey</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblc">141&mdash;Lady Evelyn</td><td class="tbra">By May Agnes Fleming</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblc">144&mdash;Dorothy’s Jewels</td><td class="tbra">By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblc">146&mdash;Magdalen’s Vow</td><td class="tbra">By May Agnes Fleming</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblc">151&mdash;The Heiress of Glen Gower</td><td class="tbra">By May Agnes Fleming</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblc">155&mdash;Nameless Dell</td><td class="tbra">By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblc">157&mdash;Who Wins</td><td class="tbra">By May Agnes Fleming</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblc">166&mdash;The Masked Bridal</td><td class="tbra">By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblc">168&mdash;Thrice Lost, Thrice Won</td><td class="tbra">By May Agnes Fleming</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblc">174&mdash;His Guardian Angel</td><td class="tbra">By Charles Garvice</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblc">177&mdash;A True Aristocrat</td><td class="tbra">By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblc">181&mdash;The Baronet’s Bride</td><td class="tbra">By May Agnes Fleming</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblc">188&mdash;Dorothy Arnold’s Escape</td><td class="tbra">By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblc">199&mdash;Geoffrey’s Victory</td><td class="tbra">By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblc">203&mdash;Only One Love</td><td class="tbra">By Charles Garvice</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblc">210&mdash;Wild Oats</td><td class="tbra">By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblc">213&mdash;The Heiress of Egremont</td><td class="tbra">By Mrs. Harriet Lewis</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblc">215&mdash;Only a Girl’s Love</td><td class="tbra">By Charles Garvice</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblc">219&mdash;Lost: A Pearle</td><td class="tbra">By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblc">222&mdash;The Lily of Mordaunt</td><td class="tbra">By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblc">223&mdash;Leola Dale’s Fortune</td><td class="tbra">By Charles Garvice</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblc">231&mdash;The Earl’s Heir</td><td class="tbra">By Charles Garvice</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tbld" colspan="2">(Lady Norah)</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblc">233&mdash;Nora</td><td class="tbra">By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblc">236&mdash;Her Humble Lover</td><td class="tbra">By Charles Garvice</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tbld" colspan="2">(The Usurper; or, The Gipsy Peer)</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblc">242&mdash;A Wounded Heart</td><td class="tbra">By Charles Garvice</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tbld" colspan="2">(Sweet as a Rose)</td></tr>
-<tr><td class="tblc">244&mdash;A Hoiden’s Conquest</td><td class="tbra">By Mrs. Georgie Sheldon</td></tr>
-</table>
-</div></div>
-
-<hr class="tb x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<div class="figcenter illowp46" style="max-width: 40.625em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/i005.jpg" alt="Title page." />
-</div></div>
-
-
-<hr class="tb x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h1 class="nobreak">Love Conquers Pride</h1>
-
-
-
-<p class="center" style="line-height:3.5em">OR,<br />
-<span class="xlargefont">WHERE PEACE DWELT</span></p>
-
-<p class="center p2" style="line-height:1.5em">BY<br />
-<span class="xlargefont">MRS. ALEX. McVEIGH MILLER</span></p>
-
-<p class="center" style="margin-bottom:2em">Author of “The Man She Hated,” “A Married Flirt,” “Loyal<br />
-Unto Death,” “Only a Kiss”&mdash;published in the <span class="smcap">New Eagle<br />
-Series</span>.
-</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter illowp25" style="max-width: 7.8125em;">
- <img class="w100" src="images/publishers_icon.jpg" alt="Publisher logo." />
-</div>
-
-<p class="center p2"><span class="xlargefont" style="line-height:1.75">STREET &amp; SMITH CORPORATION</span><br />
-<span style="position:relative; top:-0.2em;">PUBLISHERS</span><br />
-<span class="xlargefont">79-89 Seventh Avenue, New York</span>
-</p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<div class="boxit">
-<p class="center">Copyright, 1888</p>
-
-<p class="center">NORMAN L. MUNRO<br />
-Renewal for 28 years, from<br />
-November 8, 1916, granted<br />
-to Mrs. Alex. McVeigh<br />
-Miller</p>
-
-<p class="center">Love Conquers Pride</p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="center p1">(Printed in the United States of America)</p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p class="center xxlargefont nobreak" style="margin-bottom:1em" id="CHAPTER_I">LOVE CONQUERS PRIDE.</p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CHAPTER I.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">A PRETTY FACTORY GIRL.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Pretty Pansy lay lazily in the hammock at the
-foot of the lawn, and listened to the south wind
-rushing through the tree tops overhead, thinking
-to herself, with a blush, that it seemed to be whispering
-a name&mdash;whispering it over and over:</p>
-
-<p>“Norman Wylde!”</p>
-
-<p>At the top of the green, sloping lawn stood a
-big white farmhouse, with long porches shaded
-by rose vines and honeysuckles. Pansy’s uncle
-and aunt lived there, and she had come on a
-month’s visit to them. The month was slipping
-away very fast now, and she must soon return
-to her work in Richmond, for Pansy Laurens was
-no pampered favorite of fortune, but an employee
-of one of the great tobacco factories.</p>
-
-<p>Pansy was only fifteen when her father, a machinist
-at the Tredegar Works, had died and left
-his wife and five children penniless, save for what<span class="pagenum">[6]</span>
-they could earn by the labor of their own hands.
-Pansy was the eldest, and her mother had to take
-her from school that the labor of her little white
-hands might help to earn the family support.</p>
-
-<p>Nothing offered but the tobacco factories, and
-Pansy went there, while her brother Willie found
-work as a cash boy in a dry-goods store on Broad
-Street. The three younger ones, being too small
-to work, were continued at school, while the
-mother took in sewing to help eke out the family
-income.</p>
-
-<p>It was hard on them all, most especially on
-Pansy, who was so intelligent and refined, and
-who hated to leave school and toil at repulsive
-tasks among companions who were mostly uncongenial,
-for, although some of the girls were
-sweet and pretty as herself, others were coarse
-and rude, and sneered at her, calling her proud
-and ambitious, although they knew at heart that
-they were only jealous of the lovely face, so round
-and dimpled, with its big purplish-blue eyes,
-shaded by such a beautiful fringe of long black
-curling lashes.</p>
-
-<p>They all envied her that fair face and those
-silky masses of wavy dark hair that made such<span class="pagenum">[7]</span>
-a becoming frame for the transparent white skin,
-with its wild-rose tints and delicate tracery of
-blue veins.</p>
-
-<p>But, pretty or ugly, it did not matter, the girl
-said to herself sometimes, with bitter discontent,
-as she looked at her fair reflection in the mirror.
-She was nothing but a factory girl, after all, and
-there were people who looked down on her for
-that act as if the very sound were the essence of
-vulgarity. To have been a shopgirl even, or a
-dressmaker, or milliner, would have been far
-more genteel, she said to herself.</p>
-
-<p>This was the first time in three years that she
-had got away from the factory, and she would
-not have done so then if she had not been given
-a furlough from work because there was a temporary
-dullness in trade.</p>
-
-<p>Then Uncle Robbins had come to Richmond
-from his country home on a little business, and,
-struck by her pale cheeks and air of languor, invited
-her to go home with him. Mother urged
-her to accept the invitation, declaring that she
-could get along without her, and Pansy went
-gladly away on her little summer holiday, which
-was now drawing to an end.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[8]</span></p>
-
-<p>Her heart was full of this as she swung to
-and fro in the hammock beneath the trees, and
-listened to the wind rustling the leaves so musically,
-seeming to murmur over and over that
-name so dear to her heart:</p>
-
-<p>“Norman Wylde!”</p>
-
-<p>He was a summer boarder at her aunt’s, and
-he had been kind to her, not cool and supercilious
-like the others, who looked down upon her because
-she was a working girl.</p>
-
-<p>Pansy thought him the handsomest man she
-had ever seen, and she was grateful to him for
-the courteous way in which he treated her, never
-seeming to realize any difference in the social position
-of herself and Miss Ives, the Richmond
-belle, who was here with her mother because the
-doctors had tabooed any gayety for the elderly
-lady this summer on account of a serious heart
-trouble.</p>
-
-<p>Juliette Ives was as much in love with the handsome
-young gentleman as Pansy herself, and she
-sneered at the factory girl in her cheap lawns and
-ginghams.</p>
-
-<p>“Actually setting herself up as an equal among
-her aunt’s boarders,” she said disdainfully. “I<span class="pagenum">[9]</span>
-mean to put her down at once, and let her know
-that we do not desire her company.”</p>
-
-<p>So she boldly asked Pansy if she could hire
-her to do the washing for her mother and herself.</p>
-
-<p>“I am not a servant,” Pansy answered, flushing
-angrily.</p>
-
-<p>“You are a factory girl, aren’t you?” disdainfully.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, but not a servant.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t see much difference,” said the rich
-girl insolently; and from that moment the two
-were open enemies.</p>
-
-<p>Juliette Ives knew in her own heart that her
-spiteful actions had been the outcome of jealousy
-because Norman Wylde had looked so admiringly
-at Pansy when he first met her, and Pansy was
-quick enough to understand the truth.</p>
-
-<p>“She is in love with him, and is jealous of
-me, in spite of my poverty and my lonely position.
-Very well, I’ll pay her back for her scorn,
-if I can,” she resolved, with girlish pique.</p>
-
-<p>And as she possessed beauty equal to, if not
-greater than, Juliette’s blond charms, and was
-fairly well educated and intelligent, she had some<span class="pagenum">[10]</span>
-advantages, at least, with which to enter the lists
-with the aristocratic belle who scorned her so
-openly.</p>
-
-<p>And Norman Wylde, who had a noble, chivalrous
-nature, could not help taking Pansy’s part
-when he saw how the boarders tried to put her
-down.</p>
-
-<p>“Poor little thing! It’s a shame, for she is as
-sweet and pretty as a wild rose, and they ought
-to be friendly with her and help to brighten her
-hard lot,” he thought, with indignation.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[11]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_II">CHAPTER II.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">LOVE ALL HIS OWN.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>The boarders had organized a fishing party,
-and everybody had gone, even Mr. Wylde, so it
-was very quiet at the farmhouse. Aunt Robbins
-and her servants were busy making preserves,
-and Uncle Robbins was in the meadow, hauling
-and stacking the wheat he had cut a few days before.
-Pansy had helped to peel apples for the
-preserves until her back ached and her hands
-smarted, so at last Aunt Robbins sent her out to
-rest.</p>
-
-<p>“I shan’t need you any more to-day, so you
-had better go and take a nap in the hammock
-before that stuck-up Jule Ives comes to turn you
-out of it,” said the good woman.</p>
-
-<p>Pansy went out, but she took off her calico dress
-and gingham apron first, and donned her prettiest
-dress, an organdie lawn with a white
-ground sprigged with blue flowers. A pretty bow
-of blue ribbon fastened the white lace at her
-throat, and another one tied back the mass of
-rippling dark hair from the white temples, leaving<span class="pagenum">[12]</span>
-just a few bewitching love locks to curl over
-the white brow. Thus attired, she looked exquisitely
-fair, cool, and charming, and she knew well
-that when the boarders returned, tired and hot
-from the day’s amusements, they would envy her
-sweet, comfortable appearance.</p>
-
-<p>She was not disappointed, for by and by, when
-they came trooping through the big white gate
-close by her, every one stopped and stared, and
-Miss Ives exclaimed, in a loud, sarcastic voice:</p>
-
-<p>“Good gracious, is it Sunday?”</p>
-
-<p>“Why, no, of course not, Juliette,” said Chattie
-Norwood. “Why, what made you think of
-such a funny thing?”</p>
-
-<p>“Why, Pansy Laurens has on her Sunday
-dress, that’s all,” with a loud laugh.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, pshaw! Her other one is in the washtub,”
-tittered Miss Norwood, and every word came distinctly
-to Pansy’s ears. An angry impulse
-prompted her to make some scathing reply, but
-an innate delicacy restrained her, and she would
-not lift her beautiful, drooping lashes from the
-book she pretended to be reading, although the
-angry color deepened to crimson on her cheeks.</p>
-
-<p>The tittering party passed on toward the house,<span class="pagenum">[13]</span>
-but, although Pansy did not look up, she was conscious
-that one had lingered and stopped. It was
-Norman Wylde, and he came up to the hammock,
-and said gently:</p>
-
-<p>“Poor little Pansy!”</p>
-
-<p>Her sweet lips quivered, and she looked up,
-meeting the tender, sympathetic gaze of his splendid
-dark eyes.</p>
-
-<p>“You are a brave little girl,” he continued
-warmly. “I was glad that you proved yourself
-too much of a lady to reply to their coarse sneers.
-Your sweet dignity makes me love you all the
-more.”</p>
-
-<p>Pansy gave a little start of surprise and rapture.
-Did he indeed love her? The color flamed
-up brightly on her delicate cheeks, and the lashes
-drooped bashfully over her eyes.</p>
-
-<p>“Look at me, Pansy,” said the young man, in
-a tone made up of tender command and fond entreaty.
-“You are not surprised. You guessed
-that I loved you, didn’t you?”</p>
-
-<p>“No. I was afraid that&mdash;that you loved Miss
-Ives,” she faltered, and a frown darkened his
-handsome face.</p>
-
-<p>“Do not speak to me of her,” he said impatiently.<span class="pagenum">[14]</span>
-“Who could love her after the meanness
-and injustice of her conduct to you?” He imprisoned
-both her little hands in his, as he continued
-ardently: “Pansy, do you love me, my little
-darling?”</p>
-
-<p>A bashful glance from the sweet blue eyes answered
-his question, and, stooping down, he was
-about to press a kiss on her beautiful lips when a
-stealthy footstep came up behind them, and an
-angry voice exclaimed:</p>
-
-<p>“Really, Mr. Wylde, when you want to flirt
-with factory girls you should not choose such a
-public place, especially when the girl you are engaged
-to is close at hand.”</p>
-
-<p>He started backward as if shot, and Pansy
-sprang from the hammock with a shriek:</p>
-
-<p>“It is false!”</p>
-
-<p>Juliette Ives laughed scornfully, and replied:</p>
-
-<p>“Ask him. He will not deny it.”</p>
-
-<p>Pretty Pansy, with a face that had grown white
-as a lily, turned to Norman Wylde.</p>
-
-<p>“Is it true? Are you engaged to her?” she demanded
-sharply.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, but&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[15]</span></p>
-
-<p>“That is enough!” interrupted Pansy, with
-flashing eyes. She would not let him finish his
-sentence, so keen was her resentment at his
-trifling, as she deemed it; and, looking scornfully
-at him, she said:</p>
-
-<p>“Never presume to speak to me again, sir!”</p>
-
-<p>Then she walked rapidly from the spot, and
-Norman Wylde and Juliette Ives stood looking
-at each other with angry eyes.</p>
-
-<p>“Are you not ashamed of yourself?” she cried
-indignantly.</p>
-
-<p>“Eavesdropper!” he retorted passionately, forgetting
-his gentlemanliness in his resentment at
-her conduct.</p>
-
-<p>“Traitor!” she retorted defiantly, then burst
-out fiercely: “Call me what names you will, I
-have borne your trifling until I could bear no
-more. If you wanted to flirt, why couldn’t you
-have chosen some one in your own station in life,
-instead of that miserable tobacco-factory girl?”</p>
-
-<p>He had folded his arms across his chest, and
-was listening with a sneer to her angry speech.
-When she paused he answered, in a low yet distinct
-voice:</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[16]</span></p>
-
-<p>“I beg your pardon. It was not flirting, but
-earnest.”</p>
-
-<p>A sharp remonstrance sprang to her lips, but,
-without taking any note of it, he continued
-coldly:</p>
-
-<p>“I had a fancy for you once, Juliette, but it
-perished when I saw how mean and base you
-could be to a less fortunate sister woman. I
-have watched you and your clique, Juliette, and
-I have been ashamed of you all&mdash;ashamed and
-indignant, and my heart turned away from you
-to that sweet persecuted girl with a deeper tenderness
-than it ever felt before. I made up my
-mind to snap the bonds that held me as your slave,
-and to win her for my own. But I acted prematurely
-in declaring my love for her first. You
-drove me to it with your unwomanly conduct of
-a little while ago, else I had not been so hasty.”</p>
-
-<p>She stood staring at him with angry incredulity,
-wondering if he spoke the truth, if he really
-meant to throw her over for the sake of a girl he
-had barely known a month.</p>
-
-<p>“What if I refuse to give you your freedom?”
-she asked harshly.’</p>
-
-<p>“You would not wish to hold an unwilling captive,”<span class="pagenum">[17]</span>
-he replied, with a touch of scorn, and she
-saw that it would be impossible to hold him without
-a sacrifice of her pride. Curbing herself a
-little, she asked humbly:</p>
-
-<p>“Hadn’t we better take time to think it over,
-Norman? I admit I was jealous and a little
-hasty.”</p>
-
-<p>He looked disappointed and uneasy. Was she
-really going to hold him to that bond of which
-he was so weary, against which he chafed so
-fiercely?</p>
-
-<p>She caught that look, and comprehended it with
-bitter mortification. Anger came to her aid. “Go&mdash;you
-are free as air, and I am well rid of a fickle
-flirt,” she exclaimed hotly.</p>
-
-<p>“I thank you, Miss Ives,” he replied, in a tone
-of relief, and, bowing coldly, he walked away toward
-the house, leaving Juliette stamping on the
-soft grass in a tempest of fury and disappointment.</p>
-
-<p>He was anxious to find little Pansy and explain
-his conduct to her. Surely she would forgive
-him when she knew that it was for her sake
-he had broken faith with Juliette Ives. Of course
-she would be ready to make up with him.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[18]</span></p>
-
-<p>And his heart throbbed madly at the thought
-that sweet Pansy’s love was all his own. He knew
-that there would be a bitter battle with his relatives,
-but he was determined to make her his
-wife.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[19]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_III">CHAPTER III.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">A JEALOUS RAGE.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Juliette Ives rushed up to the house presently
-and poured the story of her lover’s treachery into
-the ears of her mother, who became quite indignant
-at the turn affairs were taking.</p>
-
-<p>“I will go at once to the farmer’s wife, and give
-her a piece of my mind about her impudent niece,”
-she said, and she went immediately to Mrs. Robbins,
-who was in the pantry, labeling the nice jars
-of preserves she had made that day.</p>
-
-<p>“I have come to complain of your niece, that
-bold factory girl, who has been making trouble
-between my daughter and the gentleman she’s
-engaged to,” she began.</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Robbins looked around in amazement.</p>
-
-<p>“What has Pansy done, ma’am, to be called
-sech names?” she exclaimed, rather resentfully;
-and then Mrs. Ives poured out a garbled version
-of poor Pansy’s flirtation with Norman Wylde,
-making it appear that she was a bold, forward
-creature, who had actually forced the gentleman
-to pay her attention.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[20]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Maybe she thinks he will marry her and make
-her a fine lady, but she’s mistaken,” she sneered.
-“It’s only a way he has of flirting, but it means
-nothing, as many a poor girl in Richmond and
-elsewhere knows to her cost. He’s very wild, but
-he promised my daughter, when she accepted him,
-that he would reform. I believe he was trying to
-do so, but when Pansy Laurens kept throwing
-herself in his way he couldn’t resist the temptation
-to make a fool of her. So when my daughter
-caught him kissing the girl, just now, in the hammock,
-she discarded him at once, and he’s so angry
-he’ll maybe fall into some mischief that will make
-Pansy Laurens rue the day she ever saw him. If
-I were you, Mrs. Robbins, I’d send the girl home
-to her mother at once,” she advised eagerly.</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Robbins sat silent, gravely cogitating.
-She was a large, fleshy woman, good-natured,
-and slow to anger. It did not occur to her to fly
-into a passion and resent Mrs. Ives’ harsh opinion
-of Pansy.</p>
-
-<p>On the contrary, to her calm, equable nature,
-it seemed best to weigh the pros and cons in
-the case. Besides, Pansy was her husband’s
-niece, not hers, and she had no special fondness<span class="pagenum">[21]</span>
-for the girl, whom she had never seen till this
-summer.</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Ives watched her closely, and, seeing how
-quietly she had taken everything, took heart to
-continue pouring out her venom.</p>
-
-<p>“I’m afraid that girl is going to make you lots
-of trouble,” she ventured. “She will want to
-hang on to Mr. Wylde, of course.”</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Robbins turned her large, ruminating eyes
-on the lady’s face, and remarked:</p>
-
-<p>“Perhaps he means fair. Rich men have married
-poor geerls before now. And Pansy Laurens
-is a good-looking geerl&mdash;as pritty as your
-Jule, I think, ma’am.”</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Ives grew quite red in the face with anger,
-but she restrained herself, hoping to mold
-the simple-minded woman to her will. Shaking
-her head vehemently, she replied:</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, you don’t know the Wyldes! They are
-the proudest people in Richmond, rich and fashionable,
-and belong to one of the oldest families
-in Virginia. All of them have been professional
-men, and they consider working people as no better
-than their servants. If Norman Wylde was
-fool enough to want to marry a mechanic’s daughter<span class="pagenum">[22]</span>
-and a working girl, which you may be sure
-he isn’t, his folks would disinherit him, and never
-speak to him again.”</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Robbins shook her head and sighed.</p>
-
-<p>“I hate to think of my husband’s niece a-being
-in sech a scrape. Ef she’s been bold and forrard,
-ma’am, I never noticed it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Of course not. She was too sly,” sneered
-Mrs. Ives. “But I see you’re bound to take her
-part, Mrs. Robbins, and I’ll say no more, only
-this: If disgrace comes on your family through
-that audacious piece, remember I warned you.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll talk to Mr. Robbins,” was the only answer
-from the woman of few words.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[23]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_IV">CHAPTER IV.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">THE BIRD FLIES.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Meanwhile poor Pansy, half crazed with shame
-and grief, was sobbing forlornly up in her little
-chamber under the eaves.</p>
-
-<p>She believed that Norman Wylde had been
-amusing himself with her, and the thought was
-agony to her fond, loving heart.</p>
-
-<p>“I loved him so! Oh, I loved him so! And it
-was cruel, cruel for him to deceive me,” she
-moaned bitterly, while the shame of it all weighed
-heavily on her sensitive spirit.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly the hired girl, a bright mulatto, put
-her head into the room, and started at seeing
-Pansy lying on the floor in tears.</p>
-
-<p>“Lor’, Miss Pansy, what’s de matter? You
-sick?” she exclaimed.</p>
-
-<p>“No&mdash;yes. What do you want, Sue?” fretfully.</p>
-
-<p>“Mr. Wylde tole me to tole you to come downsta’rs.
-He wants to tell you sumfin.”</p>
-
-<p>Pansy’s blue eyes flashed through their tears.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[24]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Tell him I won’t come, that I don’t want to
-see him!” she replied spiritedly.</p>
-
-<p>Norman Wylde sighed when he received the
-message, and turned away without a word. Going
-to his room, he dashed off a hasty letter to
-Pansy, explaining everything, and begged her
-consent to become his wife. Then he went down,
-and, finding Sue alone in the kitchen, gave her the
-letter to take to Pansy, liberally rewarding her
-for the service.</p>
-
-<p>Just outside Pansy’s door she came upon Juliette
-Ives, who said carelessly:</p>
-
-<p>“Give me that letter. I’ll hand it to Pansy.”</p>
-
-<p>She held up her hand, with a silver piece shining
-in its palm. Sue snapped at the bait, and
-immediately delivered up the precious letter,
-which Miss Ives hid in her pocket, then ran away
-to her own room.</p>
-
-<p>Her pale-blue eyes sparkled with fury as she
-read the tender love letter Norman Wylde had
-written to Pansy.</p>
-
-<p>“She shall never be his wife if I can prevent
-it!” she vowed bitterly.</p>
-
-<p>The impatient lover waited in vain for a reply
-to his letter, for Pansy did not come down that<span class="pagenum">[25]</span>
-evening, and when he arose, very early the next
-morning, he learned, to his dismay, that Farmer
-Robbins had taken his niece away on the midnight
-train.</p>
-
-<p>He went impatiently to Mrs. Robbins, and she
-told him, in her cool, straightforward way, that
-Mr. Robbins had taken Pansy away because he
-did not approve of her flirting with young men.</p>
-
-<p>“But, my dear madam, my intentions were
-strictly honorable. I wished to marry Pansy,”
-he expostulated.</p>
-
-<p>“You are engaged to Miss Ives, ain’t you?” she
-returned curtly.</p>
-
-<p>“I was, but I am no longer. I broke off with
-her that I might ask Pansy Laurens to marry
-me.”</p>
-
-<p>He seemed so manly and straightforward that
-Mrs. Robbins must have been forced to believe
-in his sincerity had not her mind been poisoned
-beforehand by the slanders of Mrs. Ives. But
-the poison had done its work, and she looked on
-him as a liar and a libertine. So she answered
-curtly again:</p>
-
-<p>“Rich young men like you, Mr. Wylde, don’t
-marry poor working geerls like little Pansy Laurens.<span class="pagenum">[26]</span>
-I’ve heerd all about your character from
-Mrs. Ives, sir, and I know you didn’t mean any
-good to Pansy, so her uncle up and took her away
-out o’ harm’s reach.”</p>
-
-<p>His black eyes flashed with anger.</p>
-
-<p>“I shall follow her!” he exclaimed hotly, and
-rushed out on the lawn, where Mrs. Ives was
-leisurely promenading under the trees.</p>
-
-<p>She cowered a little when she saw his handsome
-face so pale with anger, and his burning
-dark eyes fixed on her with such resentful passion.</p>
-
-<p>Controlling his fierce anger by a strong effort
-of will, he advanced toward her, and said, with
-forced calmness:</p>
-
-<p>“I am curious to know, Mrs. Ives, what kind of
-character you have given me to Mrs. Robbins,
-since it had the effect of incensing her so bitterly
-against me?”</p>
-
-<p>She tossed up her head defiantly, and replied:</p>
-
-<p>“It was your flirting with her niece that angered
-Mrs. Robbins.”</p>
-
-<p>His brow darkened, and he waved his hand,
-as if thrusting aside her petty subterfuge.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[27]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Mrs. Robbins told me that she had had my
-character from you.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, pshaw! What was the foolish creature
-thinking of?” cried the lady airily. “She asked
-me about you, and I merely said that you were
-fickle-minded&mdash;that was all. You will grant that
-I had room to say that much, after your treatment
-of my daughter?”</p>
-
-<p>He recoiled from the envenomed thrust, and
-turned away, with a cold bow. He felt sure that
-she had said much more, but she was not a man&mdash;he
-could not force her to answer for the slanders
-she had uttered against him.</p>
-
-<p>As he left her side, Juliette approached eagerly,
-and inquired what Norman had said. Mrs. Ives
-repeated it, and added, with a chuckle of triumph:</p>
-
-<p>“He did not believe me, but he dared not say
-so.”</p>
-
-<p>“Have you written to the Wyldes, mamma?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes; and colored the whole affair as highly
-as possible.”</p>
-
-<p>“You do not believe they will allow him to
-marry that upstart girl?”</p>
-
-<p>“No, indeed; for I have given her a fine character,<span class="pagenum">[28]</span>
-you may be sure,” replied the heartless
-woman complacently.</p>
-
-<p>“I should die of spite if he married her,” cried
-Juliette jealously.</p>
-
-<p>“He will not marry her, my dear, for I am
-determined to thwart her, if possible. I have poisoned
-the minds of all her relations against him,
-and they will be sure to keep him at a distance.
-Besides, you said yourself that she was angry
-with him, and declared she would never speak to
-him again.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes; but if he had a chance to explain&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“They will have no chance to explain. Their
-relations will keep them apart,” interrupted her
-mother firmly.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[29]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_V">CHAPTER V.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">THE LOVER REAPPEARS.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Arnell &amp; Grey, the firm at whose immense tobacco
-factory Pansy Laurens worked, were noted
-for their kindness and liberality to their employees.
-Every year they planned and carried
-out, at their own expense, some pleasant entertainment,
-to which every one in the factory was
-cordially invited; and this summer it took the
-form of a delightful excursion.</p>
-
-<p>A crowded steamer carried the large number
-of employees down the James River, and a fine
-band furnished music for the gay young people,
-who danced all day upon the deck, under the blue
-sky and bright sunlight of August. Downstairs
-a dinner was waiting, and nothing that could conduce
-to the pleasure of the occasion had been forgotten
-by Arnell &amp; Grey, who delighted in the
-success of their generous undertakings.</p>
-
-<p>Pansy Laurens went, of course&mdash;naughty
-Pansy, who had been in disgrace for a month
-with her relations, on account of her crime of
-stealing a rich girl’s lover away. Yes, it was<span class="pagenum">[30]</span>
-almost five weeks now since Uncle Robbins had
-taken Pansy back to Richmond and told her
-mother sternly that he was sorry he had ever
-taken her away, since she had made serious trouble
-among his boarders, and flirted boldly with
-a young man who was engaged to another girl.</p>
-
-<p>He had brought her home to get her out of
-harm’s way, he said, and he advised his sister
-to keep a sharp lookout upon the willful girl, as
-Norman Wylde had vowed he would follow her
-to Richmond.</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Laurens expressed herself to her brother
-as being ashamed of her daughter’s bad conduct,
-and determined to keep her in strict bounds hereafter.</p>
-
-<p>She scolded Pansy, and threatened to lock her
-in her room on bread and water if she ever spoke
-to that dangerous young man again.</p>
-
-<p>Poor Pansy could do nothing but tell her own
-side of the story.</p>
-
-<p>She had not been bold and forward. She had
-not known Norman Wylde was engaged to anybody,
-and she did not know that he was amusing
-himself only, when he made love to her in those<span class="pagenum">[31]</span>
-bright summer days. When she found out that
-he was only flirting she had told him never to
-speak to her again.</p>
-
-<p>“Stick to that, little gal, and there won’t be
-no more trouble,” said Uncle Robbins approvingly.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes; don’t let him come near you again as
-long as you live,” added Mrs. Robbins sharply,
-and Pansy thought to herself that she never
-would.</p>
-
-<p>She was overwhelmed with shame and grief at
-this pitiless exposé of her futile love dream, and
-down in her little heart was a secret resentment,
-too, at the hardness of everybody. Why should
-they declare that she had been bold and forward?
-She knew that it was untrue, and their blame cut
-deep into the sensitive heart. Norman Wylde,
-too&mdash;how could he have been so cruel, so unkind?
-Her pillow was wet with tears every night
-as she strove through long, sleepless hours to
-banish from memory the false, sweet smiles and
-loving dark eyes that haunted her and made so
-hard the bitter task she was essaying.</p>
-
-<p>She was not among the dancers to-day, although
-she was the prettiest girl on board, and<span class="pagenum">[32]</span>
-had many invitations from gallant young men.
-But she chose rather to sit leaning pensively over
-the handrail and gaze with grave blue eyes into
-the foamy depths of the water. Many eyes wandered
-to the pretty figure in the snowy-white dress
-and wide, daisy-trimmed straw hat; many wondered
-why she seemed so sad, but none guessed
-that she was thinking that she would like to be
-at rest under those softly lapping waves, with
-the story of her young life ended here and now.</p>
-
-<p>Ah, how suddenly her despondent mood was
-changed! A shadow came between her and the
-light&mdash;some one sat down beside her and facing
-her. She looked up, startled, and saw&mdash;Norman
-Wylde.</p>
-
-<p>Norman Wylde, pale and impassioned-looking,
-with a determined light in his splendid dark eyes.</p>
-
-<p>As she made a movement to rise, his strong
-hand closed over her weak little white ones, and
-forced her back into her seat.</p>
-
-<p>“Sit still,” he whispered hoarsely, desperately.
-“I must speak to you, and you shall listen.”</p>
-
-<p>She glanced about her with frightened eyes.
-No one was looking. The music was pulsing
-sweetly on the air, and the dancers were keeping<span class="pagenum">[33]</span>
-time with flying feet. She looked up at him, pale
-with emotion.</p>
-
-<p>“You can have nothing to say to me that I
-wish to hear, Mr. Wylde, for I despise you,” she
-answered bitterly.</p>
-
-<p>“That is not true, Pansy, for a month ago you
-owned that you loved me, and you have not unlearned
-your love so soon. Falsehoods have been
-told you, and you knew no better than to believe
-them without giving me a chance to defend myself.
-I have written to you, but my letters came
-back to me unopened. I have dogged your footsteps
-on the streets, but you fled from me, and,
-as a last resort, I came upon this excursion, determined
-to force a hearing from you. Will you
-listen to me? Will you let me explain the
-meaning of that scene with Juliette Ives that
-day?”</p>
-
-<p>She struggled under his detaining hand, anxious
-to escape, yet not wishing to make a scene.</p>
-
-<p>“You were engaged to her, yet you made love
-to me; that is enough for me to know,” she answered,
-turning crimson in her humiliation; but
-her indifference and eagerness to get away only
-made him more determined to conquer her pride.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[34]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Pansy, you are driving me mad,” he cried
-imploringly; then, with sudden passion, he added:
-“Unless you will sit still and listen to what I have
-to say to you, I swear I will drown myself before
-your eyes!”</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[35]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_VI">CHAPTER VI.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">A HAPPY EXCURSION.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Pansy was so startled by the threat of her desperate
-lover that she sank back into her seat without
-a word, her slight form trembling with terror.
-She certainly did not want him to drown himself,
-although he had treated her so cruelly.</p>
-
-<p>So she consented to listen to him. There could
-be no great harm in that, for it would not alter
-her opinion of him at all. He had been false
-to Juliette Ives and false to her. She was quite
-sure that she despised him, although her heart
-was beating furiously as she looked up into the
-pale, impassioned face, with its eager, burning
-dark eyes, that seemed fairly to devour her white,
-startled young face.</p>
-
-<p>Now that he had his chance, he improved it
-in eloquent fashion. He explained everything
-clearly, making her understand that he was not
-the villain they made him out, and that if he were
-to blame in any way it was for breaking loose
-from the bonds that held him to a girl whose<span class="pagenum">[36]</span>
-selfishness and cruelty had changed his love to
-hate.</p>
-
-<p>“If I ever really loved her, which seems doubtful
-to me now,” he said. “It was last winter
-that we became engaged, and, although I admired
-her fair face and enjoyed her society, I swear to
-you, Pansy, that the thought of marrying her
-never crossed my mind until one night in the conservatory,
-when I was, somehow, drawn into asking
-her to marry me. I hardly know how it was,
-unless it was the romance of the moment. You
-remember the lines:</p>
-
-<p class="center">“Azure eyes, golden hair, scented robes&mdash;
-</p>
-
-<p>“They had crazed my hot, foolish brain then.</p>
-
-<div class="center">
-<p class="displayinline">“Ah, the silliest woman can make<br />
-A fool of the wisest of men!”</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>“But they say that you are fickle,” murmured
-Pansy, speaking for the first time.</p>
-
-<p>“It is not true, my little darling. I never really
-fell in love until your sweet face dawned on my
-vision. Then I began to realize that my engagement
-to Juliette was a terrible mistake, and that
-I would be wrong to continue it. But I kept waiting
-from day to day, hoping she would see how<span class="pagenum">[37]</span>
-things were and throw me over herself, as she
-did at last, but only after I had bungled matters
-by telling you too soon of my love.”</p>
-
-<p>Where was Pansy’s bitter resentment now? It
-was melting like snow in the sunshine under his
-eager words. Everything looked so different now
-in the light of his manly, straightforward explanations.</p>
-
-<p>Her sad heart bounded with renewed hope, and
-a leaden weight seemed to be lifted from her
-spirits.</p>
-
-<p>“Now, Pansy, you see that I was not to blame,”
-said her lover eagerly. “You will forgive me,
-will you not, and promise what I was going to
-ask you that day&mdash;that you will be my own little
-wife?”</p>
-
-<p>She blushed brightly, and could not utter a
-word. He took her little hand tenderly in his, and
-whispered:</p>
-
-<p>“‘Silence gives consent.’”</p>
-
-<p>Presently she lifted her little head from his
-breast, where he had drawn it in reckless defiance
-of the whole world, if it had been looking on.
-But, fortunately, no one saw or heeded the pair
-of happy lovers.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[38]</span></p>
-
-<p>“But how can I be your wife?” she whispered,
-in a troubled tone. “Mrs. Ives told Aunt Robbins
-that your family was very rich and grand&mdash;that
-they would never permit you to marry
-me.”</p>
-
-<p>“Never mind, I will bring them around,” he
-replied, with pretended carelessness.</p>
-
-<p>He would not tell her that he had spoken to
-his parents about her, and that both had sternly
-forbidden him to think of marrying one so far
-beneath him in position, birth, and fortune.</p>
-
-<p>“Remember that you are descended from one
-of the first families of Virginia,” exclaimed his
-haughty mother.</p>
-
-<p>“I shall only regret that fact if it is to separate
-me from the girl I love,” he replied angrily,
-and then his father threatened him with disinheritance
-if he did not give up Pansy Laurens.
-He told Pansy nothing of all this, although it lay
-deep in his own heart, like a leaden weight, for
-he knew that he could not support a wife if his
-father threw him over. He had no fortune of
-his own, and, although he had been educated for
-the law, he had only just hung out his “shingle,”
-as he humorously called it. It was folly, madness,<span class="pagenum">[39]</span>
-to woo Pansy Laurens in the face of such
-prospects, and yet he went straight on, hoping
-against hope that something would turn up in
-his favor.</p>
-
-<p>“I will bring them around in time,” he repeated,
-and she, looking up at her splendid lover in worshipful
-adoration, believed him, and bright visions
-of happiness flitted before her mind’s eye. She
-could not help triumphing in her thoughts over
-her insolent rival, Juliette Ives.</p>
-
-<p>Oh, how suddenly the face of all the world was
-changed to the girl who such a little while ago
-was so unhappy that she wished herself dead!
-The beautiful face grew so animated that he was
-charmed and delighted. He told her that she
-had the fairest face he had ever seen, and that
-he would like to be a king, that he might make
-her a queen.</p>
-
-<p>All too soon that happy excursion came to an
-end, but it stood out brightly forever in Pansy’s
-memory. She had been so happy, so blessed; and
-when she parted with her lover it was to look
-forward to secret meetings&mdash;pleasant walks with
-him that would take away the dreariness and loneliness
-of her life. He told her that it would not<span class="pagenum">[40]</span>
-be wrong, and she loved him too well to doubt his
-word.</p>
-
-<p>Several weeks afterward Pansy’s mother was
-quite sick one day with a headache, and the girl
-had to stay home from work. Toward afternoon
-she grew much better, and then Pansy, who was
-sitting near the bed with her sewing, said timidly:</p>
-
-<p>“Mamma, I am afraid that we have all been
-too hard on Norman Wylde. Perhaps he did
-love me and mean to marry me.”</p>
-
-<p>“Nonsense!” the mother exclaimed curtly, and
-then she saw tears in Pansy’s blue eyes, much to
-her dismay, for she thought Pansy had got over
-her fancy for Norman Wylde.</p>
-
-<p>“But, mamma&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“I do not wish to hear anything about that villain,”
-answered the mother sharply, and, although
-the girl had made up her mind to confess everything
-to her mother, she was frightened out of
-it by her harshness; and the next time she saw
-Norman she told him that she had made the effort
-to tell her mother all, but had failed through
-dread of her anger.</p>
-
-<p>They were in the Capitol Square, for it was<span class="pagenum">[41]</span>
-Sunday afternoon, and Pansy had told her
-mother that she was going for a little walk.</p>
-
-<p>Norman Wylde was waiting for her under the
-tree in a secluded part of the grounds, and they
-sat down together on a rustic bench while Pansy,
-half in tears, related her failure with her mother.</p>
-
-<p>“I am sorry, for I have wished so much that I
-might be able to visit you at your own home,”
-said her lover. Then his face brightened, and
-he added:</p>
-
-<p>“But never mind, darling, it does not matter
-so much now, for I am going away from Richmond
-very soon. Do not look so woebegone,
-my little Pansy, for I have good news for you.”</p>
-
-<p>She started and looked up eagerly, wondering
-if his parents had relented.</p>
-
-<p>But it was nothing like that.</p>
-
-<p>In a moment he continued:</p>
-
-<p>“Congratulate me, my dearest. I have at last
-found a client!”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” cried Pansy gladly.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, and a wealthy one, too,” said the young
-man exultantly. “He wishes me to go to London
-upon some law business for him, and if my
-mission proves successful my reputation will be<span class="pagenum">[42]</span>
-made at once, and I shall earn a princely fee,
-also.”</p>
-
-<p>“But to go away so far&mdash;oh!” cried Pansy, in
-unutterable distress.</p>
-
-<p>But her lover laughed.</p>
-
-<p>“Pshaw! Not so very far,” he said lightly,
-then, pressing her little hand warmly, he whispered:
-“We can bear the separation, my darling,
-since, in reality, it only brings us nearer together,
-as, of course I shall be in a position to
-marry then.”</p>
-
-<p>But Pansy had burst into tears. A dark cloud
-had settled over her spirits.</p>
-
-<p>No one was near them, and he bent tenderly
-over her, trying to soothe her girlish distress.</p>
-
-<p>“It is only for a few months, dearest, and we
-will write to each other every week. Then, when
-I come back, we will be happy.”</p>
-
-<p>“I feel as if we were parting forever,” she
-sighed, but he smiled tenderly, and answered:</p>
-
-<p>“No, no, Pansy&mdash;only for a little while.”</p>
-
-<p>But his own heart was heavy, too. He adored
-his lovely little sweetheart, and vague fears assailed
-him lest some one should win her away
-from him during his enforced absence. She was<span class="pagenum">[43]</span>
-so young, so untaught, what if she learned to
-doubt him? What if the enemies that encompassed
-both should turn her heart against him?</p>
-
-<p>A sudden mad resolve came over him. With
-quickened breath, he whispered:</p>
-
-<p>“Pansy, in a week I must go and leave you.
-What if I married you before I went, and left
-my own sweet wife waiting for my return?”</p>
-
-<p>She started and gazed wildly at him.</p>
-
-<p>“They&mdash;they&mdash;would not permit it,” she returned
-breathlessly.</p>
-
-<p>He smiled triumphantly.</p>
-
-<p>“We could run away, my pet,” he said. “For
-instance, suppose when you started to work to-morrow
-morning I should meet you? We could
-take the early morning train for Washington,
-be married, and return by the time the factory
-closes for the day. You could go quietly home
-again, and no one need know our sweet secret
-until I came back to claim you.”</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[44]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_VII">CHAPTER VII.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">ACQUIRING A STEPFATHER.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Mrs. Laurens would have been only too glad
-to listen to her daughter, if she had had any idea
-that Norman Wylde’s intentions toward Pansy
-were strictly honorable. But her brother’s representations
-had so thoroughly alarmed her that
-she deemed it proper to repress the girl with the
-utmost sternness, while at the same time her
-motherly heart yearned tenderly over her and she
-longed for the means of lightening the girl’s hard
-lot in life. And it was for her children’s sake
-more than aught else that the yet young widow
-began to contemplate the idea of a second marriage.</p>
-
-<p>She was still a pretty and attractive woman,
-and for a year past she had had an admirer who
-had pressed his suit more than once, and would
-have been accepted only for the fact that her five
-children were, with one accord, vehemently opposed
-to having a stepfather.</p>
-
-<p>The widow could not help feeling vexed with
-her dictatorial brood.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[45]</span></p>
-
-<p>Her suitor was a groceryman with a fair business,
-and owned a neat brick house, well furnished,
-from which a wife had been carried out
-more than two years ago to her grave.</p>
-
-<p>The widower sadly wanted a housekeeper, and
-it seemed to him that pretty little Mrs. Laurens
-was the proper one to fill the position.</p>
-
-<p>The children were rather a drawback, it was
-true, but he had decided that Pansy could go on
-earning her living at the factory and Willie at
-the store.</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Laurens, all unconscious of her suitor’s
-sordid intentions, wished very much to marry
-Mr. Finley, and at last permitted him to overrule
-her objections and persuade her that her children
-had no right to dictate to her in regard to a second
-marriage. It seemed quite a coincidence that,
-on the very Sunday when Norman Wylde was
-persuading pretty Pansy to a secret marriage, her
-mother was listening to counsel somewhat similar
-from her elderly lover.</p>
-
-<p>And on Monday evening, when Pansy got in,
-rather late, flustered and frightened lest her
-mother should chide her for her tardiness, she
-found the children sitting around, supperless<span class="pagenum">[46]</span>
-and forlorn, and manifestly relieved at her entrance.</p>
-
-<p>“Where is mamma?” she asked, glancing
-around, rather guiltily; and Alice, the eldest of
-the three younger children, replied:</p>
-
-<p>“Mamma had on her gray cashmere dress when
-we got home from school, and she put on her
-bonnet and said she was going out a while, and
-that we must be good children till she got back.”</p>
-
-<p>“Very well; I will get you some supper,” their
-sister answered, relieved to think that her own
-escapade would pass undetected. She bustled
-around with glowing cheeks and curiously bright
-eyes, until, in a few moments, carriage wheels
-were heard pausing in the street before their door,
-and the eager children hastened to open it, tumbling
-over each other in their gleeful excitement.</p>
-
-<p>What was their surprise to find that it was
-their own mother who had come in the carriage.
-She was accompanied by Mr. Finley, who came
-with her into the house and stood by her side with
-a consequential air, while she said, in a half-frightened
-voice:</p>
-
-<p>“Now, don’t get mad, children, for it won’t do<span class="pagenum">[47]</span>
-any good. I was married half an hour ago to
-Mr. Finley.”</p>
-
-<p>Sheer surprise sealed every mouth, and, taking
-advantage of the momentary pause, she continued:</p>
-
-<p>“I did it this way to escape the fuss I knew
-you would all make. I am going with Mr. Finley
-on a wedding tour of a week, to visit his relations
-in North Carolina. I packed my trunk to-day,
-and I depend on you, Pansy, dear, to keep house
-for me while I’m gone. You needn’t go to work
-any more till I come back. Now, come and kiss
-me good-by, my precious children, for the carriage
-is waiting to take me to the train.”</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[48]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_VIII">CHAPTER VIII.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">SECRET VISITS.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Poor Mrs. Laurens! Her anticipation of a
-brighter future for her children very speedily
-dissolved into thin air.</p>
-
-<p>She came back in a week from her wedding
-tour, and moved into her new home, Mr. Finley’s
-nice brick residence on Church Hill; and then
-she hinted broadly to her new-made husband that
-she would like to take Pansy from the factory
-and Willie from the store, and send both to school
-again.</p>
-
-<p>To her grief and dismay, Mr. Finley promptly
-refused her requests.</p>
-
-<p>“I married you, not your family, Mrs. Finley,”
-he said coarsely.</p>
-
-<p>“But I surely expected&mdash;and you certainly let
-me think, sir&mdash;that you would support my children,”
-faltered the bride.</p>
-
-<p>“The three younger children, who are yet too
-young to work for themselves, I expect to board
-and clothe, certainly, but not the two others.
-They must remain at work, clothe themselves,<span class="pagenum">[49]</span>
-and pay a small sum monthly for board,” was
-the stern reply, which so angered the astonished
-woman that she cried out resentfully:</p>
-
-<p>“If I had known this I would not have married
-you!”</p>
-
-<p>“If you married me with mercenary motives
-you deserve to be disappointed,” was the cold reply
-of her liege lord, and, as may be supposed,
-the honeymoon did not proceed very smoothly
-after that.</p>
-
-<p>Willie kept on at the store, the children at
-school, and Pansy at the factory. She had not
-expected anything else, she told her mother, with
-some slight bitterness, when she half apologized
-to her for the necessity of her keeping on at
-work.</p>
-
-<p>She resented with silent jealousy her mother’s
-marriage to this stern, hard man, so unlike her
-own father, who had been so gentle and loving,
-and the breach between her heart and her mother’s
-grew wider still as days passed on and
-brought the cold, dark days of winter.</p>
-
-<p>For one day one of the little children had unwittingly
-let out a secret that Pansy had adjured
-her to keep. It was the fact that Norman Wylde<span class="pagenum">[50]</span>
-had several times visited the house during Mrs.
-Finley’s absence on her wedding tour.</p>
-
-<p>There had been a scene between mother and
-daughter, harsh reproaches and upbraidings, answered
-first by tears, then by girlish resentment.</p>
-
-<p>“I had as much right to deceive you as you had
-to run away and marry that horrid man!” the girl
-cried, with flashing eyes.</p>
-
-<p>Then Mrs. Finley had so far forgotten love
-and dignity as to strike her rebellious daughter&mdash;slapping
-both cheeks soundly, and threatening
-something of the same kind unless Pansy broke
-off with Norman Wylde.</p>
-
-<p>“He is gone to England,” the girl answered
-sullenly, and the mother prayed in secret that
-he might never return, unwitting of the terrible
-interest Pansy had in the absentee.</p>
-
-<p>So the long winter days wore away, and
-Pansy’s companions at the factory began to remark
-a great change in the young girl. Her
-cheeks had grown pale and wan, and her eyes
-dim, as if from constant tears. Her light, dancing
-step had become heavy and dragging, and she
-no longer seemed to care about her personal appearance,
-for her dresses were cheap and ill-fitting,<span class="pagenum">[51]</span>
-and she was always shivering with cold,
-although constantly wrapped in a thick shawl.
-The gay girls at the factory often teased her
-about her chilliness, and told her she must be
-going into a consumption.</p>
-
-<p>Poor child! If they had guessed what was
-aching at her heart they must have pitied her.
-Not a word or line had she received from Norman
-Wylde since the day he had sailed away from
-Richmond, after the one week of delirious happiness
-in which she had been his adored wife.</p>
-
-<p>Faithfully had she kept the secret of her marriage,
-but the time was coming when it must be
-declared, or she would have to bear the burden
-of a bitter shame. Unless Norman Wylde returned
-soon, she would be the mother of a child
-on whom the world would frown in scorn, while
-she, poor girl, would never be able to lift up her
-head again.</p>
-
-<p>Oh, how she repented her disobedience to her
-mother! If she had listened to her she would
-not have come to this terrible pass. Perhaps Norman
-was false to her, perhaps that marriage in
-Washington had been a fraudulent one. She had
-read of such things.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[52]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Heaven pity me, how shall I ever confess the
-truth to my mother?” she sobbed nightly, as she
-lay wide awake in her little room, too wretched
-and frightened to sleep, wondering why her husband
-did not write to her, and praying always
-that Heaven would remove her very soon from
-a world that she had found so dark and cruel.</p>
-
-<p>A dark, terrible day came to her at last&mdash;dark,
-although the sun was shining in the sky, the
-green grass springing, and the gay birds chirping
-in the budding trees, for it was May now, and
-the world was made new again&mdash;she was discharged
-from the factory.</p>
-
-<p>No reason was given, none asked. She understood.</p>
-
-<p>For many days she had seen that her companions
-at work shunned and sneered at her. She
-had had many friends among them once, but now
-not one. She did not blame them. In their place
-she would perhaps have acted the same. There
-is a wide, wide gulf between womanly purity and
-fallen virtue, and they believed that she was a lost
-and ruined creature.</p>
-
-<p>As she went slowly, wearily homeward she
-felt that she could not bear to tell her mother of<span class="pagenum">[53]</span>
-her discharge, for then she would have to confess
-all the rest.</p>
-
-<p>“I could more easily die than confess to her,
-for, oh, she will be so angry, so angry!” she shuddered
-weakly, and a desperate resolve came to
-her.</p>
-
-<p>She would run away and hide herself from all
-who had ever known her.</p>
-
-<p>Perhaps she would die when her trouble came.
-She hoped so, for she was weary of her life.</p>
-
-<p>Out of the money that remained from her
-wages after paying her board, she had saved a
-few dollars. She would take it and go away.
-Mamma would not miss her much. She had
-never seemed the same to her children since she
-married the hard, stern man who kept her at
-work even more slavishly than when she was a
-widow, for he would not hire a servant, and she
-was compelled to do the drudgery of the house
-herself.</p>
-
-<p>Pansy went into the house very quietly, then
-helped her mother with the supper, as was her
-usual custom. She pretended to eat something
-herself, then went up to her own little room,<span class="pagenum">[54]</span>
-eager to make her arrangements for getting
-away.</p>
-
-<p>There was not much to do, only to make up a
-bundle of such clothing as she would need the
-most and could conveniently carry. There were
-some tiny garments, too, clumsily fashioned by
-the poor girl’s unskillful hands; they must not be
-left behind. She tied them all up securely, put
-on her hat, and sat down to wait until the house
-should be still, when she would slip quietly out
-and make her way to the station, where she could
-take the first train to Petersburg.</p>
-
-<p>She felt ill and wretched. Her heart was throbbing
-to suffocation. How dreadful the suspense
-was, how slowly the time crept by!</p>
-
-<p>Thank Heaven, they were all abed at last, and
-she could go now.</p>
-
-<p>She rose up with her bundle, shrinking a little
-at the thought of being alone in the streets by
-night.</p>
-
-<p>At that inauspicious moment Mrs. Finley suddenly
-entered the room.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[55]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_IX">CHAPTER IX.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">THE SECRET DIVULGED.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>At the opening of the door, mother and daughter
-recoiled from each other with smothered cries
-of amazement.</p>
-
-<p>Pansy, who had counted herself so sure of
-escaping, saw herself detected in the act of flight,
-forced to confession, shamed, disgraced; but after
-that one exclamation of alarm she hurriedly determined
-to brave it out, if possible; so, clutching
-her bundle tightly, she assumed an expression of
-calmness that she was very far from feeling.</p>
-
-<p>“Why, Pansy, what does this mean? I expected
-to find you abed,” exclaimed her mother,
-staring in astonishment at the shrinking girl.</p>
-
-<p>“I&mdash;I&mdash;wanted to go out a few minutes,
-mamma, dear. My new calico, you know, I must
-take it to that sewing girl on the next square, for
-I shall need it next week,” stammered Pansy,
-trying to push by her mother; but Mrs. Finley
-suddenly put her back against the door, exclaiming
-suspiciously:</p>
-
-<p>“Going to the dressmaker’s at this time of<span class="pagenum">[56]</span>
-night? I don’t believe it! You are up to some
-mischief, Pansy Laurens! Running away, perhaps,
-and it’s a good thing I caught you in the
-nick of time. Give me that bundle and let me
-look into it.”</p>
-
-<p>There was a brief, short struggle, then Mrs.
-Finley triumphed, and Pansy flung herself, bitterly
-weeping, upon the floor, while her mother
-rummaged through the telltale bundle.</p>
-
-<p>“Aha, just as I thought! Change of clothes&mdash;oh,
-you wicked girl! What is this? Oh-h-h,
-heavens! Pa-a-n-sy Lau-rens, what does this
-mean?”</p>
-
-<p>She was holding up sundry tiny bits of soft
-flannel and linen trimmed with homemade
-crochet edging. Pansy did not lift her head. She
-knew without looking, and she moaned despairingly:</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, mamma, mamma, if only you had let me
-go away in peace you need never have known!”</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>“You say that she will live, doctor? Oh, I
-am so glad! And yet it would be better, perhaps,
-for my poor girl if she had died.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[57]</span></p>
-
-<p>Pansy’s eyelids felt too tired and heavy to lift
-from her eyes, but she seemed to struggle back to
-consciousness and hear those words spoken above
-her head. In that moment, too, came a confused
-memory of the stormy scene with her mother
-when she had been forced to tell all her story
-and to bear such bitter reproach and shame as
-almost maddened her, so that she was glad of
-the unconsciousness that stole upon her, blotting
-out for a few weeks all the bitter past and shameful
-present.</p>
-
-<p>Yes, it had been three weeks since that terrible
-night, and when Pansy heard those words
-spoken over her head in her mother’s voice she
-guessed aright that she had had a dangerous illness.</p>
-
-<p>She opened her blue eyes with an effort, and
-saw the doctor standing with her mother by the
-bed.</p>
-
-<p>“See&mdash;she is conscious at last. She will begin
-to get well very fast now,” he said, and gave her
-an encouraging smile; but Pansy had none to give
-in return.</p>
-
-<p>It seemed to her that she should never smile
-again.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[58]</span></p>
-
-<p>When he had gone, she looked wistfully at
-her mother, without daring to speak, fearing to
-hear again the scathing reproaches with which
-she had been assailed that night; but Mrs. Finley
-had been softened by her daughter’s illness, and
-she spoke to her very kindly:</p>
-
-<p>“My dear, you have been ill three weeks of
-fever, but the doctor thinks you are going to get
-well now.”</p>
-
-<p>Pansy thought of the words she had overheard:</p>
-
-<p>“It would be better, perhaps, for my poor girl
-if she had died.”</p>
-
-<p>She could not speak just yet, but her big,
-mournful blue eyes asked a question that Mrs.
-Finley quickly understood.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, it is all over long ago. It happened that
-night when I kept you from running away. You
-were so ill you never knew.”</p>
-
-<p>She paused, but the big, beseeching blue eyes
-were still asking silent questions, and, putting her
-hand up to her face, Mrs. Finley said, in a broken
-voice:</p>
-
-<p>“Your child only lived one day, Pansy. It
-was better so.”</p>
-
-<p>“Dead!”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[59]</span></p>
-
-<p>That one wailing cry broke the stillness, then
-low and bitter sobs heaved Pansy’s breast. The
-mother who had never seen the face of her child
-was weeping over its death.</p>
-
-<p>“It was better so, my dear, better so. Had it
-lived it could but have added to your disgrace,”
-Mrs. Finley kept repeating, and at last the poor
-girl, stung by the words, answered petulantly:</p>
-
-<p>“How can you talk of disgrace? I told you
-that I was the wife of Norman Wylde.”</p>
-
-<p>“You were deceived, my poor child,” answered
-her mother sadly.</p>
-
-<p>“Deceived!”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, Pansy. I told Mr. Finley everything.
-He went to Washington to find out the truth.
-My poor girl, that villain deceived you. There
-was no license taken out; there was no minister
-of the name you told me, and you had no marriage
-certificate. By your confidence in a villain against
-whom we all warned you, you have ruined yourself
-and brought disgrace upon your relations.”</p>
-
-<p>There was a long, long pause of utter consternation,
-then the stricken girl moaned pitifully:</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, mamma, why did you nurse me back to
-life? You should have let me die.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[60]</span></p>
-
-<p>One week later Pansy was sitting up, a pale
-little ghost of the bright, pretty girl who, just a
-year ago, had gone home with Uncle Robbins to
-find so cruel a fate. She had been watching the
-sun set, and turned with heavy, listless eyes when
-her mother entered with a slice of toast and some
-tea for her supper.</p>
-
-<p>“Mamma, will you tell me why you always lock
-my door on the outside? Are you afraid that I
-will run away?” she asked sadly.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, my dear, do not be frightened, but&mdash;I am
-afraid of your brother.”</p>
-
-<p>“Mamma&mdash;of Willie?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, he is sixteen now, you know&mdash;old enough
-to feel keenly the disgrace that has fallen on the
-family. He is so angry, and he has been egged
-on, I know, by Mr. Finley. I&mdash;I&mdash;hope he will
-come to his senses some time,” sighing.</p>
-
-<p>“Mamma, you said you were afraid. You
-locked the door whenever you went out. Why?”
-panted Pansy, with dilated eyes; and the wretched
-mother, leaning over her wretched child, whispered
-plaintively:</p>
-
-<p>“Try to forgive him, my poor child, for he is
-half crazed now, and his passionate boyish temper<span class="pagenum">[61]</span>
-all ablaze with anger. Poor lad! The disgrace
-has blighted all his future, he says, and he
-has sworn revenge.”</p>
-
-<p>“Revenge&mdash;on me?” questioned Pansy faintly.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, on you. He has got hold of a pistol
-somehow, and he is no longer very steady at his
-work. I fear he drinks some. He vows he will
-shoot you on sight.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, my Heaven!”</p>
-
-<p>“But do not be frightened, dear. It is nothing
-but boyish bluster, I am sure. Only I am
-afraid of him just yet, while the drink fires his
-blood. So it is better to keep your room a while.”</p>
-
-<p>“Every one knows, then, mamma?” with a
-burning blush.</p>
-
-<p>“We could not keep it a secret. Every one
-suspected you,” sighed the unhappy woman,
-bursting into a flood of tears.</p>
-
-<p>But she wept more bitterly still next morning,
-for, in spite of the locked door, Pansy was missing,
-and a tiny note on her pillow told the story:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>Bless you, my faithful mamma, and help you to forgive
-me for my willful ways that caused you so much sorrow.
-Tell Willie not to drink any more. I will never come back,
-never disgrace him again.</p>
-
-<p class="ir1"><span class="smcap">Unhappy Pansy.</span></p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[62]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_X">CHAPTER X.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">A HEARTSICK FUGITIVE.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Pansy Laurens meant to keep her word when
-she wrote to her mother that she would never
-come back. She felt that this would be best.</p>
-
-<p>If she remained at home the shadow of her
-deep disgrace would be reflected on her family.
-If she went away people would forget it in time.</p>
-
-<p>“I should like for them to think that I am dead.
-Then mamma would not feel any further anxiety
-over my fate. Her mind would be easy. She
-would feel that I was at rest,” she thought, and
-it was this that led her to take away with her a
-small bundle of clothing marked with her name,
-and throw it into the river. “It will be found by
-some one, and then they will say that I drowned
-myself. It will be a great relief to Willie,” she
-said to herself, with sorrowful satisfaction, and
-with a bravery born of despair, she escaped from
-her room by means of a rope plaited of torn
-sheets.</p>
-
-<p>Her hands were torn and bleeding when she<span class="pagenum">[63]</span>
-reached the bottom, but, without a murmur, she
-took up the bundle she had thrown down, and
-made her way to Libby Hill, that beautiful eminence
-overlooking the historic James River. She
-sat down there a while to rest in the soft gleam
-of the summer moonlight, and to think of the
-times when she had met Norman Wylde there
-and wandered with him through the beautiful
-park, while her young heart thrilled with love,
-and hope.</p>
-
-<p>“Alas, alas! he was but amusing himself with
-the humble working girl; he but plucked the
-flower of my love to trample it under his feet,”
-she murmured, in bitterest despair; and presently
-she went through the park and past the line of
-stately houses that guarded it on the left side,
-and dragged herself down the steep declivity to
-the river.</p>
-
-<p>How beautiful, how silvery white it gleamed
-in the clear moonlight as it pursued its winding
-course toward Chesapeake Bay. The factory
-girl, whose soul was deeply imbued with a love
-of the beautiful, gazed with a sort of solemn rapture
-on the magnificent scene outspread before
-her, and as she flung her little bundle into the<span class="pagenum">[64]</span>
-glittering waves, lifted her sad eyes to heaven,
-murmuring, in a tone of awe:</p>
-
-<p>“I am tempted to spring into those bright
-waves and end all my sorrow.”</p>
-
-<p>Then she saw a dark form moving toward her
-at some little distance, and fled away, fearing lest
-she should be arrested by a policeman, for it was
-nearing midnight, and she knew that it would
-seem strange to see a woman alone in the streets,
-deserted as they were by almost every one.</p>
-
-<p>She went along slyly and quietly, like a fugitive
-fleeing from justice, over the long distance&mdash;two
-miles and more&mdash;that intervened between her and
-the railway station, at which she meant to take a
-train for the West.</p>
-
-<p>How strange it seemed to be stealing along
-Main Street like a shadow, frightened at the glare
-of the street lamps, lest they should reveal her
-hurrying form to some alert policeman. She was
-glad when she reached Seventeenth Street
-Market, and darted inside of it, gliding nervously
-along between the brick stalls as far as they went,
-and coming out at last almost at the end of her
-journey, for soon Broad Street was gained, and
-then, a little later, the depot.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[65]</span></p>
-
-<p>There was a midnight train making up for the
-West. She hurried to the ticket office and bought
-a ticket for Cincinnati.</p>
-
-<p>“I shall be sure to find work in a great big
-city like that,” she thought, as she took her place
-in a car and sank wearily into a seat, bursting
-into tears as the whistle blew and the train rushed
-out of the station, at the thought that she was
-leaving behind her forever mother, home, and
-native city&mdash;dear old Richmond, on its green,
-smiling hills&mdash;the place where she was born, and
-where she had spent her eighteen years of life.</p>
-
-<p>She had never known how well she loved Richmond
-until she felt herself leaving it forever behind
-her, with all the associations so dear to her
-heart. Tears blinded her beautiful eyes, and a
-sort of passionate hatred for the lover who had
-wrought her so much woe swelled her young
-heart.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, did he think of all this when he betrayed
-me?” she wondered bitterly, and a yearning for
-revenge came to her, a bitter longing to pay him
-back in his own coin for all that she was suffering
-now.</p>
-
-<p>“Heaven will send me the chance, and I will<span class="pagenum">[66]</span>
-wring his heart as he has tortured mine,” she
-vowed to herself, with eyes that flashed through
-her tears, and just then the conductor came along
-to take up the tickets.</p>
-
-<p>The car was not crowded, and he had time to
-observe how Pansy’s face was all wet with tears,
-and how nervously her little hand shook when
-she presented her ticket.</p>
-
-<p>“Are you ill, miss?” he asked politely. “Can
-I do anything for you?”</p>
-
-<p>“No, I am not ill; there is nothing I wish, thank
-you,” she answered; but, as she saw how surprised
-he looked, she added: “I was only crying
-because I am leaving my native city forever, to
-go among strangers. I am an orphan, and must
-seek work in the West.”</p>
-
-<p>“I should think you could certainly find work
-in Richmond,” he said; but she shook her head
-and put her hand to her white throat in such a
-pathetic way that he knew she was choked with
-tears.</p>
-
-<p>He turned away with a heart full of pity, thinking
-of his own pretty daughter at home, and hoping
-that she might never come to this. The next<span class="pagenum">[67]</span>
-day he heard that a beautiful young working girl
-of Richmond had drowned herself in the James
-River, and his thoughts involuntarily flew to the
-one who had left Richmond last night, although
-he did not think of connecting the two together,
-save as sisters in sorrow.</p>
-
-<p>“There was a tragedy of woe in the beautiful
-face of that orphan girl,” he thought often, for
-the memory of her grief did not fade from his
-mind for some time.</p>
-
-<p>Pansy was touched by his manly sympathy,
-but she pretended not to notice it. She did not
-want him to find out who she was, or anything
-about her, lest it should interfere with the success
-of her plan for making everybody believe she was
-dead.</p>
-
-<p>But, oh, that long, weary night in which she
-was whirled away so rapidly from all that she
-had ever known&mdash;it would stay in her memory
-forever, with all its pain and sadness.</p>
-
-<p>When they reached Staunton, quite a large
-crowd came in, and there was another conductor,
-who had so many tickets to take up that he did
-not pay much attention to the sad young traveler
-who seemed so lonely and friendless, and who at<span class="pagenum">[68]</span>
-last fell into a deep sleep of exhaustion, and did
-not awaken for many hours afterward&mdash;not, in
-fact, until a terrible railroad collision near Louisville,
-Kentucky, derailed the train and sent many
-of the passengers into their last long sleep.</p>
-
-<p>Pansy was rudely awakened by the shock and
-jar, and found herself fastened down beneath
-some timbers which had, fortunately, formed a
-sort of arch over her form, holding her down,
-yet still protecting her, so that she was quite unhurt,
-although so frightened that she fainted dead
-away at hearing the shrieks of the wounded and
-dying all around her.</p>
-
-<p>Busy, helpful hands were soon at work, and
-within an hour she was released from her uncomfortable
-position. They carried her out into
-a grassy field, where the survivors of the accident
-were sitting around in the burning sunshine.
-Pansy was struck by one lady, who looked as if
-she were far gone in consumption, and who was
-sobbing bitterly over the death of her maid.</p>
-
-<p>“I was quite alone but for her, and we were
-traveling to California for my health,” she said.
-“Oh, I know not what to do! I am too weak and
-ill to travel alone.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[69]</span></p>
-
-<p>Pansy went up to the poor invalid, and said
-timidly:</p>
-
-<p>“Lady, I am an orphan, and I was going to
-Cincinnati to seek for work. Perhaps you would
-be willing to take me in the place of your maid
-that was killed. I would try very hard to please
-you.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, thank you, thank you, my child! I am
-only too glad to get some one to go on with me,”
-cried the invalid, eagerly accepting the offer.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[70]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XI">CHAPTER XI.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">SHELTERING ARMS.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Pansy Laurens had found that “friend in need”
-who is “a friend, indeed,” when she became acquainted
-with Mrs. Beach, the invalid lady. She
-took a deep, kindly interest in the lonely, friendless
-girl, and during the few days when they
-stayed over at Louisville to recover from the
-shock of the accident mastered much of her story.</p>
-
-<p>She was surprised when she learned that the
-lovely girl was of the working classes, for she
-had fancied that Pansy’s wonderful beauty had
-descended from aristocratic, high-bred parentage,
-but Pansy proudly undeceived her.</p>
-
-<p>“My father was a mechanic, and my grandfather
-was a farmer. My mother was a farmer’s
-daughter, too, so we were only plain, hard-working
-people. I left the public school where I was
-educated as soon as my father died, and worked
-in a tobacco factory three years.”</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Beach, who was a Southerner, and “a born
-aristocrat,” looked honestly surprised, and spoke
-out frankly her astonishment.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[71]</span></p>
-
-<p>“I thought,” she said, “that the girls employed
-in the tobacco factories of the South were of a
-very low and ignorant class, indeed. I have received
-that impression somehow.”</p>
-
-<p>Pansy thought of Juliette Ives and the scorn
-she had displayed toward her, and answered bitterly:</p>
-
-<p>“Many have thought the same, Mrs. Beach;
-but in the three years I spent in a tobacco factory
-I met many girls as beautiful, as refined, and as
-good as are met with in the highest circles of
-what is called good society. I cannot believe that
-nobility is only to be met with in the ranks of
-the rich and well-born. The good and bad are
-met with in all classes.”</p>
-
-<p>“That is quite true, my child,” said the lady, to
-whom Pansy had not confided the story of her
-cruel experience among the aristocrats of her native
-city. She gazed admiringly at the flushed
-face of the excited girl, and added: “I do not
-wish to flatter you, my dear girl, but I will say
-frankly that both your mind and person fit you
-to adorn the highest society. It would be an injustice
-to you to lower you to the position of my
-personal attendant; therefore you shall remain<span class="pagenum">[72]</span>
-with me as my companion, and as soon as we
-reach San Diego, my destination, I will try to
-secure some elderly woman as my maid.”</p>
-
-<p>Pansy’s tears of gratitude amply thanked the
-noble woman for her generous words, and she
-sighed to think that she dared not confide to her
-the whole story of her life.</p>
-
-<p>But she could not bring herself to repeat to a
-stranger, however kindly, the sorrows of her unfortunate
-love affair.</p>
-
-<p>“And, then, I dare not, for she would perhaps
-spurn me from her presence, deeming me wicked
-where I was only unfortunate,” she thought
-shrinkingly.</p>
-
-<p>She had told Mrs. Beach that her name was
-Pansy Wilcox, and that she had left home because
-her mother had married a man who was
-unkind to his stepchildren. Mrs. Beach thought
-the reason was a fair one, and did not blame the
-young girl much. She had some reason for knowing
-how unpleasant a girl’s home could be made
-under such circumstances.</p>
-
-<p>They safely reached San Diego, one of the
-most beautiful and romantic places in California,<span class="pagenum">[73]</span>
-and for a while Pansy was so enchanted with her
-new home and its Italian-like surroundings that
-she ceased to grieve for her native Richmond
-and the dear ones left behind. A new life opened
-before her: one of comparative ease and luxury,
-compared to what she had known, for with the
-gentle invalid lady her duties as companion were
-usually light and pleasant. Mrs. Beach had soon
-found a clever maid, and, as she rented a small
-furnished cottage near the beautiful bay of San
-Diego, and hired two Chinese servants, life began
-to flow on very smoothly and fairly to those
-who made up her household.</p>
-
-<p>She had told Pansy very little about herself,
-save that she was a widow with a fair income
-that would cease at her death.</p>
-
-<p>“I have no relatives save a distant one of my
-husband, who will, perhaps, be glad when I die,
-as he will then inherit the property,” she said,
-adding: “But I mean to live as long as I can,
-and this charming climate makes me feel almost
-as if I am going to get well again.”</p>
-
-<p>“Heaven grant you may,” exclaimed Pansy,
-but when she looked at the wan cheeks and sunken
-eyes of the hapless lady it seemed to her that Mrs.<span class="pagenum">[74]</span>
-Beach could not live much longer, even in this
-charming climate.</p>
-
-<p>“And when she dies I shall be thrown homeless
-upon the world again,” she thought, with a shudder
-of fear and terror.</p>
-
-<p>Perhaps Mrs. Beach thought of this, too, for
-she took a deep interest in her fair young companion.
-One day she said gravely to Pansy:</p>
-
-<p>“Do you ever expect to marry, Pansy?”</p>
-
-<p>Pansy grew crimson first, then deadly pale.</p>
-
-<p>“No, never. I hate men!” she exclaimed, with
-such energy that Mrs. Beach, a keen student of
-human nature, exclaimed:</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, then, you have had a lover?”</p>
-
-<p>Pansy saw that she had betrayed herself by
-her vehemence, and, hanging her head bashful
-she sighed:</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, I had a lover once, and he proved false
-to me. No one else shall ever make love to me
-again.”</p>
-
-<p>“Poor child!” said the lady compassionately.
-She remained silent a few moments, then said:
-“I hope you will not think me a meddlesome old
-lady, Pansy, but I have been thinking of your<span class="pagenum">[75]</span>
-future. If I should die, what would become of
-you?”</p>
-
-<p>Pansy burst into passionate tears. “I should
-never find such a noble friend again,” she sobbed.</p>
-
-<p>“I have been thinking of that,” said Mrs.
-Beach, laying her thin hand gently on the bowed
-head. “Your future has been on my mind for
-some time. You ought to be learning something
-by which you could support yourself. There are
-many avenues of support open to women now.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, I know it, but I have had no chance to
-learn anything. Dear, noble friend, if only you
-could suggest something!” cried Pansy gratefully.</p>
-
-<p>“I will think over it a few days, and then advise
-you,” answered Mrs. Beach gravely.</p>
-
-<p>And at the end of a week she told Pansy that
-she believed that typewriting would prove a remunerative
-business for a young girl.</p>
-
-<p>“I will purchase a good machine, and you shall
-learn,” she said kindly.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, how kind you are to me! I wish I knew
-how to thank you for all your goodness,” cried
-the poor girl, with tears of gratitude.</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Beach smiled and answered:</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[76]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Only stay with me while I live, Pansy, and I
-shall be well rewarded. After all, my kindness
-to you is only a species of selfishness, for I wish
-to have you with me. It brightens my lonely life
-to have the beautiful face of a young girl about
-me all the time.”</p>
-
-<p>They stayed in San Diego a year, and every
-month made the exquisite place more dear to
-them. Pansy worked industriously at her typewriting
-machine, and became quite proficient; but
-she did not neglect her kind benefactress.</p>
-
-<p>It was both her duty and her pleasure to add
-as much of happiness as possible to the life of the
-suffering invalid. In doing so she reaped the rich
-reward of those who try to lighten the sorrows
-of others, for she had less time to think of her
-own, and in consequence was far less unhappy.</p>
-
-<p>There was not a day in which she did not thank
-Heaven for providing such a safe haven for her
-when she had fled, frightened and despairing,
-from her old home; not a day in which she did
-not pray for the dear ones she had left behind.
-Most bitterly she repented the willfulness that had
-led to all her sorrow.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[77]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Had I only minded my mother, no harm would
-have come to me,” she sighed over and over.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly over the calm, peaceful life they were
-leading in the little cottage home fell a dark
-shadow.</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Beach had been failing for some time,
-and at last it became only too evident to Pansy
-and the few friends they had made in San Diego
-that her days were numbered. The invalid herself
-was not ignorant of the fact, for after an
-interview with her physician one day she sent
-for Pansy and gently broke the sad tidings that
-she had, in all probability, but a few weeks to
-live.</p>
-
-<p>“Do not grieve, my dear. You know I have
-been prepared for this some time,” she said, with
-sweet resignation. “It only remains now for me
-to make my arrangements for the end.”</p>
-
-<p>Pansy’s irrepressible sobs drowned her voice
-for a while, but when the agitated girl had grown
-calmer she continued:</p>
-
-<p>“I have telegraphed for my husband’s cousin,
-who will inherit the fortune whose income I am
-using, to come at once to San Diego; and he will
-attend to all the final arrangements. I will be<span class="pagenum">[78]</span>
-buried here, as my husband was lost at sea many
-years ago, and it matters not to me where my
-ashes repose, as they can never rest beside his. I
-wish, my dear girl, that I had a fortune to leave
-you, more especially as the man who will inherit
-mine does not need it, being already very wealthy.
-But my husband’s wealth, as I never bore him
-any children, reverts by his will to his own
-family.”</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[79]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XII">CHAPTER XII.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">BEGINNING OVER AGAIN.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Colonel Falconer, the man whose coming was
-so anxiously expected by Mrs. Beach, arrived in
-ten days at San Diego; but the invalid had died
-just a few hours before his arrival.</p>
-
-<p>Poor Pansy was once more alone in the world,
-for Colonel Falconer, though full of pity and
-sympathy for the friendless girl, could not be to
-her such a friend as he wished. He was fifty
-years old, and a bachelor, therefore if he had
-offered to divide with her the fortune that had
-come to him by Mrs. Beach’s death the world
-would have caviled.</p>
-
-<p>He was a typical Virginian, generous and true-hearted,
-and he grieved that such should be the
-case, for he would willingly have made ample
-provision for the support of the lovely, penniless
-girl who had been so dear to his deceased relative.</p>
-
-<p>“It is a deuced shame that my hands are tied
-in this way. I feel mean, taking all that money
-and seeing that beautiful little creature go out to<span class="pagenum">[80]</span>
-earn her own living,” he said to himself the day
-after the funeral, when Pansy had come to him
-to tell him, with a pale, sad little face, that she
-had been so fortunate as to be offered a place in
-a real-estate office as a typewriter.</p>
-
-<p>“I have accepted the place, and will enter on
-my duties to-morrow,” she said simply; and then
-he drew forward a chair, and begged her to be
-seated.</p>
-
-<p>“It seems very sad that you should be left alone
-like this. Have you no relations, no friends, Miss
-Wilcox?”</p>
-
-<p>Pansy flushed warmly, then grew pale again,
-and, after a moment’s hesitancy, said:</p>
-
-<p>“I came from Louisville to this place with Mrs.
-Beach because I wished to work for myself. My
-father was dead, my mother had married again,
-and my stepfather was not kind to me. I prefer
-to remain in California alone, rather than to return
-to my own home.”</p>
-
-<p>“She is a plucky little thing,” thought the colonel
-admiringly, and he answered, aloud:</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know but what you’re right, Miss Wilcox,
-and I admire your independence. I want
-you to promise one thing: You will let me be your<span class="pagenum">[81]</span>
-friend? I shall remain in San Diego some time
-yet, and if you will permit me to call on you sometimes
-I shall be very glad.”</p>
-
-<p>He did not mean to lose sight of her if he could
-help it, for he had a fancy that if Mrs. Beach
-had lived to see him again she would have commended
-her protégée to his care.</p>
-
-<p>“Hang it all, if I were twenty years younger
-I’d marry her if she would have me,” he said to
-himself, when she had gone out, after giving her
-consent to his request and telling him where she
-should go to board. It was at a very simple, unpretentious
-place, for in San Diego, as in all of
-the rapidly growing towns of southern California,
-board and lodging were very high. It would take
-all of her salary to support her even in a simple
-fashion.</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Falconer knew this well, and his heart
-ached for the brave, beautiful girl who had made
-a stronger impression on him than any woman he
-had ever met. When she bade him good-by that
-afternoon and went away with Mrs. Beach’s
-maid, who was also rendered homeless by the
-death of her mistress, he felt a strangely tender
-yearning to take the beautiful girl in his arms and<span class="pagenum">[82]</span>
-kiss away the tears that he saw trembling on her
-long, curling lashes.</p>
-
-<p>He retained the Chinese servants, and stayed
-on at the cottage during the summer, and in that
-time he managed to see a great deal of beautiful
-little Pansy, although he knew that it was unwise,
-for he soon found that his ardent admiration
-for the lovely girl was deepening into love.</p>
-
-<p>If he had been younger he would have proposed
-to marry her; but it seemed to him that
-Pansy would only laugh at the idea of having such
-an old fellow for a husband.</p>
-
-<p>He did not know how Pansy was touched by
-his kindness and friendship. She was very lonely,
-for the few acquaintances she had made during
-Mrs. Beach’s life did not trouble themselves about
-her now that she was poor and friendless. They
-were rich, fashionable people, too, who had no
-time, if they had had the inclination, to look after
-any one not in society. They were very gracious
-to Colonel Falconer, but that little typewriter
-girl to whom he was so attentive&mdash;that was altogether
-different. Some there were who hinted to
-him that it was a mistake on his part to show her
-so much kindness. It would spoil her for her<span class="pagenum">[83]</span>
-humbler lot, awaken in her aspirations for higher
-things than she could reasonably expect.</p>
-
-<p>They set Colonel Falconer thinking, and the
-upshot of it was that he went away to San Francisco
-for several months. He did not go to bid
-Pansy good-by, but simply sent her a note of farewell,
-saying that he would write her sometimes
-and requesting the favor of a reply.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, how I miss him! It was like having a
-kind elder brother,” Pansy sighed to herself, and
-now the evenings and Sundays grew very lonely,
-indeed.</p>
-
-<p>There were no more pleasant drives Sunday
-afternoons, spinning over the sands past the glittering
-bay; no more books, nor fruits and flowers.
-There was a young clerk in the office where
-she worked who would have made love to her if
-she would have noticed him, but she never did,
-and in her loneliness her thoughts went back
-more and more to her lost love and her dead past.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[84]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XIII">CHAPTER XIII.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">IN A BOARDING HOUSE.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Perhaps it was the brooding over the past and
-the pain and remorse that wore upon Pansy until
-she fell ill and had that long fever, although some
-of the little household declared that it was something
-she had read in a Southern paper.</p>
-
-<p>When Colonel Falconer, who had grown uneasy
-because his last letter to Pansy was not answered,
-came suddenly back to San Diego, he
-found that the girl had been ill of a brain fever
-for several weeks.</p>
-
-<p>The mistress of the boarding house, who had
-been very kind to the sick girl, explained everything
-as well as she could:</p>
-
-<p>“She had been looking droopy an’ peaked some
-time, an’ her appetite no better than a baby’s,
-when she kem inter the parlor one Sunday after
-church, an’ set down to read. All at once she
-screamed out, an’ fell in a faint. She had this
-paper in her hand, an’ I’ll allus believe she read
-something in it that was bad news to her. But<span class="pagenum">[85]</span>
-I’ve read it through an’ through, and I can’t guess
-what ’tis. Maybe you kin.”</p>
-
-<p>She put the newspaper in his hand&mdash;one almost
-two months old. It was a daily paper, published
-at Richmond, Virginia.</p>
-
-<p>“I do not think anything in this could have
-affected her. She was from Kentucky. Where
-did she get this?” he asked.</p>
-
-<p>“Some transient boarder must have left it, I
-think. It had been laying around on the parlor
-table several days when she picked it up.”</p>
-
-<p>He went over the paper carefully&mdash;the deaths,
-the marriages&mdash;but he saw nothing about any one
-by the name of Wilcox. There was a society
-column, and he went over that, too, although he
-did not expect to find anything relating to her,
-for she had been very careful to impress upon
-his mind, with a sort of proud humility, that she
-belonged to the humble walks of life.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah!” he exclaimed suddenly.</p>
-
-<p>“You’ve found it?” exclaimed Mrs. Scruggs.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, no, nothing relating to her,” he answered
-quickly.</p>
-
-<p>The paragraph that had surprised him was
-this:</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[86]</span></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>Norman Wylde has returned from his long sojourn
-abroad, and his much-talked-of marriage to the beautiful
-Miss Ives will take place very soon.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Major Falconer knew both parties very well,
-but he had never spoken of them to Pansy. He
-forgot both almost immediately in his anxiety
-over the sick girl.</p>
-
-<p>“Mrs. Scruggs, I wonder if I might see her?
-I am a very old friend,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“She is sitting up a little while to-day. I know
-she would be glad to see you,” was the answer,
-and she immediately conducted him to Pansy’s
-room.</p>
-
-<p>The sick girl was so surprised that she uttered
-a cry of joy. Her blue eyes lighted with pleasure.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, I am so glad!” she exclaimed impulsively.</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Scruggs went quietly out. He knelt down
-by her side and kissed her little hands with the
-ardor of a younger lover.</p>
-
-<p>Yes, all his prudent resolves had melted before
-his joy at seeing her again, and his pity for her
-suffering. Gently, so as not to startle her from
-him, he told her of his love, and begged her to
-be his wife.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[87]</span></p>
-
-<p>“I am old enough to be your father, I know;
-but my heart is young, and, then, I could take
-such good care of you, my darling,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, you are too good to me, and I&mdash;I could
-not love you enough,” she faltered.</p>
-
-<p>“I would teach you to love me,” he answered.
-And she had such a deep regard for him that it
-seemed to her that it would be very easy to learn
-that lesson.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[88]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XIV">CHAPTER XIV.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">A SECOND MARRIAGE.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>San Diego had a sensation when Colonel Falconer,
-the rich Southerner, married the beautiful
-young typewriter within a few days after his
-return from San Francisco.</p>
-
-<p>He had pleaded for an early marriage, and she,
-after some hesitancy, had consented.</p>
-
-<p>“There is no one whose consent I have to ask,
-I suppose?” he said; and, after a moment’s silence,
-she answered:</p>
-
-<p>“No, there is no one. I have reason to think
-that my mother believes me dead. I have no
-wish to undeceive her.”</p>
-
-<p>“But does not that seem cruel?” he asked, and
-tears started to her eyes as she answered bitterly:</p>
-
-<p>“She has her new husband and other children
-to comfort her for my loss.”</p>
-
-<p>He said no more on the subject, and preparations
-were made for a speedy marriage. He declared
-that that would be best, and Pansy could
-not gainsay the assertion. Her small stock of<span class="pagenum">[89]</span>
-money had been exhausted during her illness, and
-she was still too weak to go back to work.</p>
-
-<p>So when her lover declared that they would
-be married quietly this week, and go at once upon
-a wedding tour abroad, she did not make any objection
-to the plan. She was glad to have her
-way smoothed out before her by his kindly, generous
-hand.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, how good he is to me&mdash;how noble! I wish
-that I could love him more in return for all his
-goodness,” she thought, sadly contrasting her
-gentle, quiet affection for this good man with
-the passionate love she had felt for one less
-worthy.</p>
-
-<p>“Perhaps even now he is the husband of
-haughty Juliette Ives,” she thought, and grew
-cold and pale at the fancy.</p>
-
-<p>She believed that she hated Norman Wylde,
-and she trusted that she might never meet him
-on earth again. To Colonel Falconer she gave
-the utmost respect, and a placid, gentle affection
-utterly unlike that ardent passion which she had
-outlived and outworn, as she believed, in her
-heart.</p>
-
-<p>She thought it a little strange that he never<span class="pagenum">[90]</span>
-mentioned any of his relatives, and, the day before
-they were married, she said:</p>
-
-<p>“Are you sure that none of your grand relatives
-will object to your marrying a poor little
-typewriter girl?”</p>
-
-<p>To her surprise, he started and looked visibly
-embarrassed.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, I made a clever guess!” she exclaimed,
-with faint sarcasm, and then he recovered himself.</p>
-
-<p>“No&mdash;yes,” he stammered, and then added: “I
-have no near relatives, Pansy, except a widowed
-sister. She has one child&mdash;a beautiful daughter,
-who has counted confidently on being my heiress.
-I think they both will feel disappointed at hearing
-of my marriage, but they have no right to
-do so. My sister has a neat little fortune of her
-own, and her daughter is soon to marry a rich
-man.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then you have not written to ask their consent?”
-Pansy asked, with unconscious bitterness,
-feeling an unaccountable antagonism to those two
-unknown ones.</p>
-
-<p>“Certainly not,” Colonel Falconer answered,
-with some surprise, and continued: “I’m ashamed<span class="pagenum">[91]</span>
-to confess that I don’t pretend to keep up any
-correspondence with my sister. I have written
-her once since I came to San Diego. She has not
-answered yet, so I shall not take the trouble to
-announce my marriage to her until we are safe
-on the other side of the Atlantic. She will be
-glad for such bad news to be delayed,” laughing
-grimly.</p>
-
-<p>Afterward it seemed strange to her that she
-had never thought of asking the names of these
-people, who would soon be related to her so closely
-by her marriage with Colonel Falconer. And it
-seemed equally strange that he did not tell her
-without the asking. There was a fate in it, she
-told herself, when she came to know, for if she
-had heard those two names she would never have
-married Colonel Falconer, and run the risk of
-again meeting Norman Wylde.</p>
-
-<p>The next day they were married quietly at
-church, but there were quite a number of people
-present, for the affair had become known through
-the gossip of the delighted Mrs. Scruggs. Pansy
-remembered with a bitter thrill that ceremony
-in Washington, which had made her so blindly
-happy.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[92]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Poor, deluded fool that I was!” she sighed,
-thinking how much sadder and wiser she had
-grown since then, for now she was past twenty,
-although she looked so fair and girlish no one
-would have thought she was more than sixteen.</p>
-
-<p>They left San Diego directly, and went abroad.
-They spent a year in travel, and in that time
-Pansy learned much and improved much. The
-clouds passed from her beautiful face, and she
-was tranquilly happy with her husband, save
-when one blighting memory intervened. It was
-the thought of Norman Wylde and the dark episode
-in her life that she had concealed from Colonel
-Falconer.</p>
-
-<p>“He believes me pure and good; he has the
-greatest confidence in my goodness; yet all the
-while I am hiding from him a dark secret which
-I dare not disclose. Heaven grant he may never
-find out the truth, for it would be so hard for
-me to convince him that I was innocent, although
-so foully wronged,” she thought often, when the
-unfailing kindness of her husband touched her
-with ardent admiration for his noble nature and
-awakened self-reproach within her sensitive
-mind.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[93]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XV">CHAPTER XV.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">STARTLING NEWS.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Colonel Falconer had written, quite six months
-before, to his relatives, apprising them of his marriage
-to a beautiful young girl in California, but
-apparently they did not have any congratulations
-to offer him, or they were deeply offended, for no
-reply came to his letter.</p>
-
-<p>“I am glad that they can afford to be so independent,”
-he thought, with pique and contempt
-commingled.</p>
-
-<p>He felt quite sure that they were indignant at
-the marriage that deprived his niece of her anticipations
-of being his heiress, and he resented the
-way in which they had treated him.</p>
-
-<p>“Not even to wish me joy, after all the kindness
-they have received from me,” he said bitterly;
-and, dismissing them from his thoughts,
-he gave all his attention to his lovely young bride,
-who was so grateful for his love, and who seemed
-to return it in a shy, gentle fashion that was very
-pleasing.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[94]</span></p>
-
-<p>They had not given a thought to returning
-home yet, when one morning he found in his
-morning’s mail an American letter, broadly edged
-with black. He turned pale as he caught it up,
-exclaiming:</p>
-
-<p>“Juliette’s handwriting! My sister must be
-dead!”</p>
-
-<p>And, tearing it open, he ran his eyes hastily
-over the black-edged sheet.</p>
-
-<p>Pansy watched him with startled eyes. That
-name Juliette had touched an unpleasant chord
-in her memory.</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Falconer heaved a long sigh, and placed
-the letter in her hands.</p>
-
-<p>Pansy, womanlike, read the name at the end
-first. It was traced in ornate characters, but it
-stung her like a serpent’s fang:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p class="center">Your unhappy niece,<br />
-<span class="smcap" style="padding-left:10em">Juliette Ives</span>.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>She glanced at the top of the sheet, and read:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap" style="padding-left:15em">Richmond</span>, Virginia.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Colonel Falconer had walked to the window of
-their pretty breakfast room, and was looking out&mdash;perhaps
-to hide a moisture in his eyes.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[95]</span></p>
-
-<p>He did not see how pale grew the beautiful face
-of his young wife, nor how her jeweled hands
-trembled as they held the letter before her eyes.
-She read on, with a sinking heart:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Dear Uncle</span>: This is to tell you that mamma died
-yesterday, although I do not suppose you will care much,
-as you are so happy with the wife who crowded poor
-mamma and me out of your heart. She died suddenly,
-of heart disease, from which she suffered so long, and I
-am left penniless and friendless, for she spent everything
-she had before she died. We would have been more saving,
-but you always let us think I would have your money,
-and I think the news of your marriage hastened her
-death, she was so disappointed.</p>
-
-<p>Now what am I to do? I have no money, as you know,
-and I am not fitted to work for my living. Has your wife
-turned your heart against me, or are you willing to take
-mamma’s place and support me in the style I’ve been
-used to? I suppose I’ll be married, some time, although
-poor girls don’t stand much chance. I don’t think Norman
-would care for poverty, though, if only he would
-come to his senses in other things. I am here in your
-house still. We were glad you left us that when you
-married so suddenly and strangely. I’ve promised the
-servants you will pay their wages. I hope you will come
-home and settle with the people mamma owed. I charged
-the funeral expenses to you. I knew you wouldn’t mind.
-Please answer at once, and let me know what to expect
-from you.</p>
-
-<p class="ir2"><span style="padding-right:4em">Your unhappy niece,</span><br />
-<span class="smcap">Juliette Ives</span>.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[96]</span></p>
-
-<p>“So she is my husband’s niece? What a fatality!”
-Pansy murmured to herself, fighting hard
-against the weakness and faintness stealing over
-her. “And Norman Wylde has not married her
-yet,” her thoughts ran on, with a sort of bitter
-triumph.</p>
-
-<p>She sat silent, crushing the black-bordered
-sheet in her hands, her heart beating slowly and
-heavily in her breast, a chill presentiment of evil
-stealing over her mind.</p>
-
-<p>“Is it possible that I shall have to come in contact
-again with that proud, cruel girl? Oh, if I
-had only known this I should never have married
-Colonel Falconer,” she thought bitterly.</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Falconer turned around suddenly from
-the window.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, my dear, what do you think of my
-niece’s letter?” he asked.</p>
-
-<p>Pansy’s face flamed and her eyes flashed.</p>
-
-<p>“I think it is impertinent, selfish, and heartless,”
-she answered spiritedly.</p>
-
-<p>He sighed, for that was his own impression of
-the letter, although he hated to acknowledge it,
-even to himself. What hurt him most was her
-half-contemptuous allusions to his wife, and the<span class="pagenum">[97]</span>
-fact that she had disdained to send a single kindly
-message to the woman who was, by marriage, at
-least, her near relative.</p>
-
-<p>“Juliette is a spoiled child. She has been pampered
-and indulged until she considers no one
-but herself,” he said uneasily.</p>
-
-<p>“That is easy to be seen,” she answered, with
-a touch of scorn.</p>
-
-<p>“But there is some excuse for her just now,”
-continued the colonel, who could not overcome
-at once the habit of long years of affection. “We
-must consider the petulance of affliction, so natural
-in one reared selfishly and luxuriously, as
-Juliette has been. Then, too, the poor girl has
-had a love trouble that has helped to sour her
-temper.”</p>
-
-<p>“A love trouble?” Pansy questioned, in a thick
-voice, without looking up.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes; she was engaged several years ago to
-a Mr. Wylde, of Richmond&mdash;a fine young man
-in every respect, handsome, rich, and of fine family.
-Juliette adored him, and was very jealous,
-so that when he engaged in a flirtation with a designing
-little beauty of the lower classes Juliette
-would take no excuses, but dismissed him in bitter<span class="pagenum">[98]</span>
-anger. He went abroad, leaving her to repent
-her harshness, and to try to mourn her haste;
-for love soon conquered pride, and she would give
-the world now to win him back. I had reason, a
-year ago, to believe that they had made up their
-quarrel and would soon be married, but I was
-mistaken, and Juliette no doubt is still pining for
-her lost lover.”</p>
-
-<p>Pansy made no comment, for her husband’s
-words still rang in her ears:</p>
-
-<p>“‘A designing little beauty of the lower
-classes.’ Oh, what if he knew! what if he knew!”
-she thought, in terror that held her lips dumb.</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Falconer took up a package of newspapers,
-and drew out one&mdash;the Richmond <cite>Dispatch</cite>.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, this, too, is from Juliette. No doubt it
-contains the notice of her mother’s death,” he
-said.</p>
-
-<p>His surmise was correct. It recorded the death
-of Mrs. Ives, at the age of fifty-four, for she
-had been his elder by several years.</p>
-
-<p>He placed the paper, as he had done the letter,
-before Pansy’s eyes; and she read and reread the
-words announcing her enemy’s death, but in a<span class="pagenum">[99]</span>
-dull, mechanical way, without any triumph in the
-fact that those cruel lips would never utter any
-falsehoods against her again. She felt half dazed
-by the suddenness with which the past had risen
-before her just as she began to hope and believe
-that it was buried forever.</p>
-
-<p>Her dull eyes traveled soberly up and down the
-short list of married and dead, and suddenly a
-wild gleam came into them. A familiar name
-had caught her attention. She read:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>On the 6th instant, at the residence of her mother, on
-Church Hill, Rosa Laurens, aged nine years and seven
-days, of diphtheria. Funeral private.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>It was Pansy’s youngest sister&mdash;the baby, as
-she was always called in the family. A wave of
-passionate grief overflowed Pansy’s heart and
-forced a cry of despair from her white lips. Then
-she slipped from her chair and lay in a long swoon
-upon the floor.</p>
-
-<p>When reason returned she was lying upon her
-bed, with her maid chafing her cold hands anxiously,
-and her husband bending over her with
-frightened eyes.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, Pansy, what a shock you have given me!”
-he exclaimed; and as everything rushed quickly<span class="pagenum">[100]</span>
-over her she realized that she must hide her
-troubles under a mask of smiles.</p>
-
-<p>With a pitiful attempt at gayety, she faltered:</p>
-
-<p>“You must learn not to be frightened at a
-woman’s fainting. It means nothing but temporary
-weakness.”</p>
-
-<p>“Are you sure of that?” he asked. “Because&mdash;&mdash;”
-Then he paused.</p>
-
-<p>“What?” she questioned.</p>
-
-<p>“I feared you had read something in that paper
-that grieved or frightened you,” he answered,
-remembering at the same time that when she had
-that illness in California Mrs. Scruggs had asserted
-that something she had read in a paper was
-the primary cause.</p>
-
-<p>But Pansy denied that anything in the paper
-had affected her in the least.</p>
-
-<p>“How could it be so, when I had never been
-in Richmond, and knew no one there?” she said.
-“Besides, I had but just taken the paper and had
-read nothing but your sister’s death, when suddenly
-I felt my strength leaving me, and I fell.
-Tell him, Phebe,” she said, looking at her maid,
-“that it is a very common occurrence for ladies
-to faint.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[101]</span></p>
-
-<p>Phebe asserted that all fashionable ladies were
-given to fainting, and his own experience bore
-him out in the fact. The only difference was
-that he had never regarded Pansy in the light
-of a society lady. She was a beautiful, natural
-child of nature, he had been proud to think.</p>
-
-<p>She insisted on getting up to dress and to drive
-in the park.</p>
-
-<p>“I want fresh air,” she said; and, looking at
-her pale cheeks and heavy eyes, he thought so,
-too.</p>
-
-<p>“Mind you don’t give me another such scare
-shortly,” he said, as he went out to order the
-carriage, for they had taken a pretty house in
-Park Lane for the season, and surrounded themselves
-with luxuries. They had been going into
-society some little, but neither cared much for
-it. He had seen enough of it to be blasé, and
-she was timid.</p>
-
-<p>When they were driving along he said abruptly:</p>
-
-<p>“I suppose we must make some plans for my
-poor niece. What do you say, darling? Shall
-we go home and take care of Juliette?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[102]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Oh, must we go home? I am so happy here!”
-she cried.</p>
-
-<p>“But I shall be obliged to go back and settle
-up my sister’s affairs, Pansy.”</p>
-
-<p>“Couldn’t you leave me, and come back when
-you had fixed everything?” she inquired vaguely.</p>
-
-<p>“But&mdash;Juliette?” he objected.</p>
-
-<p>“Couldn’t you give her some money, and leave
-her there with&mdash;with some of her friends?”</p>
-
-<p>He looked in surprise at the girl who was usually
-so sweet and gentle. Her words sounded
-heartless.</p>
-
-<p>“How strangely you talk&mdash;as if you had taken
-a dislike to that poor orphan girl whom you have
-never even seen,” he said severely.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, forgive me!” she cried, frightened at his
-displeasure. Nestling closer to his side, she murmured:
-“It is naughty of me, I know, but I can’t
-help feeling jealous of that girl you like so much.
-She will come between us. We will never be as
-happy again as we were in this past year.”</p>
-
-<p>“Nonsense!” he answered; but he was secretly
-pleased at her jealousy, although there was really
-no cause for it, as he hastened to assure her. “I
-am only thinking of what people will say,” he<span class="pagenum">[103]</span>
-explained. “I am sure we should be happier without
-her, spoiled little beauty that she is. But she
-has no relative but me, and if I desert her people
-will say that it is all your fault. Do you realize
-this, my pet?”</p>
-
-<p>Yes, she began to realize it with a sort of wonder.
-The fate of Juliette Ives, her bitter enemy,
-lay in her hands to make or mar. She knew that
-she could mold her noble husband to her will if
-she chose; could make Juliette Ives’ life infinitely
-bitter and hard. For a moment she was pleased
-with the thought, half tempted to use her power.</p>
-
-<p>Then her better nature triumphed. She flung
-revenge to the winds.</p>
-
-<p>“I cannot do it. I cannot be so mean,” she
-thought, with keen self-scorn. “Poor soul! Why
-should I blame her? We both suffered through
-his falsity, and now I will be her friend if she
-will let me.”</p>
-
-<p>With all that she knew of Juliette, she did not
-fully comprehend the girl’s ignoble soul. She
-pitied her, and, out of a generous impulse, resolved
-to stand her friend.</p>
-
-<p>“I will go back with you, Colonel Falconer,
-and I will try to be a true friend to your orphan<span class="pagenum">[104]</span>
-niece,” she said, believing that as his wife she
-could fairly run the risk of a return to her old
-home.</p>
-
-<p>“I look older now. No one will recognize me,”
-she decided confidently.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[105]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XVI">CHAPTER XVI.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">THE SAD RETURN.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>In due course of time Juliette Ives received a
-kind letter from her absent uncle, stating that he
-would return with his wife to Richmond within
-the month.</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“You may rest assured, my dear girl, that I intend to
-act fairly by you,” he wrote. “Of course I cannot leave
-you my fortune, as I expected to do if I died single; but
-you shall receive a fair portion of it, so you need not consider
-yourself penniless. I will also pay your mother’s
-debts. For the rest, your home will be with us. My
-charming wife, who is even younger than yourself, will
-be your warmest friend if you show any disposition toward
-friendship. I inferred from your letter&mdash;in which
-you neglected to send Mrs. Falconer a single kind message&mdash;that
-you seriously resented my marriage. Of course
-you understand that my young wife is to be treated with
-all respect and consideration. While you have a strong
-claim on my love and kindness, she has a stronger one,
-which you must never for an instant forget. But I need
-hardly caution you on these points, as your own good
-sense will sufficiently instruct you. Besides, I expect that
-you will at once fall in love with Pansy’s sweet disposition
-and lovely face.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>“Pansy&mdash;Pansy!” Miss Ives muttered sharply,
-as she flung the obnoxious letter on the floor. “So<span class="pagenum">[106]</span>
-that is her name! Strange that, as that name
-once came between me and love, it should now
-come between me and fortune. Why, if I had
-not hated her already, I should loathe her for
-that name!”</p>
-
-<p>She was alone in the spacious and elegant parlor
-of Colonel Falconer’s elegant residence on
-Franklin Street. She wore deep, lusterless black
-that set off her delicate blond beauty to great
-advantage, and she moved with the air of some
-princess, so proud was her step, so haughty the
-curve of her white throat.</p>
-
-<p>“It is going to be war to the knife between us&mdash;I
-foresee that,” she muttered hoarsely. “I
-mean to make her life as disagreeable as I can,
-out of revenge for the evil she has wrought for
-me. Yes, she shall not sleep upon a bed of roses
-in this house! I shall be as disrespectful as I
-please. They dare not turn me out of the house
-for fear of people talking, as I am his own
-niece.”</p>
-
-<p>A few days later she received a telegram from
-New York, stating that Colonel Falconer and
-wife had arrived in that city, would remain there
-a week, and then come on to Richmond.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[107]</span></p>
-
-<p>Pansy had persuaded her husband to remain
-in New York and show her the sights of the great
-city. At heart she cared little for it, but it served
-as a pretext to delay for a little her return to her
-old home, and to the memories that would crowd
-upon her there.</p>
-
-<p>But at last the time was over, and no further
-pretext could delay her going. Pale and heartsick,
-she was standing on the steamer’s deck beside
-her husband while they rounded the last
-curve of James River, that brought picturesque
-Libby Hill into full view, with all its bittersweet
-memories.</p>
-
-<p>It was three years and a half since she had
-crouched on yonder hill, a forlorn little figure
-with wet eyes and a pale, pale face, watching the
-steamer bearing away her young husband on that
-mission which he said was to make him rich
-enough to claim the bride he had wedded in secret.
-How it all rushed over her again as she
-stood there by the side of her proud, rich husband,
-and listened mechanically as he pointed
-out with pride and enthusiasm the beauties of
-the river and the land.</p>
-
-<p>“How glad I am to be in Virginia again!” he<span class="pagenum">[108]</span>
-exclaimed; but Pansy’s smile was sadder than
-tears.</p>
-
-<p>Juliette had sent the family carriage, with its
-high-stepping bay horses, to meet them, and soon
-they were borne swiftly toward their home; but
-while Colonel Falconer’s thoughts went toward
-Franklin Street and its aristocratic environments,
-his fair young bride was thinking of the humble
-house on Church Hill, where her mother was
-mourning the loss of her youngest born&mdash;the
-household pet.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, mother, mother, mother, if only I dared
-go to you in your sorrow!” was the cry of her
-heart.</p>
-
-<p>But she knew that she must remain dead to
-that beloved mother. There was her husband and
-her position to be considered, and there was Willie,
-who had sworn in his wrath to kill the sister
-who had brought disgrace on a respectable family.
-Her own safety, if nothing else, demanded
-silence.</p>
-
-<p>“Here we are, my darling, at home!” exclaimed
-Colonel Falconer’s voice, seeming to come from
-far away, so intently had she been brooding over
-her sorrows.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[109]</span></p>
-
-<p>She glanced out, and saw the sunset gleams
-lighting up, like jewels, the windows of an old-fashioned
-red brick mansion, set in a pretty green
-lawn studded with shrubbery and flowers. He
-looked up at the broad porch, guarded by two
-lions, and said, in a tone of disappointment:</p>
-
-<p>“Juliette is too dignified to come out on the
-porch to welcome us home. She will be waiting
-in the hall.”</p>
-
-<p>He led his lovely bride up the steps, and, with
-a strong effort of will, Pansy threw off her agitation
-and braced herself to meet Juliette Ives
-with pride and dignity equal to her own.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[110]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XVII">CHAPTER XVII.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">A DRAMATIC MEETING.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Yes, Juliette was waiting in the hall.</p>
-
-<p>The day was warm, and she wore a black dress,
-rich in quality, but of a soft, diaphanous material,
-through which her neck and arms gleamed
-snowy white. Her golden hair was arranged so
-as to make the very most of its beauty. She
-wished to overawe her uncle’s wife, if possible,
-with her dignity and beauty.</p>
-
-<p>The door opened, and as soon as Colonel Falconer
-appeared she rushed to his arms with theatrical
-effect. He returned her kiss, and disengaged
-himself as soon as possible from her embrace,
-that he might present her to the beautiful
-creature waiting in the background:</p>
-
-<p>“My wife, Juliette.”</p>
-
-<p>Juliette looked, and saw a figure of medium
-height, but so exquisitely slender, though rounded,
-that it looked taller. It was clothed in a Parisian
-suit of dove gray, and from under the demure
-little bonnet looked the loveliest face in the world&mdash;sweet
-yet spirited, with exquisite features, dazzling<span class="pagenum">[111]</span>
-complexion, and eyes of purplish blue under
-lovely curling lashes, dark as night.</p>
-
-<p>But what was it that made Juliette stare in
-wonder and gasp in fear? She caught her uncle’s
-arm, and he felt her trembling from head to foot.</p>
-
-<p>“Juliette, my poor girl, this meeting has unnerved
-you,” he exclaimed pityingly, and Pansy
-advanced, as if to offer assistance, but was instantly
-repulsed, Juliette flinging out a frantic
-arm to keep her off.</p>
-
-<p>“Keep back, keep back! Do not come near me
-with that face!” she hissed angrily; and Pansy
-looked at her husband in cold amazement.</p>
-
-<p>“Has Miss Ives gone suddenly mad?” she demanded
-haughtily, and at the sound of her voice,
-so cold yet silvery sweet, Juliette shrank closer to
-her uncle, crying out:</p>
-
-<p>“I am not mad, uncle, but I shall be soon if
-you do not take away that ghost! Oh, that face,
-that voice! They have been drowned almost
-three years, and now they rise to haunt me from
-their watery grave!”</p>
-
-<p>She began to scream with actual terror, bringing
-the housekeeper and several servants to the
-scene. Her uncle caught her in his arms and<span class="pagenum">[112]</span>
-carried her into the parlor, saying to Pansy over
-his shoulder:</p>
-
-<p>“Keep out of sight a few moments, dear, and
-I will bring her to her senses. She has evidently
-been startled by your likeness to some one she
-has known.”</p>
-
-<p>Pansy sat down just inside the parlor door,
-which she carefully closed, thus shutting out the
-gaping servants. Colonel Falconer set himself
-to the task of quieting his hysterical niece.</p>
-
-<p>Believing herself alone with him, she soon grew
-calmer, and asked:</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, uncle, where did you find that girl? I
-thought she was dead!”</p>
-
-<p>“Of whom does she remind you, dear?” he
-asked soothingly.</p>
-
-<p>Shivering with terror, she replied:</p>
-
-<p>“Of Pansy Laurens, the girl who made all the
-trouble between Norman and myself. You know,
-it was thought she drowned herself, but now I
-can no longer believe it, for surely this is no other
-than Pansy Laurens!”</p>
-
-<p>Pansy sat motionless, and heard her husband
-saying sternly:</p>
-
-<p>“You will oblige me, Juliette, by never making<span class="pagenum">[113]</span>
-such foolish remarks again. I never saw
-Pansy Laurens; but if my wife resembles her,
-that is nothing but a chance likeness. Mrs. Falconer
-was a Miss Wilcox, of Louisville, and has
-never been in Richmond until to-day.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, uncle, are you sure? For indeed she
-frightened me with her awful likeness, although
-I believe she is prettier than that Laurens creature,”
-gasped Juliette.</p>
-
-<p>“Prettier&mdash;well, I should say so! My wife
-is the loveliest creature on earth!” exclaimed the
-jovial colonel.</p>
-
-<p>But Juliette, still shivering, sighed:</p>
-
-<p>“How can I live in the same house with that
-face and voice?”</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[114]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XVIII">CHAPTER XVIII.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">A FALSE SMILE.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Colonel Falconer began to grow angry at Juliette’s
-foolishness, as he called it to himself.
-Drawing back from her, he said stiffly:</p>
-
-<p>“If you cannot live in the same house with my
-wife, Juliette, you are quite at liberty to seek a
-boarding house anywhere you choose, and I will
-pay your board and furnish you pin money.”</p>
-
-<p>Juliette sprang upright in a perfect fury,
-shrieking out:</p>
-
-<p>“You are planning to get rid of me already!”</p>
-
-<p>Before the poor, badgered man could reply,
-Pansy came gliding forward, and said sweetly:</p>
-
-<p>“Perhaps Miss Ives would prefer for us to go
-away, and leave her in possession of the house.
-If so, I am perfectly willing to do so, as I fear
-we shall not get on together, judging from what
-I have already seen of her disposition toward
-me.”</p>
-
-<p>She hoped that Juliette would take her at her
-word, and that by this means she would be enabled
-to leave this once dear, now dreaded, city.<span class="pagenum">[115]</span>
-She was frightened, too, at Juliette’s recognition
-of her, and foresaw trouble if she remained.</p>
-
-<p>But Juliette was startled at her uncle’s proposition,
-and she began to come to her senses. She
-remembered that but for his liberality she must be
-a beggar, and she dared not try him too far.
-Summoning a false, sweet smile to her lips, she
-turned to him, and exclaimed:</p>
-
-<p>“Dear uncle, forgive me. I fear I have been
-acting very foolishly. Of course, I do not want
-to go away from the only relative I have in the
-world, now that poor mamma is dead. I love you
-too well to leave you, or to drive you from me.
-And, indeed, I was preparing to welcome my new
-aunt with affection, when her striking likeness so
-startled me that I behaved ridiculously, I fear,
-on the impulse of the moment. You will excuse
-me, Mrs. Falconer, will you not?” turning to
-Pansy and holding out a hand sparkling with
-costly gems.</p>
-
-<p>Pansy clasped the offered hand with one as
-cold as ice, even through its tiny gray kid glove, as
-she replied:</p>
-
-<p>“Certainly, Miss Ives, for I am anxious to be
-your friend, if you will let me.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[116]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Oh, thank you! I shall only be too glad,
-for I had feared that a beautiful young wife
-would prejudice my uncle against me, and I am
-glad to find that it is not so,” exclaimed Juliette,
-with pretended cordiality. Rising to her feet,
-she continued: “Excuse me one moment, while I
-see if your rooms are in readiness.”</p>
-
-<p>She ran hastily to her own apartment, where
-she secured a framed photograph of Norman
-Wylde, which she placed conspicuously on the
-mantel of Pansy’s room.</p>
-
-<p>“I believe she is Pansy Laurens, and I shall
-prepare many a severe test for her,” she muttered
-angrily, as she returned to the parlor and
-told Pansy, with a show of friendliness, that her
-rooms were in readiness, and she was ready to
-show them to her.</p>
-
-<p>They walked side by side through the broad
-hall, with its Turkish carpet, statuary in niches,
-and stands of blooming flowers, up the broad
-stairway to a suite of beautiful rooms in cream
-and scarlet.</p>
-
-<p>“I hope you will like these rooms. Mamma
-had them furnished over but a few months ago.
-Mine are like these, only in blue,” said Juliette,<span class="pagenum">[117]</span>
-with a patronizing air that at once aroused a
-teasing mood in Pansy, and she exclaimed:</p>
-
-<p>“Then I ought to have had your rooms instead
-of these, for blue is my color, too!”</p>
-
-<p>She saw a frown contract Juliette’s eyebrows,
-but she took no notice, and walked over to the
-mantel, where the first thing she saw was the
-handsome face of Norman Wylde smiling on her
-from an easel frame. It gave her a start, but
-she had nerved herself to meet even the original
-in this house, and now she merely lifted her arm
-to take up a piece of bric-a-brac and examine it
-more closely, when the hanging sleeve of her light
-gray wrap caught the top of the small easel, and
-it was instantly hurled to the floor.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, what have I broken?” she cried, in pretended
-dismay. And Juliette came forward to
-gather up the fragments.</p>
-
-<p>“The easel is broken, but the photograph is
-unhurt. See,” she said, holding it up before
-Pansy’s eyes and watching her closely; but Pansy
-glanced at it with the careless interest of a
-stranger.</p>
-
-<p>“What a handsome young man!” she said. “Is
-he one of your admirers, Miss Ives?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[118]</span></p>
-
-<p>“I was once engaged to him,” Juliette answered.
-“I will take it away,” she added, hurrying
-out of the room to conceal her chagrin at
-the failure of her first test.</p>
-
-<p>She could not decide whether the accident had
-been a real one or not. Pansy had carried it out
-with such perfect ease that she began to falter in
-her belief that this was Pansy Laurens.</p>
-
-<p>“I may possibly be mistaken, but the likeness
-is so startling that I shall test her in every way,”
-she decided.</p>
-
-<p>The next morning Pansy appeared at their late
-breakfast in such an exquisite and becoming
-morning gown that Juliette could not repress her
-admiration, in spite of the anger with which she
-saw her uncle’s wife take her place in front of
-the coffee urn.</p>
-
-<p>“I thought you would be too tired to pour coffee
-this first morning,” she said, almost angrily.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, no, indeed. I feel quite well, thank you,”
-was the bright reply, and, as her white hands
-fluttered like birds over the china and silver, she
-continued: “Colonel Falconer, I hope you are
-going to take me for a long drive to-day <a id="Ref_118" href="#BRef_118">so that I</a><span class="pagenum">[119]</span>
-may see some of the beauties of your historic
-Richmond.”</p>
-
-<p>“Just what I was thinking of, my love,” said
-her husband. “You will join us, will you not,
-Juliette?”</p>
-
-<p>“Gladly,” she replied, thinking that she would
-thereby have another opportunity of testing
-Pansy’s identity.</p>
-
-<p>After breakfast Pansy invited her to come upstairs,
-where her maid was unpacking her trunks,
-saying that she had brought her some presents
-from London.</p>
-
-<p>“Of course, as I had never seen you, I could
-not have decided what would be most becoming
-to you had not my husband assisted me with a
-description of your style and tastes,” she said.
-And when Juliette saw the beautiful gifts that
-had been chosen for her she could not help being
-pleased, both with the taste and generosity displayed
-by Pansy, whom she thanked quite prettily,
-saying:</p>
-
-<p>“I did you an injustice, feeling jealous of
-uncle’s love for you, when all the time you were
-planning these pleasant surprises for me.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[120]</span></p>
-
-<p>Pansy hardly knew whether to trust these
-sweet protestations or not. She would have liked
-to be at peace with Juliette Ives, but she could
-not help distrusting her, and she resolved to
-watch her closely before she quite discarded her
-distrust.</p>
-
-<p>Juliette lay lazily back in a great crimson chair
-and watched Phebe, the maid, unpacking Pansy’s
-beautiful clothes. She was obliged to own that
-she had never seen such a magnificent trousseau
-as that with which Colonel Falconer had provided
-his lovely bride.</p>
-
-<p>“You are a woman to be envied, Mrs. Falconer,”
-she said; and Pansy sighed faintly, although
-Juliette could not have told whether the
-sigh meant supreme content or some hidden
-sorrow.</p>
-
-<p>“She does not look as if she had always been
-really happy. There are pensive curves about
-her lips when she is not smiling, and now and
-then her eyes look anxious,” the girl decided.</p>
-
-<p>In the afternoon an elegant open barouche took
-the three out riding, and Colonel Falconer felt
-very proud of his beautiful wife and almost<span class="pagenum">[121]</span>
-equally beautiful niece, in their carriage costumes.</p>
-
-<p>It was a lovely May day, and the city presented
-its best appearance under a blue, smiling sky,
-which every Virginian believed as fair as that of
-Italy. They rode out upon the popular Grove
-Road, then the most fashionable drive in the city,
-and to that beautiful place, the New Reservoir,
-with its bright waters glittering in the sun.
-Pansy exclaimed with delight at the miniature
-lake, with the water lilies fringing the green
-banks, and the little boats rocking on its breast.</p>
-
-<p>Then the beautiful cemetery of Hollywood,
-with its magnificent monument to the Confederate
-dead, was the next point of interest. Colonel
-Falconer then gave the command to drive through
-the principal parks and streets.</p>
-
-<p>“Do not forget Seventh Street,” Juliette whispered
-to the driver, and when they were rolling
-along before an immense structure on that street
-she said: “That building, Mrs. Falconer, is the
-great tobacco factory of Arnell &amp; Grey. They
-employ an immense number of girls and women
-to work for them&mdash;twelve hundred at least, I
-am told. Would you not like to go through the<span class="pagenum">[122]</span>
-factory? I presume it would furnish some interesting
-sights to one unfamiliar with our Southern
-institutions.”</p>
-
-<p>“I dare say it would, but unfortunately the
-smell of tobacco always makes me very ill. Colonel
-Falconer, cannot we drive faster, so as to escape
-this unpleasant odor?” exclaimed Pansy. He
-saw that her face had certainly grown very pale,
-while her eyes were half closed. He directed the
-driver to hasten out of the neighborhood.</p>
-
-<p>“I am sorry it sickened you, but the odor was
-strong,” said Juliette. “I do not know how those
-poor girls endure it. Their very clothing must
-be impregnated with the disagreeable odor. But
-perhaps they do not mind it like you and I, Mrs.
-Falconer&mdash;useless, fine ladies that we are.”</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Falconer’s blue eyes flashed, and the color
-rushed back into her pale cheeks. She answered,
-with a flash of girlish spirit:</p>
-
-<p>“You and I, Miss Ives, are made of the same
-clay as those factory girls. We are more fortunate,
-that is all.”</p>
-
-<p>“Goodness, Uncle Falconer, I hope your wife
-isn’t a socialist!” exclaimed Juliette, shrugging
-her shoulders.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[123]</span></p>
-
-<p>He frowned, and answered:</p>
-
-<p>“My wife is an angel, Juliette, and has the
-kindest, tenderest heart in the world. I’m glad
-to hear her speak up for our Richmond working
-girls. I have the greatest respect for them all,
-as well as sympathy for the poverty that makes
-their lot in life so hard. I know also that many
-of them are from good families that were reduced
-to poverty by the late war.”</p>
-
-<p>Juliette turned her back on him impatiently,
-and addressed herself to Pansy:</p>
-
-<p>“You remember how foolishly I behaved last
-night, taking you for a girl that disgraced her
-family and drowned herself three years ago?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” Pansy answered coldly.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, she was a tobacco-factory girl, and
-worked at Arnell &amp; Grey’s. Her name was Pansy
-Laurens&mdash;similarity in names, as well as faces,
-you see. Your name is Pansy, too, isn’t it? She
-was a low, designing creature, and, by her boldness,
-caused a rupture between my betrothed and
-myself, over which he grieves to this day.”</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[124]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XIX">CHAPTER XIX.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">A POISONED LIFE.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Bravely as Pansy carried off everything, she
-began to fear that her life with Juliette Ives would
-never be one of friendship or peace, for the girl
-seemed to bristle at all points with poisoned arrows
-for her uncle’s wife.</p>
-
-<p>Not that Juliette was outwardly repellent. She
-had false, sweet smiles in plenty for Pansy; but
-she had also the sharpest claws beneath her silky
-fur. She lost no opportunity of wounding, when
-she could do so with impunity.</p>
-
-<p>A week passed away, and several of the best
-families in the city had called upon Colonel Falconer
-and his wife. None saw her but to praise
-her wonderful beauty and her graceful ease of
-manner; although they had gathered from Juliette
-that her origin was obscure, they decided
-that she must certainly have been used to good
-society, and they made due allowance when Juliette
-sneered for her disappointment in losing her
-uncle’s money.</p>
-
-<p>But the supreme trial of all had not fallen on<span class="pagenum">[125]</span>
-her yet. Norman Wylde had not called, although
-Juliette had given several intimations
-that he would do so soon. Sometimes Pansy
-resolved that she would not see him, but
-then that course would be sure to excite remark.
-The meeting must take place some time, and she
-made up her mind at last that she would face it
-without a falter.</p>
-
-<p>“I despise him, but I will treat him with the
-same courtesy that I do others, that none may
-suspect what lies hidden beneath the surface,”
-she thought.</p>
-
-<p>She had been home something more than a
-week when Colonel Falconer told her one morning,
-with a tender caress, that he should have
-to leave her to her own devices, or to Juliette’s
-society, all day, as he would have to spend some
-hours with his lawyers, settling up his sister’s
-affairs.</p>
-
-<p>“I have a new book. I will interest myself
-in that,” she replied, returning his kiss in her
-gentle, affectionate way.</p>
-
-<p>He went away, and, lest Juliette should think
-her unsociable, she took her book into the parlor.
-It was a warm day, and she wore a lovely morning<span class="pagenum">[126]</span>
-dress, all white embroidery and lace, with
-fluttering loops of blue ribbons. Her lovely dark
-hair was drawn into a loose coil on top of her
-head, and some curling locks strayed prettily over
-her white forehead.</p>
-
-<p>“How pretty you are in that white wrapper,
-Mrs. Falconer. I do not see how such a plain
-old fellow as my uncle ever induced a beautiful
-young girl like you to marry him. But, then,
-these rich old fellows can marry any one they
-choose!” exclaimed Juliette.</p>
-
-<p>“I do not consider Colonel Falconer old,”
-Pansy answered resentfully, but further words
-were prevented by the loud ringing of the doorbell.</p>
-
-<p>Juliette sat upright, with a gleam of expectancy
-in her pale-blue eyes, and the next moment a
-servant appeared at the door, saying that a man
-wished to see Mrs. Falconer a few moments.</p>
-
-<p>“Show him in here. It is no doubt some message
-from uncle,” quickly exclaimed Juliette.</p>
-
-<p>Instantly there darted into Pansy’s mind a
-quick suspicion:</p>
-
-<p>“She has laid another trap for me.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[127]</span></p>
-
-<p>And she braced herself to bear anything unflinchingly.</p>
-
-<p>The door opened again, and Mr. Finley, the
-grocer, her hated stepfather, entered the room.</p>
-
-<p>Pansy grew pale, but, still holding her book,
-she arose in a stately way, fixing on the intruder
-a cold glance of inquiry.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Finley, coming in from the outer daylight
-into the semigloom of the parlor, did not at first
-see very clearly. He bowed profoundly to both
-ladies, in an awkward way, and began to speak
-briskly:</p>
-
-<p>“Mrs. Falconer, I am a grocer, and enjoyed
-the custom and confidence of the late Mrs. Ives.
-I have called to solicit&mdash;&mdash;” He stopped and
-stared. The beautiful face looking at him struck
-him with fear and terror.</p>
-
-<p>He made a retrograde movement toward the
-door, keeping his bewildered eyes on her face,
-and then he caught a glance from Juliette’s eyes
-that suddenly loosened his tongue.</p>
-
-<p>He stopped short, exclaiming:</p>
-
-<p>“Heavens, I can’t be mistaken! It&mdash;is&mdash;she!
-Mrs. Falconer, excuse me, please, but are you not
-my missing stepdaughter, Pansy Laurens?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[128]</span></p>
-
-<p>A gay little laugh trilled over Pansy’s lips as
-she blandly assured him that she had never seen
-him before in her life, that her maiden name was
-Miss Wilcox, and that she was a native of Louisville.</p>
-
-<p>“This is the second time I’ve been told of my
-likeness to Pansy Laurens. It is a coincidence,
-nothing more. Such things often happen,” she
-observed carelessly. “By the way, you called to
-solicit custom for your business, I believe. You
-may leave your card, and I will refer it to my
-husband.”</p>
-
-<p>Thus coolly dismissed, and quite ignoring the
-request for his card, Mr. Finley stumbled out,
-with a fixed conviction in his mind that Pansy
-Laurens had never been drowned at all, but had
-married this rich man and come back to triumph
-over them all.</p>
-
-<p>He understood now why Juliette had sent him
-that little note, saying that her uncle’s wife would
-be glad to have him call, as she wished to make
-arrangements with him about supplying the family
-groceries.</p>
-
-<p>“She recognized her, and wished for me to do
-so, unaided by any hint from her,” he thought<span class="pagenum">[129]</span>
-and wondered: “What ought I to do about it? I
-hope I shall see Miss Ives soon, for this discovery
-places a mine of gold in my reach, and I must
-speedily find out in what way I am to make the
-most of it. Miss Ives is poor now, and Norman
-Wylde is comparatively so, as he will have no
-money until his father dies. I do not know which
-I should blackmail&mdash;Falconer or his wife.”</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[130]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XX">CHAPTER XX.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">AN EVENING OF SUSPENSE.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>When Pansy went to dress for dinner she was
-so particular that the maid smiled, and thought:</p>
-
-<p>“Her husband has been gone all day, and she
-wishes to look her best this evening.”</p>
-
-<p>But Pansy, looking for Norman Wylde’s appearance
-every hour, was anxious to appear as
-beautiful as possible in the eyes of the man who
-had wronged her so deeply.</p>
-
-<p>A lovely dress of cream-colored mull and Valenciennes
-lace was donned. The sleeves were
-short, and the bodice was a low V neck. She
-wore no ornaments, except a diamond locket on
-the black velvet band at her throat and a bunch
-of creamy-white roses at her slender waist. Thus
-attired, she was so dazzlingly lovely when she descended
-to the parlor that Juliette fairly hated
-her, and could scarcely keep from saying so.</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Falconer came in presently, with his
-kind, intelligent face and fine military bearing,
-and was charmed with the beauty of the two girls,<span class="pagenum">[131]</span>
-for Juliette looked her best in a dress of black
-net with pearl jewelry.</p>
-
-<p>“It is a pity for so much loveliness to be wasted
-on an old fellow like me. I hope we shall have
-some callers after dinner,” he said gayly.</p>
-
-<p>After dinner he begged Juliette to give them
-some music, but, with a malicious glance at Pansy,
-she exclaimed:</p>
-
-<p>“I do not like to touch the piano, as I am sure
-your wife plays ever so much better than I do.”</p>
-
-<p>Pansy smiled, and answered coolly:</p>
-
-<p>“Then your musical attainments must be very
-superficial, indeed, Miss Ives, for I only know
-enough of music to play my own accompaniments
-to a few songs.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then you will give us a song, won’t you, and
-I will play afterward?” cried artful Juliette,
-thinking that here, at least, she could outshine
-her uncle’s wife.</p>
-
-<p>“Certainly,” Pansy answered carelessly, and
-moved toward the piano, secure in her consciousness
-of an exquisitely sweet voice, which had had
-careful culture when she was a simple schoolgirl,
-before her father died.</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Falconer leaned against the piano, with<span class="pagenum">[132]</span>
-his back to the door, and Juliette began to turn
-over the piles of music.</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t trouble yourself. I will sing some little
-thing from memory,” said Pansy.</p>
-
-<p>Juliette flung herself into an easy-chair and listened
-with a sneer, saying to herself:</p>
-
-<p>“I would not try to play if I knew nothing but
-a few accompaniments.”</p>
-
-<p>But when that low, sweet, thrilling voice broke
-the silence, she started in wonder and delight,
-for she was intensely fond of music, and Pansy’s
-touch and voice were both exquisite.</p>
-
-<p>No one noticed that the door had opened to admit
-visitors, who paused uncertainly on the
-threshold, to listen, too, for all were absorbed in
-the singer.</p>
-
-<p>At last the white hands dropped from the piano
-keys, the thrilling voice became silent. Touched
-in spite of herself, Juliette said softly:</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, how sweet and sad! You have brought
-tears to my eyes, Mrs. Falconer.”</p>
-
-<p>Before Pansy could reply, all three became
-aware that visitors were advancing into the room.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, Mrs. Wylde, I am so glad to see you&mdash;and<span class="pagenum">[133]</span>
-you, too, Rosalind. Oh, Judge Wylde, it was
-so kind of you and Norman to come!” rattled
-quickly from Juliette’s lips, as she hastened to
-welcome the newcomers.</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Falconer also greeted the visitors as if
-they were old friends, and hastened to present
-his wife.</p>
-
-<p>She, the poor little factory girl whom they had
-scorned, stood by her husband’s side like a queen,
-and greeted his friends with a calm and stately
-dignity that made a profound impression. She
-glanced only slightly at Norman Wylde, or she
-would have seen that he was terribly agitated.
-When their hands touched each other both were
-cold as ice.</p>
-
-<p>When all were seated, Pansy saw that he had
-retreated to a distant corner, and, as the conversation
-proceeded, he took little or no part in
-it. He was almost stricken speechless by her
-marvelous likeness to one he had loved and lost,
-and, but for the interval for thought afforded
-him while she was singing, he could not have preserved
-his calmness; he must have spoken out on
-the spur of the moment, and claimed her, as Mr.
-Finley had done, as Pansy Laurens.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[134]</span></p>
-
-<p>When he had first beheld the beautiful face
-in profile from the door his senses had almost
-reeled; but before her song ceased he had persuaded
-himself that he was mistaken in thinking
-her the counterpart of Pansy. She was more
-beautiful, more distinguished-looking. Pansy had
-been very shy and bashful, but this girl held her
-small head high. There was a likeness&mdash;a great
-one&mdash;but nothing more. One was the wayside
-rose, the other the cultivated flower.</p>
-
-<p>From his distant seat he watched the lovely
-face and form with a throbbing heart. How the
-rich, creamy-hued robe and diamond locket set
-off the flowerlike face, with its background of
-dark, rippling hair. The beautiful white hands
-played with some rose petals she had plucked from
-her belt, and he noticed how small they were,
-with pink palms and finger tips, dimpled at the
-joint, like a child’s. Pansy had had just such
-dainty hands, although she was only a working
-girl.</p>
-
-<p>“I wish I had not come,” he thought, with
-bitter pain. “Mrs. Falconer’s face has brought
-everything back. Oh, how am I to bear it? Does
-Juliette see the likeness, I wonder? Surely not,<span class="pagenum">[135]</span>
-or else she could scarcely endure to be haunted
-so by the image of one she hated.”</p>
-
-<p>Pansy, on her part, felt a bitter triumph in seeing
-that he took such slight notice of Juliette.
-Surely he did not care for her, else his eyes would
-have wandered to her face sometimes, for it was
-plain to be seen that she worshiped him.</p>
-
-<p>“He does not care for her,” Pansy said to herself,
-as she saw how carelessly he answered the
-remarks Juliette addressed to him. “He has a
-fickle heart.”</p>
-
-<p>And she gazed with silent admiration at her
-noble husband, who loved her so devotedly, and
-who had not been too proud to marry a simple
-working girl and lift her to his own station in
-life. Although she did not love him in a romantic
-fashion, she admired his noble, manly
-nature more and more daily.</p>
-
-<p>And she found a bitter satisfaction in seeing
-that her betrayer did not look so gay and debonair
-as in the past. He was certainly altered; his face
-was pale and grave, his eyes were sad and serious.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[136]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXI">CHAPTER XXI.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">A RETURN CALL.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Something more than a week after the Wyldes
-had called upon the Falconers, Juliette suggested,
-one day, that it was time that they should return
-the call.</p>
-
-<p>“You and Pansy can do so this afternoon,”
-Colonel Falconer replied. “As for me, I cannot
-spare a day from those lawyers until I get
-through my business, for I am hurrying all I
-can, that I may take my family away from the
-city before the heated term sets in.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then we will call to-day, and we can then find
-out where they intend to summer, for I should
-like to go to the same place,” exclaimed Juliette.</p>
-
-<p>So at noon that day they found themselves
-ringing the doorbell at a residence on Grace
-Street, quite as elegant as the one they had left.
-They were shown into an elegant and tasteful
-drawing-room, and told that the ladies would be
-down directly.</p>
-
-<p>Pansy sat silent, with her eyes fixed on the
-door, when suddenly it was pushed ajar by a<span class="pagenum">[137]</span>
-dimpled little hand, and the figure of a child became
-partly visible&mdash;a beautiful child, of perhaps
-three years old. The little fellow was simply
-clothed, in a white Mother Hubbard slip, and
-his big, dark eyes looked fearlessly at the two
-ladies.</p>
-
-<p>Pansy’s heart thrilled strangely at sight of the
-child, for there was something in his face that
-suggested Norman Wylde. Holding out her
-hands, she cried coaxingly:</p>
-
-<p>“Come here, you pretty little darling!”</p>
-
-<p>The child hesitated a moment, then pattered
-lightly across the carpet with his little bare feet
-to her side. She placed him on her knee, and,
-clasping him in her arms, kissed the pretty, rosy
-face repeatedly.</p>
-
-<p>“What is your name, dear?” she asked.</p>
-
-<p>“Pet!” he replied, while Juliette looked on
-coldly.</p>
-
-<p>Apparently the child quite reciprocated the
-fancy Mrs. Falconer had shown for him. While
-she smoothed his sunny curls with loving hands,
-he patted her cheek tenderly, and cooed:</p>
-
-<p>“Pretty yady, pretty yady!”</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly the door unclosed, admitting Mrs.<span class="pagenum">[138]</span>
-Wylde, the stately matron, and her handsome
-daughter, Rosalind. They frowned at sight of
-the pretty child, and, after exchanging greetings
-with their guests, Rosalind exclaimed sharply:</p>
-
-<p>“What are you doing here, Pet? Get down
-this instant, and go away.”</p>
-
-<p>But, to her astonishment, the little one clung
-to Pansy, and cried out rebelliously:</p>
-
-<p>“No, no, me stay ’ith pretty yady!”</p>
-
-<p>“The little monkey! He never offered to disobey
-me before,” exclaimed Rosalind, frowning,
-and she removed him by force from Pansy’s lap,
-for he screamed and struggled to stay.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, please let me keep him. I love children!”
-exclaimed Pansy pleadingly; but just here Mrs.
-Wylde chimed in:</p>
-
-<p>“You do not quite understand, Mrs. Falconer.
-The child belongs to my housekeeper, who adopted
-him in infancy. She has her orders to keep him
-in her own part of the house, but occasionally
-he slips away and intrudes upon us, although this
-is the first time he has ever ventured into the
-drawing-room.”</p>
-
-<p>“It was my fault. I called him in when I saw
-him peeping in at the door. He was such a lovely<span class="pagenum">[139]</span>
-little child, and I thought he belonged to you,”
-said Pansy, as her yearning eyes followed Rosalind,
-who was leading the sobbing child from the
-room.</p>
-
-<p>“He is a very pretty child, and usually a very
-good-tempered, affectionate one,” Mrs. Wylde
-acknowledged. “This is the first time I ever saw
-him display any temper. Indeed, I have felt myself
-on the verge of falling in love with the little
-creature often, only I would not allow myself to
-do so, being convinced that he must be a child of
-shame.”</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[140]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXII">CHAPTER XXII.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">A BEAUTIFUL CHILD.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>“A child of shame!” Pansy echoed, and a wave
-of hot color rushed over her face as she remembered
-the little child that had died before its
-young mother ever saw its face.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” answered the stately lady, rather coldly.
-“He is a foundling, and was left on our steps almost
-three years ago. We would have sent it
-to the almshouse, but our old housekeeper, who
-has been with us so many years that we like to
-indulge her some, took a fancy to the little one,
-and begged to keep it.”</p>
-
-<p>“It is a beautiful little child. I could not help
-falling in love with it,” said Pansy earnestly,
-while Juliette sneered:</p>
-
-<p>“It is a pity you have not a child of your own
-to love!”</p>
-
-<p>“I wish I had,” Pansy answered. “I am very
-fond of children.” And she wished within herself
-that she could have little Pet to carry home
-with her, for a wild suspicion was growing up
-in her heart: What if this were her own child?</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[141]</span></p>
-
-<p>Her mother had told her that her child had
-died, but perhaps she had deceived her. Perhaps
-Mr. Finley, whom she had always disliked and
-distrusted, had taken the child away and forced
-her mother to utter that falsehood. What more
-natural than that he should have placed it on
-the threshold of the Wylde mansion?</p>
-
-<p>Wild suspicion grew almost into agonized certainty
-as she recalled the startling likeness of the
-child to Norman Wylde.</p>
-
-<p>“Is it possible that his family can fail to see
-the likeness in his face?” she wondered, and,
-while she held with difficulty her part in the conversation
-going forward over the merits of different
-summer resorts, she was thinking wildly:</p>
-
-<p>“I do not believe now that my baby died. This
-child, with Norman’s eyes, belongs to me. My
-heart claimed him the moment he appeared at
-the door. And he was fond of me, too. He struggled
-so hard to get back to me when Rosalind
-forced him away. Oh, I must manage somehow
-to see that old housekeeper soon, and find
-out all that I can about little Pet.”</p>
-
-<p>“I think I shall go to White Sulphur Springs,”<span class="pagenum">[142]</span>
-said Mrs. Wylde. “Have you decided where you
-shall go, Mrs. Falconer?”</p>
-
-<p>“No, I cannot come to a decision, so I shall
-leave it to my husband,” replied Pansy.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, then you must go to White Sulphur! It
-is charming there,” cried Juliette, who wanted
-to go wherever the Wyldes went.</p>
-
-<p>“One place will please me quite as well as another,”
-Pansy replied indifferently; and when
-they took their leave it was quite understood that
-the Wyldes and the Falconers were to form a
-party for the springs as soon as possible.</p>
-
-<p>“But,” said dark-eyed Rosalind to her mother,
-“Juliette is going to be disappointed, for, of
-course, she thinks Norman is going with us.”</p>
-
-<p>“Norman must go. It is quite foolish, his
-being so stiff with us, and resenting things that
-were only done for his good,” Mrs. Wylde replied,
-in a displeased tone.</p>
-
-<p>When Pansy and Juliette were riding home,
-the latter observed:</p>
-
-<p>“Mrs. Falconer, did you notice what a strong
-resemblance that foundling child had to Norman
-Wylde?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[143]</span></p>
-
-<p>Pansy looked at her with a startled air, and
-answered:</p>
-
-<p>“You know I’ve only seen Norman Wylde once,
-and can’t really recall his features exactly. Does
-the child really resemble him? And, if so, what
-does it mean?”</p>
-
-<p>“Norman Wylde has lived a very fast life,
-you know,” Juliette answered. “I have long suspected
-that the child is his own, flung upon his
-doorstep in desperation by some one of his victims.
-Perhaps he suspects, perhaps he does not&mdash;but
-I feel almost certain of its parentage.”</p>
-
-<p>“And the family?” Pansy asked faintly.</p>
-
-<p>“I do not believe they suspect anything. If
-they did, they would not permit it to be kept beneath
-their roof. They would be perfectly furious,”
-replied Juliette, with an air of certainty,
-and watching Pansy closely for some signs of
-emotion.</p>
-
-<p>But the beautiful girl seemed to grow suddenly
-weary of the subject, for she said:</p>
-
-<p>“I wonder if my trousseau will do for the
-White Sulphur, or if I ought to order anything
-new?”</p>
-
-<p>“You will not need a new thing, nor shall I,<span class="pagenum">[144]</span>
-as I am in mourning, and cannot dance this season,”
-replied Juliette.</p>
-
-<p>As their carriage rolled along Grace Street,
-they saw Norman Wylde among the pedestrians
-on the pavement. He lifted his hat, and passed
-on without stopping, to the chagrin of Juliette,
-who hoped he would stop and chat with her a
-while.</p>
-
-<p>Her conscience did not reproach her for the
-falsehoods she had uttered against his fair fame,
-although she knew that there was not a purer,
-more high-minded young man in the whole city.
-But while she was still uncertain as to the identity
-of her uncle’s wife, it suited her best to pretend
-that Norman Wylde was dissolute and
-guilty. Although she suspected that little Pet
-was the child of Pansy Laurens, she was not
-certain, and she did not wish Mrs. Falconer to
-believe it.</p>
-
-<p>“She will, if she is really Pansy Laurens, hate
-him more if she believes that the child is some
-other woman’s,” she thought shrewdly, and smiled
-when she saw the signs of trouble that Pansy
-could not wholly disguise on her fair face.</p>
-
-<p>Poor Pansy! Her heart was well-nigh breaking,<span class="pagenum">[145]</span>
-and when she reached home she feigned a
-headache, that she might have an excuse for shutting
-herself up in her own room to think over
-the events of to-day, which had aroused suspicions
-never to be laid again until they were either confirmed
-or proved baseless. The dark eyes of the
-little child had aroused the mother’s heart within
-her breast, and it ached with a bitter yearning.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, if my baby did not die, they were cruel
-and wicked to deceive me, to cheat me out of
-its love all these years! But only let me find out
-if that child is mine, and I will have it&mdash;I will!”
-she sobbed wildly, in a mood of passionate recklessness.</p>
-
-<p>But suddenly she heard her husband’s voice in
-the hall, and shivered.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, what am I talking of? How dare I claim
-my child in the face of everything that is against
-me?” she moaned bitterly; and just then Colonel
-Falconer entered, with a face full of anxiety.</p>
-
-<p>“They told me you had a headache. Can I do
-anything for you, my darling?” he asked tenderly.</p>
-
-<p>“Only love me and pity me,” the girl answered,
-almost despairingly, out of her hidden sorrow.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[146]</span></p>
-
-<p>He was alarmed at her tone, and feared she
-was suffering greatly.</p>
-
-<p>“Let me send for a physician,” he urged.</p>
-
-<p>“No, no, I do not need medicine&mdash;only rest
-and quiet,” she pleaded, with a feeling of remorse
-in her heart that she could not love him better&mdash;he
-was so good and true.</p>
-
-<p>But since she had come back to Richmond, she
-was conscious that there was less chance than
-ever for her to love her husband in the ardent
-fashion to which he had the best claim. Her affection
-for him was so calm, so friendly, only,
-while, to her dismay, all her old madness had returned
-at the first sight of Norman Wylde’s handsome
-face.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh what a tyrant love is!” she sighed bitterly.
-“I thought I hated him&mdash;I know I ought to hate
-him&mdash;yet his face haunts me as it did in those old
-days when I loved him first. I dream of him by
-night, and I think of him by day, in spite of every
-endeavor to forget him. Heaven help me, for I
-am wretched!”</p>
-
-<p>Days passed, and Pansy found some relief from
-the haunting image of Norman Wylde in thinking
-of the little child that she firmly believed to<span class="pagenum">[147]</span>
-be her own. She struck up a great intimacy with
-the Wyldes in hopes of seeing the little one more
-frequently; but she was disappointed.</p>
-
-<p>Apparently the housekeeper had received strict
-orders, for Pet’s black eyes were no longer to
-be seen laughing around the drawing-room door,
-nor his footsteps heard pattering through the
-halls. There was a sunny plot of grass in the
-back yard where he played all day now, except
-when he was in that part of the house allotted
-to the housekeeper.</p>
-
-<p>But he had never forgotten the “pretty yady,”
-and he often asked Mrs. Meade, the housekeeper,
-about her, prattling so sweetly that the good old
-woman grew quite curious, and at last asked Mrs.
-Wylde about Mrs. Falconer.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, she is very beautiful&mdash;the most beautiful
-woman I ever saw,” Mrs. Wylde admitted.
-“She took quite a fancy to Pet, and admitted she
-was fond of children.”</p>
-
-<p>“He is always talking about her. I never knew
-him so fond of any one before,” said Mrs. Meade.
-“Did you say she came from California, ma’am?”</p>
-
-<p>“Colonel Falconer married her in California,
-but she is a native of Kentucky, and was never<span class="pagenum">[148]</span>
-in Richmond until now,” was the reply, which, if
-Mrs. Meade had harbored any suspicion, at once
-dissipated.</p>
-
-<p>Still she cherished a desire to see the woman
-who had been so kind to her little adopted child
-as to win its warm little heart.</p>
-
-<p>“I’d like to thank her for noticing the poor,
-forsaken little lamb,” she said to herself. “No
-one ever shows it any kindness, except Mr. Norman,
-and Heaven knows he ought to love it, for
-I firmly believe he is the father, though whether
-he suspects it or not, I can’t tell. Anyway, he’s
-fond of it, and kind to it.”</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[149]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXIII">CHAPTER XXIII.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">A DARING MOVE.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Fate helped Mrs. Meade to the accomplishment
-of her wish.</p>
-
-<p>One day all the negro servants had leave of
-absence to attend a meeting of some society very
-popular with all of their race, and there was no
-one left to answer the doorbell but the housekeeper.</p>
-
-<p>In the afternoon Mrs. Wylde and Rosalind
-went out to do some shopping, and Mrs. Meade
-seated herself with Pet in the wide, cool hall,
-that she might be within hearing of the bell.</p>
-
-<p>“Ain’t you doin’ to take me on the Capitol
-Square dis even’?” queried Pet.</p>
-
-<p>“No, my precious, I can’t take you out to-day,”
-answered the kind old woman, putting down her
-knitting to caress the beautiful boy, whose sunny
-curls and bright black eyes were so dear to her
-heart.</p>
-
-<p>“Den I wish dat pretty yady would tum adin,”
-exclaimed the child, looking longingly at the front
-door.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[150]</span></p>
-
-<p>At that moment there came a hurried, nervous
-peal at the doorbell.</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Falconer had been driving out alone when
-she saw Mrs. Wylde and her daughter entering
-a store on Broad Street, and she almost instantly
-left her carriage and directed the driver to wait
-for her, as she desired to do some shopping.</p>
-
-<p>Entering the same store, she bought a box of
-handkerchiefs, then, slipping out quietly, she
-made her way on foot to Grace Street, scarcely
-knowing what she meant to do, but thrilled by a
-wild longing to see once more the lovely child that
-she believed was her own.</p>
-
-<p>In the absence of the family, she believed that
-little Pet might perhaps be permitted the freedom
-of the house. She might make some pretext
-for entering the house and awaiting Mrs. Wylde’s
-return. Thus she might catch a glimpse of the
-little one whose charms had won her heart.</p>
-
-<p>She rang the bell with a trembling hand, and,
-to her joy and amazement, the first thing she saw
-when the door opened was little Pet, clinging to
-the dress of the white-haired, kindly looking old
-woman who invited her in.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[151]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Pretty yady! pretty yady!” screamed the child,
-and those words acquainted Mrs. Meade with
-the fact that Mrs. Falconer stood before her.</p>
-
-<p>“Will you walk in, ma’am? The ladies are out
-shopping, but they may come in at any minute,”
-she exclaimed eagerly, anxious that little Pet
-should have a few minutes at least with the
-woman he loved so dearly.</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Falconer trailed her soft summer silk
-through the doorway, and held out her hands to
-the eager child.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I will rest a few minutes, anyhow, as I
-walked from Broad Street and feel quite tired,”
-she exclaimed, adding gayly: “Oh, how cool and
-nice it is here in the hall. I will not go into the
-parlor, please.”</p>
-
-<p>She sank down upon the broad antique sofa,
-and little Pet, as clean and sweet as a rosebud,
-in his little white dress and slippers, climbed into
-her lap and clasped his chubby arms about her
-neck. Mrs. Meade closed and locked the door,
-and began to expostulate with him.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, please don’t scold him! Let him stay with
-me. I love children so dearly!” exclaimed Pansy,<span class="pagenum">[152]</span>
-pressing the child to her heart and kissing him
-many times.</p>
-
-<p>Then she looked up a little apprehensively at
-the old woman, asking timidly:</p>
-
-<p>“Are you&mdash;his&mdash;mother?”</p>
-
-<p>“No, madam; he’s my adopted child. He was
-left at this door almost three years ago, and I
-begged the family to let me keep the poor little
-forsaken baby for my own. I’m only the housekeeper,
-ma’am, and the child’s company for me,”
-explained Mrs. Meade, looking curiously into the
-beautiful, agitated face before her and wondering
-if Mrs. Falconer could possibly know anything
-of the child’s parentage, for the tender interest
-she took in him seemed very strange.</p>
-
-<p>“Can you remember what month it was when
-the child was left here?” queried Pansy eagerly.</p>
-
-<p>“It was on the night of the twenty-eighth of
-May, ma’am, and I feel sure it wasn’t more than
-an hour old&mdash;a poor little deserted newborn
-baby,” said Mrs. Meade, and Pansy sternly repressed
-a cry of joy as she hid her startled face
-in the boy’s plump neck, pretending to bite him,
-that she might hear his vociferous baby laughter.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[153]</span></p>
-
-<p>“He is mine! It is just as I thought. I was
-deceived by my mother, and my child stolen from
-me. Oh, what am I to do, for I feel that I cannot
-live without him?” she thought wildly.</p>
-
-<p>The little one clung to her, showering her face
-with kisses, and filling Mrs. Meade with wonder,
-for he was usually very shy of strangers.</p>
-
-<p>“Would you like to see the clothes he wore
-when he came here?” she asked, and went away,
-returning presently with a bundle, which she
-unrolled before Pansy’s eyes.</p>
-
-<p>“See this little linen shirt and gown, so neatly
-trimmed with crochet edging, and this fine soft
-flannel petticoat,” she said; and Pansy almost
-fainted when she saw the selfsame baby garments
-on which she had worked, in silence and secrecy,
-so many nights when she was at home, a
-wretched creature, looking forward with dread
-to her baby’s coming.</p>
-
-<p>She wound her arms about the child, and said
-faintly:</p>
-
-<p>“You ought to take good care of these things,
-for by their aid you might be enabled to trace
-the child’s mother some time.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[154]</span></p>
-
-<p>But she flushed deeply when Mrs. Meade answered:</p>
-
-<p>“I mean to take care of them, but I don’t know
-as I care to trace the mother. She must be a
-hard-hearted creature, to abandon her baby like
-she did.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, don’t judge her so hardly, please. Perhaps&mdash;perhaps&mdash;it
-was not her fault. They
-might have taken it from her,” exclaimed Pansy
-pleadingly, then paused in dismay, for, by the
-sudden lighting up of Mrs. Meade’s face, she saw
-that she had made a mistake in speaking so impulsively.
-Anxious to remove any suspicion from
-the woman’s mind, she went on apologetically:
-“Of course, the mother might have been hard-hearted.
-There are plenty such women, but it
-does seem strange that any one could desert such
-a beautiful child as this one.”</p>
-
-<p>“He is beautiful, and as good and sweet as he
-is pretty,” said Mrs. Meade warmly, and Pansy
-exclaimed, almost passionately:</p>
-
-<p>“I wish he had been left at my door! I would
-certainly have adopted him for my own. I love
-him dearly.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[155]</span></p>
-
-<p>“I ’ove oo!” cried little Pet, gazing into her
-beautiful face with shining eyes, and she strained
-him close to her heart again, exclaiming:</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, you sweet little darling!”</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Meade gazed on the pretty scene with
-wonder and suspicion, asking herself why Mrs.
-Falconer and the child were so strongly attached
-to each other. She knew that Norman Wylde
-had been in trouble several years before on account
-of a pretty factory girl, who was reported
-to have drowned herself, but she had never
-heard that there was a child in the case. She
-wondered now if that unfortunate girl had looked
-like Mrs. Falconer.</p>
-
-<p>“I mean to find out,” she resolved, just as
-Pansy looked up and asked pleadingly:</p>
-
-<p>“Won’t you give me this child if my husband
-will allow me to adopt him? I will be like a
-mother to him, educate him, bring him up to a
-noble manhood, if he lives.”</p>
-
-<p>“Would you like to go with the lady, and leave
-your poor old Meade, my pet?” exclaimed the
-housekeeper, and the little one murmured a delighted
-affirmative.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[156]</span></p>
-
-<p>“You see!” cried Pansy triumphantly. “Now,
-may I have him?”</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Meade shook her head.</p>
-
-<p>“Colonel Falconer would never permit you to
-have him,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>“My husband has never refused a request of
-mine in our whole acquaintance,” cried Pansy
-impatiently.</p>
-
-<p>“But he would refuse this,” said Mrs. Meade.
-“You will have some children of your own some
-time, Mrs. Falconer, then this poor little one
-would be thrust aside. No, no&mdash;I could not part
-with him, even to one who likes him as much as
-you do, dear lady.”</p>
-
-<p>Pansy gazed at her with a grieved and baffled
-air. Her red under lip quivered and tears started
-to her beautiful eyes. For a moment she could
-not speak, so bitter was her disappointment; and
-Mrs. Meade folded up the tiny garments in an
-embarrassed fashion, ashamed of refusing the
-lady’s request, but feeling that she was acting
-for the best.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly a bright thought came to Pansy.</p>
-
-<p>“Mrs. Meade, I see that you love Pet too well<span class="pagenum">[157]</span>
-to give him up,” she said gently. “I don’t blame
-you, for I love him dearly myself. But couldn’t
-you come and be my housekeeper? Then I could
-see him every day.”</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Meade threw up her hands in dismay.</p>
-
-<p>“Leave the Wyldes!” she cried. “Oh, my dear
-young lady, I’ve kept house for them these
-twenty-five years, and to leave them now would
-be like pulling up an old tree by the roots. I’m
-too old to be transplanted. I should die.”</p>
-
-<p>Pansy clasped the child close to her aching
-heart with a cry of despair that she could not
-repress.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, my little darling, my little darling, I shall
-see you no more, then! Fate is too strong for
-us,” she cried.</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Meade took off her spectacles and wiped
-the moisture of tears from them. She was deeply
-touched by Pansy’s affection for Pet, and, after
-a moment, she said significantly:</p>
-
-<p>“Mrs. Falconer, I’m sorry to seem harsh and
-unkind, refusing to give you the child, but I know
-you will forget it directly. While, as for me,
-my heart is bound up in him, and I’ve always
-said that I’d never give up my claim, except to<span class="pagenum">[158]</span>
-some one who had a better right to him than I
-have.”</p>
-
-<p>Pansy glanced up, startled, and met the significant
-gaze of the kind old eyes. She understood.</p>
-
-<p>With a burning blush, she put the little one
-out of her arms and rose to go.</p>
-
-<p>“Then, of course, I can urge you no longer.
-Your claim is too strong,” she said, trying to
-speak coldly, as a mask for her bitter disappointment.</p>
-
-<p>“As for not seeing Pet any more, Mrs. Falconer,
-if you care about it I can make it easy
-enough for you to see him. I take him to the
-Capitol Square every pleasant afternoon,” said
-Mrs. Meade; and then she asked eagerly; “Won’t
-you come in the parlor and play the piano for Pet?
-He loves music so dearly.”</p>
-
-<p>“I ought to go this minute,” she said, but
-yielded to the tiny, persuasive little fingers that
-clasped hers, and stayed almost an hour longer,
-playing and singing for the delighted little one.</p>
-
-<p>When she took leave she slipped a golden coin
-in the baby fingers.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[159]</span></p>
-
-<p>“To buy candy,” she said, kissing him fondly,
-and promising to come to the Capitol Square the
-next afternoon to see him. Then she tore herself
-away, and Mrs. Meade had hard work to
-console Pet, who wept bitterly at the parting.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[160]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXIV">CHAPTER XXIV.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">OLD LOVERS FACE TO FACE.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>How strange it seemed to Pansy to be going
-again, after the lapse of more than three years,
-to the Capitol Square to meet one whom she loved,
-but whom she must see in secret because a cruel
-fate kept them sundered in life, but one in heart.
-Then it was the father&mdash;now it was the child.</p>
-
-<p>While she was wondering how she was to get
-away from the lynx eyes of her husband’s niece,
-Juliette came in to say that she would like to have
-the phaëton for her own use that afternoon, if
-Mrs. Falconer was not going out.</p>
-
-<p>“One of my dearest friends, Miss Norwood,
-is just home from a long visit in New York, and
-I would like so much to take her for a drive,” she
-said.</p>
-
-<p>“Pray do so. I shall not need the phaëton this
-afternoon,” Pansy answered eagerly.</p>
-
-<p>“You are not going out yourself?” Juliette
-asked.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know. Should I do so, it will only be
-for a short walk.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[161]</span></p>
-
-<p>Juliette thanked her and hastened away.</p>
-
-<p>“Colonel Falconer is busy with his lawyer,
-Juliette away, and the field clear. I will go and
-see my child,” she thought gladly.</p>
-
-<p>It was July, and the day was warm and sultry.
-Pansy dressed herself simply, in a plain white
-dress and leghorn hat, and, taking a large sun-shade
-in her hand, started for the Capitol Square.</p>
-
-<p>Her heart throbbed painfully as she walked
-slowly along the old familiar streets, thinking of
-those past days, so full of love and pain.</p>
-
-<p>It was only four o’clock when she reached the
-square, and the nurses and children were just beginning
-to come in. She looked everywhere, but
-there was no sign of Mrs. Meade and little Pet.</p>
-
-<p>“I am too early. I must sit down in some
-quiet, secluded spot and wait,” she thought, and
-sought a shady seat on the slope of the hill back
-of the Capitol building.</p>
-
-<p>“It was here we sat that day when Norman
-told me he was going to London,” she murmured
-sadly, and then she recoiled with a sudden
-cry:</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[162]</span></p>
-
-<p>The quiet bench she sought was already occupied,
-and by Norman Wylde himself.</p>
-
-<p>She could scarcely repress a wild and passionate
-cry of pain and reproach. As it was, she
-dared not trust herself, and turned to flee.</p>
-
-<p>But Norman Wylde had been aroused from a
-deep abstraction by her low exclamation of dismay,
-and, starting up, he confronted her, coming
-out of such a mood that he for a moment fancied
-his lost love had come back from the other world
-to comfort his sad heart. A glad cry came from
-his lips:</p>
-
-<p>“Pansy!”</p>
-
-<p>That name arrested her footsteps. She paused,
-frightened, moveless. Had he recognized her?
-Would he tax her with her identity?</p>
-
-<p>“Pansy!” he repeated tenderly, and, although
-she trembled and grew faint at the passion in
-his voice, it came to her suddenly that she must
-make some defense for herself. She, the honored
-wife of the proud Colonel Falconer, must
-never own herself to be that Pansy Laurens
-whom the man before her had deceived and betrayed.
-She would be brave and proud for her
-husband’s sake, as well as for her own.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[163]</span></p>
-
-<p>Steeling her heart and her nerves as well as
-she could, she turned toward him, saying coldly:</p>
-
-<p>“It is quite true, Mr. Wylde, that my name is
-Pansy, but as you and I have never met but once
-before to-day, it seems to me that I should be
-Mrs. Falconer to you.”</p>
-
-<p>Norman Wylde could only stare for a moment
-with bewildered eyes at the lovely speaker, and
-mutter helplessly:</p>
-
-<p>“Mrs. Falconer!”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” she replied coldly, and suddenly he
-struck his hand against his forehead, exclaiming:</p>
-
-<p>“I am a fool, a madman! Madam, pardon
-me. I&mdash;I&mdash;was mistaken.” Then, seeing that
-she lingered, he added, with an imploring gesture:
-“Will you not sit down here for one moment
-and let me explain?”</p>
-
-<p>She knew quite well that she ought not to stay,
-but she could not turn from him. She sank down
-on the rustic bench and waited with throbbing
-pulses for an explanation. What would he say&mdash;what
-could he say?</p>
-
-<p>He sat down beside her, pale with emotion, but
-so splendidly handsome in his cool summer suit<span class="pagenum">[164]</span>
-and spotless linen that her heart throbbed madly,
-and she thought:</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, my false love! How grandly handsome,
-how winning you are! It is no wonder that I
-lost my heart to you, innocent child that I was!
-Oh, would that you had been true and good, as
-well as fascinating.”</p>
-
-<p>But no one who saw how coldly and proudly
-her blue eyes looked at him would have thought
-that such passionate thoughts thrilled her heart.
-He himself believed that she was bitterly angry,
-and he hastened to say deprecatingly:</p>
-
-<p>“Mrs. Falconer, you are so startlingly like one
-I used to know that when you appeared before
-me I did not remember you as Mrs. Falconer,
-and I called you by that name unwittingly. No
-offense to you was intended. I did not know that
-you were called Pansy.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, that is my name. I was Pansy Wilcox
-when Colonel Falconer married me. And so you
-say that I resemble some one you used to know,
-Mr. Wylde? How strange!” Pansy said, trying
-to draw him into some reminiscences of the past,
-womanlike, wishing to know whether he remembered
-her with love or remorse.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[165]</span></p>
-
-<p>He sighed heavily, and answered:</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, you are the image of one I loved and
-lost. Do you remember the night I came to your
-house, Mrs. Falconer? I came very near calling
-you Pansy then&mdash;I was so startled at the first
-sight of your face. But while you were singing
-I recovered myself so that I could greet you
-calmly. It was different just now, for I was
-thinking of that other Pansy, and you came upon
-me so suddenly that I had no time for thought,
-and I called you by her name.”</p>
-
-<p>“It was some one you loved?” Pansy said, in
-a low, soft voice.</p>
-
-<p>“Loved!” exclaimed Norman Wylde hoarsely,
-and his dark eyes seemed to burn into her soul
-as he added: “Love is hardly the word. I worshiped,
-adored my little Pansy.”</p>
-
-<p>“Did she die?” asked Pansy gently.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, she died,” he replied hoarsely; then, pausing
-abruptly: “Has not Juliette Ives told you all
-about it?” he asked.</p>
-
-<p>“No.”</p>
-
-<p>“It is a wonder,” he muttered.</p>
-
-<p>“You make me quite curious. I think unfortunate
-love affairs are so sad and romantic. Was<span class="pagenum">[166]</span>
-yours unfortunate, Mr. Wylde?” asked Pansy,
-still leading him on.</p>
-
-<p>“It was tragic,” he answered gloomily; and she
-was glad when she saw he was suffering some
-remorse for the ill that he had wrought. Her
-heart began to grow softer toward him.</p>
-
-<p>“He is sorry for his sin. Perhaps he would
-undo it if he could,” whispered her heart.</p>
-
-<p>Norman Wylde lifted his sad, dark eyes and
-looked at her gravely. Oh, how strong was the
-resemblance to his lost love, and how strangely
-his heart thrilled at the sound of her voice! No
-one but Pansy Laurens had ever made his heart
-beat faster by a voice of music.</p>
-
-<p>“I wish you would tell me all about it,” she
-said persuasively.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[167]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXV">CHAPTER XXV.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">AN OLD STORY.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Pansy had quite forgotten why she came to
-the Capitol Square. She could think of nothing
-but Norman Wylde and the sorrow on his handsome
-face. She lingered beside him until he consented
-to tell her the story of his unhappy love
-affair.</p>
-
-<p>“I was engaged to Juliette Ives, but I was not
-very much in love with her. I met, in the country,
-a beautiful young girl named Pansy Laurens,”
-he said. “The young lady was not in our
-set. She was poor, and worked at Arnell &amp; Grey’s
-tobacco factory; but she was the fairest, sweetest,
-most charming little creature I ever met. We fell
-in love at first sight, and I broke my engagement
-with Juliette for her sake. But, of course, you
-think, as every one else did, Mrs. Falconer, that I
-acted badly.”</p>
-
-<p>He stopped and looked searchingly into her
-pale face. Oh, how like it was to his lost love’s,
-only with a proud smile on it that made it a<span class="pagenum">[168]</span>
-little different from Pansy’s, that had been so
-sweet and gentle.</p>
-
-<p>“I am very much interested; please go on,” she
-murmured. And, sighing heavily, Norman
-Wylde continued:</p>
-
-<p>“Of course, everybody set themselves against
-us, Pansy’s relations as well as mine.”</p>
-
-<p>Pansy trembled, for the deep, sweet, thrilling
-voice went to her heart, which began to beat
-heavily and painfully. How her thoughts went
-back to the past, when he had been her worshiped
-lover, and she had thought him true!</p>
-
-<p>“We met in secret, my sweet little love and I,”
-continued Norman, “but we could not see each
-other very often, because she had to work in the
-factory all the week. But on Sundays I saw her
-at church, and in the afternoons she would come
-here, or to Libby Hill Park, always to a different
-place, that no one might suspect us. I would have
-married her at once, but we should have had nothing
-to live on, as I had no clients yet, and my father
-had threatened to disinherit me if I did not
-give her up. But I vowed in secret that I would
-not do that, and, at last, fate&mdash;as I thought&mdash;opened
-out a way for us to be happy. I found a<span class="pagenum">[169]</span>
-client who wished me to go to Europe and manage
-an important case.”</p>
-
-<p>“And you went?” she asked, for he paused so
-long that she feared his confidences were at an
-end.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, I went,” he answered slowly; then he
-looked at her gravely, and said: “You are a
-stranger, Mrs. Falconer, and there is something
-connected with my trip to London that I should
-not betray, perhaps, for the sake of my family.”</p>
-
-<p>“Whatever you tell me will be held sacred,”
-she said, almost inaudibly, and the dark eyes
-looked at her in a sort of wonder.</p>
-
-<p>“I ought not to betray this to any one but a
-dear friend,” he said hesitatingly. “Mrs. Falconer,
-I wonder if you could like me well enough
-to be my friend? It would be very pleasant to
-me. You look so much like her that I should find
-comfort in your friendship.”</p>
-
-<p>Many and many a time Pansy Laurens had said
-to herself that Norman Wylde was the greatest
-enemy she had on earth. But now she held out
-her hand to him, in its soft silken glove, and he
-took it and pressed it eagerly.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[170]</span></p>
-
-<p>“I will be your friend,” she said, wondering
-if he was going to confess to her now about the
-secret marriage that was no marriage, after all.
-She was so curious to hear how he would justify
-that that she did not hesitate to promise him her
-friendship.</p>
-
-<p>But, to her wonder and indignation, he skipped
-quite over that important era in his love affair,
-and went on telling her about his trip to London:</p>
-
-<p>“Mrs. Falconer, that tour on which I prided
-myself was a plot, a trap, laid by my parents to
-get me away from Richmond and from Pansy.
-My client was a paid tool of my father’s, and his
-craft followed me to London, where, for almost
-a year, I remained, vainly seeking links in a case
-that never had existed, save in the fertile brain
-of those who invented that pretext for the purpose
-of luring me away from home and love. My
-brain whirls yet when I recall how I was duped
-and deceived, my life and hers made pitiable
-wrecks for the sake of a despicable pride of birth
-and position.”</p>
-
-<p>His agitation was terrible for the moment. His
-dark eyes blazed, great drops of perspiration
-started out on his pallid brow. As for her, she<span class="pagenum">[171]</span>
-could not speak; she sat staring at him with
-parted lips and blue eyes full of misery.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, I ought not to have gone back to that
-time, for it stirs the smoldering ashes into fire
-again,” he cried bitterly. “Think, Mrs. Falconer,
-how I suffered all that time, never hearing a
-word from my darling, although I wrote to her
-every week, and she had promised to write to me.
-And, at last&mdash;oh, Heaven!&mdash;there came to me a
-Richmond paper, saying that she had drowned
-herself.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” sighed Pansy sympathetically, but he
-did not seem to hear her. His head drooped, and
-his eyes sought the ground. He seemed to be
-oblivious to all but his own pain.</p>
-
-<p>For her, she was thinking bitterly:</p>
-
-<p>“I am glad he is capable of some remorse for
-his sin. It makes me think a little more kindly of
-him.”</p>
-
-<p>Then she shuddered at herself, for she knew
-that she was thinking of him more than kindly&mdash;fast
-falling under the old glamour&mdash;and she knew
-this must not be, that she ought to fly as from the
-tempting of a serpent. She made a motion to
-rise, but he looked up quickly.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[172]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Do not go&mdash;yet,” he said pleadingly. “Somehow,
-it is a sad pleasure to me to see you sitting
-there, with that face so like poor dead Pansy’s
-that it brings back all the perished past.”</p>
-
-<p>At those words she could not rise. She seemed
-to have no volition of her own. She sat still, comparing
-herself to a bird charmed by a serpent.</p>
-
-<p>“Do you know,” he went on, “we sat here on
-the very bench one Sunday, just a week before I
-sailed for England. She wore a white dress and
-wide straw hat, something like you wear now. I
-told her of my good fortune, but, poor child, a
-presentiment seemed to come over her gentle
-spirit, and she wept most bitterly because I was
-going away.”</p>
-
-<p>“He will tell me now of that most shameful
-marriage,” Pansy thought; but again she was
-mistaken.</p>
-
-<p>“Poor little darling! No wonder she felt so
-gloomy, for our parting was the knell of her fate,”
-said Norman Wylde. “I feel quite sure that by
-some underhand means our letters to each other
-were suppressed, for not a line ever came to me,
-though I shall never doubt that she wrote often,
-and I feel quite certain that it was the agony of<span class="pagenum">[173]</span>
-suspense and hope deferred that drove her to
-suicide.”</p>
-
-<p>“You came home, then, did you not?” she
-asked.</p>
-
-<p>“No; for I could not have borne to return and
-find her gone. What was there to come back to,
-Mrs. Falconer? Not even a grave, for her body
-was never recovered from the river.”</p>
-
-<p>He raised his downcast eyes and looked into
-her face with such a searching expression that
-she trembled lest he was going to tax her with
-her identity.</p>
-
-<p>But he did not do so. He only said:</p>
-
-<p>“I was too miserable and distracted to come
-home then. Besides, I had not yet discovered
-the fraud that had been perpetrated on me. I
-stayed in London almost a year longer, vainly
-prosecuting my search for the missing links in
-my client’s case, and then, by accident, I found
-out how I had been deceived. I came home at
-once then, and taxed my parents with the truth.
-They acknowledged the deception, but claimed
-that it had been done for my good, and begged
-my pardon. I would not forgive them, yet, for
-the sake of family pride, I kept secret their perfidy,<span class="pagenum">[174]</span>
-and you are the first one to whom it has
-been revealed.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, what a sad, what a miserable ending for
-so sweet a love story! It seems a pity you did not
-marry the girl and take her away with you!”
-cried Pansy.</p>
-
-<p>“I wish that I had done so, for then I might
-have been happy, instead of the most miserable
-and remorseful man in the whole world,”
-groaned Norman Wylde; and she wondered how
-much of this was acting and how much reality.</p>
-
-<p>“Perhaps he loved me better than he knew, and
-repented when too late the miserable betrayal that
-wrecked my life,” she thought, softening more
-and more toward him whom she knew she ought
-to hate.</p>
-
-<p>But before either one could utter another word,
-the prattling voice of a little child was heard,
-and Pansy looked up and saw Mrs. Meade and
-little Pet coming along the path toward where
-she sat.</p>
-
-<p>Pet caught sight of the two sitting there together,
-and ran forward with a cry of delight.</p>
-
-<p>“Pretty yady, pretty yady!” he cried joyously,
-and climbed into Pansy’s lap and kissed her.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[175]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXVI">CHAPTER XXVI.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">THE ENEMY AT WORK.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Norman Wylde seemed almost petrified with
-amazement at the scene before him. He gazed
-in wonder at Pansy and the child, and from them
-to Mrs. Meade.</p>
-
-<p>The old housekeeper, on her part, was surprised,
-too. She scarcely knew what to make
-of finding Norman Wylde here with Mrs. Falconer,
-but she knew not what to say. She could
-only stand and stare with a look of wonder on
-her fat face, which was flushed crimson from
-walking in the hot sun.</p>
-
-<p>Perhaps Pansy understood something of the
-surprise she was exciting in Norman Wylde’s
-mind, for the color rose warmly into her face as
-she returned the child’s caress and arose in a
-hasty way, gently putting him down upon the
-seat, and turning toward Mrs. Meade.</p>
-
-<p>“Good afternoon, Mrs. Meade. I am glad you
-have brought your sweet little boy out for a holiday,”
-she exclaimed, adding sweetly: “I wish I
-could stay for another romp with him, such as I<span class="pagenum">[176]</span>
-had the other day. But I have an engagement in
-a few minutes. Good afternoon, Mr. Wylde. I
-have quite enjoyed my little chat with you while
-I rested under these beautiful trees.”</p>
-
-<p>He rose and bowed courteously, giving her a
-glance of grave friendliness that made her heart
-beat faster as she walked away, leaving all her
-heart behind her with her child and the father of
-her child, for&mdash;guilty wretch though she believed
-him&mdash;she could not strangle her yearning love.</p>
-
-<p>“I believe that he is sorry for his sin,” she
-kept telling herself, as some palliative of her tenderness
-for him, when suddenly she heard quick
-footsteps behind her and a hand stealthily touched
-her elbow.</p>
-
-<p>“He has followed me,” she thought, with some
-alarm, and turned her head quickly.</p>
-
-<p>Then a low cry of dismay and anger came
-from her lips.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Finley, the grocer, her feared and hated
-stepfather, was walking along by her side, leering
-wickedly down into her face with an air of
-recognition that almost made her heart stop its
-beating.</p>
-
-<p>“Good afternoon, Pansy. I am glad to see that<span class="pagenum">[177]</span>
-you are making it up with your old lover. I was
-behind a tree, watching you two while you sat
-on that bench talking. You find the old love as
-sweet as ever, eh? Well, no one can blame you
-for not loving that old man you married for his
-money,” were the impertinent words that greeted
-her astonished ears.</p>
-
-<p>She drew herself up haughtily, and tried to
-freeze him with her indignant glance.</p>
-
-<p>“Get out of my path, you wretch! How dare
-you persist in pretending to recognize me as some
-one you have known?” she exclaimed angrily;
-but he only laughed, and, staying close by her
-side, retorted:</p>
-
-<p>“Somebody else recognized you as some one he
-had known before, too, Mrs. Falconer. Didn’t I
-hear Norman Wylde calling you Pansy an hour
-or so ago, when you first came up to him?”</p>
-
-<p>She trembled with horror at the accusation, but,
-remembering that she had not admitted the truth
-to Norman Wylde, took courage.</p>
-
-<p>“Pshaw! Resemblances are common,” she
-said carelessly. “I do not deny that Mr. Wylde
-took me for some one else, but he immediately<span class="pagenum">[178]</span>
-apologized for his mistake, and if you had the
-instincts of a gentleman you would do the same.”</p>
-
-<p>“But I have not made a mistake,” leered Finley.
-He kept along by her side, although she was
-walking fast, and continued: “Pansy, you had
-as well own up to me, for I have recognized you,
-and I mean to make money out of my knowledge.
-I am poor, and I have your mother and sisters
-to support. You are rich, and you must give me
-some money for them, or I will betray you to
-your husband.”</p>
-
-<p>Although Pansy trembled inwardly at his bold
-threat, she determined that she would not yield to
-his demands.</p>
-
-<p>“Once own that I am Pansy Laurens, and all
-is lost. I could never satisfy the man’s rapacity,
-and he would only betray me at last. Besides, he
-cannot prove my identity; he only suspects it,”
-she thought wisely; and, to his angry astonishment,
-she laughed scornfully.</p>
-
-<p>“Why are you laughing?” he demanded; and,
-lifting her bright face defiantly, she answered:</p>
-
-<p>“I am pleased because I see a policeman up
-there near the governor’s mansion, and I am going
-to give you into custody for annoying me.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[179]</span></p>
-
-<p>He followed her glance and grew pale as he
-saw the blue-coated custodian of the law pacing
-along the walk she indicated. Stopping short,
-he growled fiercely:</p>
-
-<p>“You wouldn’t dare!”</p>
-
-<p>“You will see, my clever friend,” she replied
-airily, also stopping and looking up at him again
-so coolly that he wondered at her unconcern.</p>
-
-<p>“You had better leave me,” she said calmly,
-though white to the lips with anger. “I do not
-desire to have you arrested, for I know my husband
-would have you punished to the full extent
-of the law. He knows all about my past, and
-your talk of betrayal is the senseless chatter of
-a madman. Will you go now, or shall I call
-the policeman, or any of these gentlemen sitting
-around?”</p>
-
-<p>He was baffled by her cool assumption of fearlessness,
-for he did not dare to drive her to bay.
-No one knew so well as himself what cause he
-had to dread exposure.</p>
-
-<p>Glowering fiercely on her from his small, beady
-black eyes, he hissed, low and threateningly:</p>
-
-<p>“I am going now, but not that I’m afraid of
-you, nor that policeman, either, only for your<span class="pagenum">[180]</span>
-mother’s sake, because it would break her heart
-to know that her shameless child was still alive.
-But you will hear from me again&mdash;remember
-that, my saucy madam, and live in fear of my
-vengeance.”</p>
-
-<p>“I am not in the least afraid of you, and I am
-going to call that policeman this minute,” Pansy
-answered, walking briskly away; and, to her joy,
-Mr. Finley turned and walked quickly off, going
-out of the square at a gate directly opposite.</p>
-
-<p>“He is a coward, despite his threats, and he will
-not trouble me again, I hope,” she murmured,
-leaving the square and going quickly toward home
-with no other drawback, except meeting several
-factory girls going home from work whose faces
-were perfectly familiar to her, and who had not
-forgotten hers, either, for one nudged the other
-and exclaimed audibly:</p>
-
-<p>“Good gracious, the very image of poor Pansy
-Laurens!”</p>
-
-<p>Pansy’s heart gave a wild throb, and she hurried
-past the girls, thinking:</p>
-
-<p>“I ought never to have come back here. I am
-not changed as I thought I was. Every one knows
-my face, and I fear trouble will come of it yet.<span class="pagenum">[181]</span>
-Suppose I were to meet my mother, or sisters,
-for instance, and they were to claim me, I do
-not believe I could be brave enough to deny my
-identity.”</p>
-
-<p>That night she begged her husband to hurry
-up his business, that he might take her away from
-the city.</p>
-
-<p>“It is so warm and sultry here that I am almost
-afraid I shall fall ill if I stay,” she said;
-and he, remembering her headache of a few days
-before, took alarm at once.</p>
-
-<p>“It is very vexatious, this law business. My
-sister’s affairs were in a terribly tangled condition,
-and I’m afraid it will be several days yet
-before I can get away,” he said; then, smiling
-and encircling the graceful figure with his arm,
-he added; “But that is no reason, my darling,
-that you and Juliette should remain here. Both
-of you are quite ready to go, you say. Then why
-not start to White Sulphur to-morrow, and let
-me follow when I get through my task here?”</p>
-
-<p>Her heart leaped with joy, then she inwardly
-chided herself for her eagerness to leave him.</p>
-
-<p>“It would not be kind to leave you&mdash;and&mdash;I
-should miss you so,” she murmured, speaking<span class="pagenum">[182]</span>
-quite truthfully, for she had a gentle affection
-for him still, in spite of the truant heart that
-fluttered so at the very thought of Norman
-Wylde.</p>
-
-<p>“But if I can get away from Richmond I shall
-not think so often of him, and I can be truer in
-heart to my husband,” she thought, for she had
-heard the Wyldes say that Norman would not
-consent to accompany them.</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Falconer was pleased at the knowledge
-that she would miss him, but he declared that he
-was afraid she would be sick if she remained any
-longer in the city.</p>
-
-<p>“And as I cannot get away yet, you must not
-wait for me any longer. You can write to me
-every day, and that will be some consolation for
-your absence,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>Juliette was delighted when she heard that they
-were not to wait for her uncle. She hurried
-around to the Wyldes the next morning to persuade
-them to go, too, and was successful in her
-mission.</p>
-
-<p>“Only Norman says he can’t get away from
-his business this summer,” said Rosalind.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[183]</span></p>
-
-<p>“And he won’t go?” Juliette asked, bitterly
-disappointed.</p>
-
-<p>“No.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, very well. There will be plenty of other
-beaus!” Juliette said, tossing her head and pretending
-to be indifferent. “Well, it is settled
-that we meet at the depot this evening, Mrs.
-Wylde?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” replied the lady; and Juliette hurried
-home to make her arrangements, and to vent
-her spleen on Norman Wylde by saying to Pansy:</p>
-
-<p>“Norman Wylde won’t go because I have
-treated him so coldly, Rosalind says; but he may
-sulk all he chooses. I shall not make up with him
-in a hurry.”</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[184]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXVII">CHAPTER XXVII.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">“A MARRIED FLIRT.”</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>When Pansy had left Norman Wylde, Mrs.
-Meade sat down on the seat she had vacated,
-and her face was very grave and thoughtful.</p>
-
-<p>It had appeared very strange to her to find
-Norman Wylde and the beautiful Mrs. Falconer
-alone in the park together, and seeming to be on
-very amicable terms with each other, whereas
-she had supposed them to be almost utter
-strangers.</p>
-
-<p>“Perhaps she is a flirt,” she thought suspiciously;
-and just then Norman Wylde turned his
-head, after watching Pansy until she disappeared,
-and said:</p>
-
-<p>“How does it happen that Mrs. Falconer and
-Pet are so well acquainted with each other?”</p>
-
-<p>The old housekeeper, who had known him ever
-since he was a little boy, answered dryly:</p>
-
-<p>“Mr. Norman, I was just going to ask the same
-question about yourself and Mrs. Falconer.”</p>
-
-<p>He smiled at first, then flushed a dark red at
-her searching glance, and answered:</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[185]</span></p>
-
-<p>“But I do not know Mrs. Falconer very well.
-I have never met her but once or twice until she
-came down this path, quite by accident, a while
-ago, and I invited her to rest a few minutes&mdash;she
-looked so tired and warm.”</p>
-
-<p>“I was afraid she was one of them married
-flirts that’s getting so fashionable nowadays,”
-muttered Mrs. Meade.</p>
-
-<p>“A married flirt! No, indeed! I believe Mrs.
-Falconer is as pure and sweet and shy as a child.
-She is so much like one I knew years ago that
-she could not be otherwise,” exclaimed Norman
-Wylde earnestly, as he fondled Pet, who had
-crept to his knee, thus consoling himself for the
-departure of his “pretty yady.”</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Meade looked up, all eager interest.</p>
-
-<p>“Like some one you knew?” she exclaimed
-eagerly.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” he replied, with a heavy sigh, and the
-housekeeper asked coaxingly:</p>
-
-<p>“Would you mind telling me whom she looked
-like, Mr. Norman?”</p>
-
-<p>“Curiosity, thy name is woman!” he said, with
-a low laugh, half dreary amusement, half bitterness;
-then, with another sigh, he went on: “Mrs.<span class="pagenum">[186]</span>
-Meade, I suppose you know all about my unfortunate
-love affair of three years ago?”</p>
-
-<p>She nodded, and then he said:</p>
-
-<p>“This beautiful Mrs. Falconer is the image of
-the girl I loved, and from whom my parents
-parted me. She committed suicide by drowning
-within a year after I went away, you remember?”</p>
-
-<p>“Ah!” exclaimed the old housekeeper, and her
-face began to glow with excitement.</p>
-
-<p>“Mr. Norman, are you sure she drowned herself?”
-she asked eagerly.</p>
-
-<p>“Sure!” he repeated, turning toward her, with
-wondering eyes. “Why, what do you mean, Mrs.
-Meade?”</p>
-
-<p>“Was her body ever recovered from the river?”
-retorted the housekeeper significantly.</p>
-
-<p>He started violently, then answered:</p>
-
-<p>“No!”</p>
-
-<p>“So I thought,” said Mrs. Meade, and, following
-up her train of thought, she added: “There
-isn’t any possibility that Mrs. Falconer can be
-the same girl, is there, Mr. Norman?”</p>
-
-<p>He sprang from his seat, pushing Pet unconsciously
-from him, and confronted her, pale with
-surprise and excitement.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[187]</span></p>
-
-<p>“You must be mad!” he exclaimed. “This lady
-was one of the belles of Louisville&mdash;never was
-in Richmond until this summer, I am told.”</p>
-
-<p>“Sit down, Mr. Norman, and forgive me for
-talking like an old fool, although maybe I’m not
-such a fool, after all,” answered Mrs. Meade.
-But he would not sit down again; he remained
-standing in front of her and looking down consciously
-into her agitated face as she continued,
-in a low, grave voice:</p>
-
-<p>“Being such an old woman, Mr. Norman, and
-knowing you ever since you was no bigger than
-Pet here, you needn’t mind my asking you questions
-that might be impertinent from some people.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ask what you please, Mrs. Meade. I am
-too much your friend to take offense at your plain
-speaking,” he replied encouragingly; and, without
-any further preamble, she queried:</p>
-
-<p>“In that unfortunate love affair of yours, Mr.
-Norman, was there any prospect of&mdash;a&mdash;child?”</p>
-
-<p>“No!” he answered quickly, almost angrily, yet
-she saw the hot color shoot up to his brow, and
-his glance fell before hers.</p>
-
-<p>She sighed, and exclaimed:</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[188]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Then I’m all at sea again, for, to tell you the
-truth, Mr. Norman, I’ve been half believing all
-this time that Pet here was your own child!”</p>
-
-<p>He started as if shot, and, dropping into a seat
-again, caught Pet’s hand and drew him forward,
-scrutinizing his beautiful features with eager
-eyes:</p>
-
-<p>“Can’t you see that he has your eyes, your
-features?” exclaimed Mrs. Meade triumphantly,
-and, with something like a groan, he muttered:</p>
-
-<p>“And something of her, too!” he said. “That
-smile, those dainty dimples, how like, how like!
-Now I understand what drew my heart so
-strongly to the child. Mrs. Meade,” looking up
-at her with blazing eyes, “you must answer now
-the question I asked you first: How is it that
-Pet and Mrs. Falconer know each other so well?”</p>
-
-<p>And, for answer, she began at the first meeting
-of Mrs. Falconer and the child, and related all
-that had taken place since, dwelling strongly on
-their mutual passionate attachment for each
-other, and on the lady’s eager desire to adopt the
-child.</p>
-
-<p>“I will tell you the truth, Mr. Norman: I
-strongly suspect that this beautiful lady is the<span class="pagenum">[189]</span>
-child’s own mother, and if there is no chance that
-the little one can be yours, why, then I ought to
-let her have him, maybe. I refused because I
-thought he was yours,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>“You were right not to let her have him,” he
-exclaimed hurriedly. Then his face dropped into
-his hands a moment, and passers-by looked curiously
-at the old woman, the pretty child, and
-the handsome man bowed in an attitude of deep
-dejection.</p>
-
-<p>Little Pet was so grieved at the man’s sorrowful
-attitude that he went up to him and encircled
-Norman’s neck with his chubby arms, and inquired
-tenderly:</p>
-
-<p>“Oo kyin’ tause pretty yady gone?”</p>
-
-<p>The young man caught him in his arms, straining
-him to his breast, and again gazed eagerly into
-his lovely face.</p>
-
-<p>“My little darling, what if it were to prove
-true?” he muttered hoarsely; then, looking around
-at Mrs. Meade, he asked:</p>
-
-<p>“Do you know where Mrs. Laurens, the mother
-of poor little Pansy, lives?”</p>
-
-<p>“No, I do not know,” she replied; and a look
-of bitter disappointment came over his face.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[190]</span></p>
-
-<p>“I have been trying ever since I came home to
-trace that woman,” he exclaimed. “I remember
-that just before I went away she was married a
-second time, and went on a bridal tour with her
-husband. But I do not know the name of the
-person she married, nor where she is living now,
-for she has moved away from where she resided
-when I went away.”</p>
-
-<p>Was it fate, or only a blind chance, for at that
-moment there came along the walk a plainly
-dressed, stooping figure, with a sad, worn face
-that had once been very pretty, though now faded
-and forlorn. Norman had seen Pansy’s mother
-only once, but he recognized her again in this
-passer-by, and, springing to his feet, exclaimed:</p>
-
-<p>“Mrs. Laurens!”</p>
-
-<p>The pale, sad-looking creature recoiled from
-him with a frightened denial:</p>
-
-<p>“I&mdash;I&mdash;that is not my name!”</p>
-
-<p>Norman caught her wrist in a firm yet tender
-clasp, for she was trying to get away.</p>
-
-<p>“Wait!” he said sternly. “Denials are useless,
-for I know that you are Mrs. Laurens, and I think
-you know that I am Norman Wylde. I was just
-speaking about you and wishing I knew where<span class="pagenum">[191]</span>
-to find you. I want you to tell me the truth about
-this child here. Is it not your daughter Pansy’s?”</p>
-
-<p>“No&mdash;oh, no!” she exclaimed wildly; but just
-then Mrs. Meade exclaimed surprisedly:</p>
-
-<p>“La, me, that’s the very woman I have seen
-dozens of times, hanging about when I took Pet
-out, but never mistrusted who she was!”</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Laurens looked at her imploringly, and
-faltered out:</p>
-
-<p>“You must be mistaken. I never saw you before,
-ma’am.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I never!” ejaculated the housekeeper,
-and little Pet himself gave the lie to Mrs. Laurens’
-denial, for he came to her with a smile, and
-cooed sweetly:</p>
-
-<p>“Is oo dot any more tandy to-day?”</p>
-
-<p>“You see, the child knows you. Confess the
-truth now! Are you not his own grandmother?”
-exclaimed Norman, low but eagerly.</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Laurens writhed under his grasp, and
-looked from right to left with frightened eyes.</p>
-
-<p>“Answer me!” persisted Norman. But a
-dogged look came over her face, and she replied:</p>
-
-<p>“No, my daughter Pansy never had a child.
-Why do you want to throw disgrace on my poor<span class="pagenum">[192]</span>
-dead girl?” And she suddenly burst into tears,
-and, tugging at his hand, wailed out: “Oh, let me
-go! I promised to meet my daughter Alice when
-she was coming home from the factory, and&mdash;and&mdash;it’s
-past the closing time now.”</p>
-
-<p>“Will you swear that this is not Pansy’s child?”
-Norman insisted hoarsely; but at that moment
-she succeeded in freeing her hand from his clasp
-and darted away like a startled deer. Not wishing
-to create a sensation, he had to refrain from
-following her.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[193]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXVIII">CHAPTER XXVIII.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">THE BLACKMAILER BAFFLED.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Mr. Finley had left Pansy and sought his home
-again in a tempest of fury and baffled cupidity,
-realizing fully that his scheme of blackmailing her
-would not succeed, and that he must look elsewhere
-for booty.</p>
-
-<p>Pansy’s dauntless bravery and defiance had
-certainly staggered his bold courage, and he began
-to fear that he was not going to receive such
-a windfall as he had expected from Pansy’s secret.
-Having a dangerous secret of his own,
-which would be sure to come to light if he proceeded
-openly against her, he found himself in
-a quandary.</p>
-
-<p>“The plucky little wretch! Who would have
-believed that she would openly defy me, and
-deny her identity? Why, she would have handed
-me over to that policeman in another moment if
-I hadn’t cut and run,” he exclaimed angrily, feeling
-that he would like to shake the little beauty
-for her bold defiance.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[194]</span></p>
-
-<p>He slept but little that night for thinking about
-her, and the next day he came to the conclusion
-that, of all those concerned in the drama in which
-he was so cleverly enacting the villain’s part, there
-was no chance of blackmailing any but Colonel
-Falconer.</p>
-
-<p>“He is rich and will pay liberally for the keeping
-of the secret I hold against his wife,” he decided,
-and then he set his cunning brain to work
-to devise a plan by which to approach Colonel
-Falconer on the delicate subject of his wife.</p>
-
-<p>Poor little Mrs. Finley, whom he had long ago
-reduced to the status of a trembling, obedient
-slave, looked at him in wonder as he lounged
-about the house, paying no attention to the grocery,
-for he had long ago placed Willie in his
-store as a clerk, and the youth was very reliable.
-She thought fearfully:</p>
-
-<p>“There is something brewing in his cunning
-mind. Has he found out that I have been seeing
-my poor little grandchild by stealth, and is he
-planning some punishment for me?”</p>
-
-<p>She trembled at the thought, for she knew that
-he was both cunning and vindictive. He ruled
-her and her children with a rod of iron.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[195]</span></p>
-
-<p>He had never forgotten or forgiven the assertion
-of his wife, that she would never have married
-him if she had known that he would not care
-for her children, and he made her and them suffer
-for it in various ways. One of his favorite
-methods was to taunt them with the disgrace that
-Pansy had brought upon them, and another was
-to keep alive in Willie’s breast the fierce resentment
-and murderous wrath that had taken hold
-of him when he first learned that his beautiful
-sister had gone astray.</p>
-
-<p>Left to himself and to the remorseful pleadings
-of his mother, the young man might have
-got over some of his anger, more especially as
-poor Pansy had atoned for her fault with her
-life. There were times when the remembrance
-of her message to him, her pitiful promise that
-she would never disgrace him again, stung keenly,
-and forced him to accuse himself of being accessory
-to her death; but these moods never lasted
-long, for whenever Mr. Finley found these kinder
-impulses taking root in the youth’s mind he would
-dispel them by maliciously hinting that, in all
-probability, Pansy was yet alive, and might turn
-up at any time to recall to the world the scandal<span class="pagenum">[196]</span>
-that had trailed its slime over the name of Laurens.</p>
-
-<p>“Pretty Kate North would not smile so sweetly
-then when she saw you waiting at the church
-door on Sundays,” he suggested, with a leer that
-brought the hot color to Willie’s cheeks, for this,
-his first real love affair, was a very tender point
-with him, and he had often wondered to himself
-if pretty little Kate North, with her black eyes
-and dimpled red cheeks, thought any the less of
-him because of the family disgrace.</p>
-
-<p>His love for Kate made him all the more bitter
-in his thoughts toward Pansy.</p>
-
-<p>“How dared she disgrace the family so? I
-hate her memory, even though believing her dead
-and if I knew she were alive I should be tempted
-to carry out my threat, and shoot her on sight,”
-he replied angrily to the taunt of his stepfather
-that day on which Mr. Finley’s mind was so engaged
-in plotting the best means by which to extort
-money from Colonel Falconer for keeping
-the dark secret of his wife’s past.</p>
-
-<p>He did not know that his malice had overreached
-itself, and that the fury smoldering in
-Willie’s impetuous mind, and fanned into flame<span class="pagenum">[197]</span>
-by his sneers and gibes, would bear fruit to disappoint
-him of all his avaricious hopes.</p>
-
-<p>Willie was almost twenty now, with an overstrained
-sense of honor, sharpened in intensity
-by his sister’s fault. He was sensitively alive to
-the disgrace that rested on the family name, and
-had brooded over it until he had grown morbid.
-His handsome young face remained dark and
-cloudy after Mr. Finley went out, and his
-thoughts were so absorbed that he could scarcely
-wait upon the customers who came in and out of
-the neat store.</p>
-
-<p>“Strange that he is always suggesting the
-thought that Pansy may be alive, after all. Perhaps
-he knows more than he chooses to tell,” he
-muttered. And the thought wore on him so that
-he went to the corner of a shelf, where his stepfather
-kept a private bottle, and took a drink of
-brandy to steady his shaking nerves.</p>
-
-<p>Then, from a case in a hiding place of his own
-he took a small pistol and examined it with
-gloomy eyes.</p>
-
-<p>“It is all right,” he muttered hoarsely; then,
-at the sound of a step entering the store, he replaced<span class="pagenum">[198]</span>
-it hurriedly, and turned around, to face
-Mr. North, the father of the girl he loved.</p>
-
-<p>“Good afternoon, Mr. North. What can I do
-for you?” he inquired politely.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. North was only a clerk, but he was inordinately
-proud and ambitious, and his face darkened
-with anger as he returned brusquely:</p>
-
-<p>“I want a few words with you, young man.
-My wife tells me that you have been paying some
-attention to my daughter Kate?”</p>
-
-<p>“Ye-es, Mr. North,” Willie stammered, with
-a boyish flush, adding anxiously: “I trust you
-have no objection to my love for her?”</p>
-
-<p>“Nonsense! You are nothing but a boy,” replied
-Mr. North curtly, and the handsome young
-face before him deepened in color at the taunt;
-but he answered, in a manly way:</p>
-
-<p>“I am almost twenty, and my stepfather has
-promised to give me a partnership in the store
-when I am twenty-one. My prospects are fair.”</p>
-
-<p>“I care nothing for your prospects! It is your
-family I object to,” was the brusque, startling
-reply. Then, as if ashamed of the taunt, Mr.
-North went on, more gently: “I am sorry to
-wound your feelings, Willie; I believe you are a<span class="pagenum">[199]</span>
-good boy, in the main, although it was said at
-one time that you were dissipated and wild. Still,
-you had an excuse for that&mdash;the same excuse that
-I have in forbidding your attentions to my
-daughter.”</p>
-
-<p>“Mr. North!”</p>
-
-<p>“I said that I forbade any more attentions to
-Kate. When she marries, it must be one with a
-stainless family record. Your sister’s fault has
-disgraced her family, and may do so even more
-terribly, for there are many who doubt that she
-was ever drowned, and she may reappear at any
-time.”</p>
-
-<p>“Mr. North, are there any grounds for this
-belief?” the poor fellow asked hoarsely.</p>
-
-<p>“A face like hers has been seen several times
-in Richmond lately. Some of the factory girls
-believe that they saw her yesterday as they came
-from work. She is always richly dressed, and it
-must be that she is leading a life of gilded shame
-in this city.”</p>
-
-<p>A hoarse groan came from the stricken young
-man’s lips; then, with flashing eyes, he exclaimed:</p>
-
-<p>“Then she is running a terrible risk, for only<span class="pagenum">[200]</span>
-let me find her, and I will send a bullet crashing
-through her shameless heart!”</p>
-
-<p>“No, no!” the gentleman exclaimed, recoiling
-in dismay, but Willie Laurens angrily reiterated
-his threat.</p>
-
-<p>“You will see,” he said. “She wrecked my life,
-and I will wipe out the family disgrace in her
-heart’s blood.”</p>
-
-<p>“You are mad, simply mad! Would you become
-your sister’s murderer, and break your poor
-mother’s heart?” cried Mr. North, shocked and
-pained by his furious mood, and not dreaming of
-the fiery fluid that had inflamed the young man’s
-blood. He turned away from the reckless boy,
-and was going abruptly out of the store when a
-horseman drew rein on the pavement before him,
-and asked excitedly:</p>
-
-<p>“Does the mother of Miss Alice Laurens live
-here?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes; is there anything wrong?” inquired Mr.
-North curiously, and at the same moment the
-pale, agitated face of Willie Laurens appeared in
-the doorway, and he said:</p>
-
-<p>“I am the brother of Alice Laurens. What is
-wrong?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[201]</span></p>
-
-<p>The man looked at him with pitying eyes, and
-answered:</p>
-
-<p>“Heaven knows I hate to tell you, but I have
-no choice. An accident has befallen your sister.
-She fell through an open hatchway at Arnell &amp;
-Grey’s a few minutes ago, and&mdash;break it to her
-mother as gently as you can, for they are bringing
-her here now. She is very badly hurt. It is not
-believed that she can live.”</p>
-
-<p>“Terrible!” cried Mr. North, as he flung out
-his arms to support Willie Laurens, who had
-reeled and staggered in agony at that heart-rending
-announcement.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[202]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXIX">CHAPTER XXIX.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">CAUGHT IN A TRAP.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Pretty sixteen-year-old Alice Laurens looked
-wonderfully like her elder sister as she lay, with
-pale face and close-shut lids, upon her little bed,
-with her mother and only remaining sister, Nora,
-weeping over her, while Mr. Finley hovered, like
-a bird of prey, in the background, heartlessly
-calculating in his own mind how far this accident
-might be turned to his advantage in forcing
-Pansy Falconer to own her identity, and to pay
-his price for keeping her secret from her proud
-husband.</p>
-
-<p>Alice Laurens had a broken arm, and had remained
-unconscious ever since her fall, so that
-the physicians feared she had sustained internal
-injuries that would speedily result in death. One
-of them had accompanied her home, and sat in
-grave silence, watching the scene, while Willie
-Laurens, utterly crushed and disheartened, had
-flung himself into a chair, and, with his convulsed
-face hidden in his hands, seemed utterly
-oblivious to everything but his sorrow.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[203]</span></p>
-
-<p>Altogether, it was a sad scene on which the
-parting sun’s rays fell, as they slanted in at the
-open door and penciled with golden beams the
-prematurely silvered head of the unhappy mother
-as she knelt by her unconscious child, uttering
-piteous moans of grief and despair, for her afflictions
-pressed heavily on her heart.</p>
-
-<p>Minutes passed, and there was apparently no
-change in Alice. That she still lived was only
-evident from a faint pulsation which the clever
-physician could barely detect in her wrist, and
-every moment he expected that even that faint,
-fluttering spark would go out in death.</p>
-
-<p>The lingering sunset began to fade. Some of
-the neighbors came in with hushed footsteps and
-sympathetic faces. On the dark, frowning face
-of Mr. Finley a light of satisfaction began to
-dawn.</p>
-
-<p>When twilight began to darken the summer
-sky, he slipped from that solemn chamber, where
-they were watching for death to come in and
-dispossess the mother’s heart of its treasure, and
-disappeared from the scene.</p>
-
-<p>He made his way quickly to Franklin Street,
-and rang the bell at Colonel Falconer’s door.<span class="pagenum">[204]</span>
-When a servant appeared he pushed past him
-and unceremoniously entered the wide hall.</p>
-
-<p>“Tell Mrs. Falconer that a man is waiting with
-an important message from her husband,” he
-said boldly.</p>
-
-<p>The servant showed him into a small reception
-room, and disappeared, while Finley waited&mdash;rather
-nervously, it must be confessed, for he
-was by no means certain that Colonel Falconer
-was out. What if he should appear, and kick
-the lying intruder out of doors?</p>
-
-<p>But fortune favored him, for in a very few
-moments the rustle of a woman’s garments was
-audible, and then Pansy appeared before him,
-simply clad in a pale-gray traveling dress, and
-with a tear-stained face and swollen eyes. She
-closed the door carefully behind her, then started
-back as she beheld her visitor.</p>
-
-<p>“You!” she exclaimed, in horrified tones.</p>
-
-<p>He rose and bowed profoundly.</p>
-
-<p>“I came to bring you the sad news of poor
-Alice, but I see from your face that you have already
-heard,” he said pointedly.</p>
-
-<p>Pansy made a scornful gesture, and sank into
-a seat.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[205]</span></p>
-
-<p>“What do you mean?” she demanded, trying
-to keep up an assumption of indifference that
-was only too plainly belied by her trembling voice
-and swollen eyelids.</p>
-
-<p>“Your sister Alice, Mrs. Falconer, fell, by accident,
-through an open hatchway at Arnell &amp;
-Grey’s this afternoon, and is now on her deathbed.
-She raves for you&mdash;calls for you every moment.
-Can you have the heart to refuse to go
-to your dying sister?”</p>
-
-<p>She looked steadily at him, and answered defiantly:</p>
-
-<p>“I have heard of that accident at Arnell &amp;
-Grey’s, but what is that to me? I do not know
-the poor girl.”</p>
-
-<p>“What is the use your trying to fence with me
-like this, Pansy? I know you!” cried Finley
-harshly, adding: “But I did not know your cursed
-pride was so strong, else I had not come for you,
-even to please that poor, dying girl, who begged
-me so piteously to come.”</p>
-
-<p>“She did not send you. She believes that her
-erring sister died,” Pansy answered irresolutely.</p>
-
-<p>“She believed that once, but not lately. There
-have been rumors that she is still alive, that she<span class="pagenum">[206]</span>
-had been seen of late on the streets of this city,
-and that she is living a life of gilded shame.
-The story has preyed on the poor girl’s mind, and
-she sent me to seek you, that she might pray
-you with her dying breath to forsake your sinful
-life.”</p>
-
-<p>“You have told those base falsehoods to that
-poor, credulous child!” Pansy flashed forth indignantly,
-but he denied the accusation, and continued:</p>
-
-<p>“I cannot bear to return to her without you.
-The disappointment in her dying eyes would
-haunt me. I will make you a proposition, Pansy:
-Come with me to her dying bed, and I will manage
-things so that you shall see her alone. Not even
-her mother shall enter the room, and you shall go
-away again, and not a living soul be any the
-wiser for your presence there.”</p>
-
-<p>She saw that he was very much in earnest, that
-he would do as he said, and, twisting her little
-hands together in an agony of indecision, she
-exclaimed:</p>
-
-<p>“Do you know that in little more than an hour
-I am to leave here for the White Sulphur Springs?
-Miss Ives has already gone around to her friends<span class="pagenum">[207]</span>
-who will accompany us. My husband will come
-home presently to drive with me to the depot.”</p>
-
-<p>“And in the meantime your poor, dying sister
-is calling for you in vain. Pansy Laurens, you
-are utterly heartless!” exclaimed Mr. Finley, with
-a fine show of indignation.</p>
-
-<p>She trembled perceptibly, and grew pale as a
-snowdrop under the glare of the gaslight.</p>
-
-<p>“May her uneasy spirit haunt you, and drive
-repose from your breast!” he cried tragically.</p>
-
-<p>Whirling toward him with a disdainful gesture
-of her white hand, she exclaimed:</p>
-
-<p>“What if I went with you, simply to humor
-the fancy of this poor, dying girl&mdash;mind, I own
-to no relationship with her&mdash;what would be the
-price of your silence?”</p>
-
-<p>Without moving a muscle, he answered coolly:</p>
-
-<p>“A thousand dollars!”</p>
-
-<p>“You are certainly rapacious! I could not give
-you such a sum to-night.”</p>
-
-<p>“I should not expect it. I would give you a
-week to raise it, if you would leave with me some
-of your diamonds as a guarantee of good faith,”
-he replied, with an air of business that amused
-while it disgusted her.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[208]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Unfortunately, my jewels are packed and my
-trunks are gone. You will have to depend upon
-my simple word of honor, or go back as you
-came,” she replied coldly.</p>
-
-<p>He studied her face a moment, then said sullenly:</p>
-
-<p>“I will take your word of honor, then. You
-have too much at stake to risk disappointing me.
-So that is settled. Of course, if you did not pay
-me in a week I should follow you to the White
-Sulphur Springs. Will you come with me now?”</p>
-
-<p>“Go out and hail some passing cab, and keep
-it waiting at the corner around the next square.
-I will join you there in a few minutes, for I have
-no time to lose. I must return here in time to
-join my husband,” Pansy answered, dismissing
-him with a wave of her hand, and then hastening
-upstairs to don a concealing bonnet and veil,
-and to leave some plausible excuse with Phebe
-for Colonel Falconer, who might return at any
-moment.</p>
-
-<p>She left the house regretfully, with unsteady
-steps and a foreboding heart, fearing that she
-was doing wrong, but drawn by a passionate
-yearning to the deathbed of her beloved sister.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[209]</span></p>
-
-<p>“How could I refuse her dying prayer, even
-though its granting be attended with so much risk
-and cost to myself?” she thought, with generous
-pity and self-sacrificing love.</p>
-
-<p>“Remember,” she said to Finley, as they were
-whirled swiftly up the steep grade of Broad
-Street toward his home on Church Hill, “I must
-see Alice Laurens alone. You will go in first,
-and see that every one else leaves the room.”</p>
-
-<p>“I will do so,” he promised, and no more was
-said between them. At the corner below his residence
-the hack was stopped. He got out, and
-directed her to wait until he returned for her.</p>
-
-<p>When he reëntered the house he found that a
-great change had taken place in the invalid.</p>
-
-<p>She had recovered full consciousness, and appeared
-so much better than had been expected by
-her physician that he declared it quite likely she
-would recover, if no untoward circumstances intervened.
-Fortunately for Finley’s purpose, the
-physician was watching by her bed alone, having
-persuaded the family to go into the dining room
-and partake of tea. A clever thought came to
-Finley, and he exclaimed:</p>
-
-<p>“Doctor Hewitt, a man has fallen in a fit on<span class="pagenum">[210]</span>
-the corner two squares below, and they are hunting
-a physician everywhere. I will watch beside
-Alice if you will go.”</p>
-
-<p>The physician seized his hat, and, promising
-to return after a while, darted out, leaving the
-grocer in possession.</p>
-
-<p>He stooped over Alice, who was regarding him
-with wide-open, loathing eyes, for he was universally
-hated by his stepchildren, and, bending
-down, whispered hurriedly:</p>
-
-<p>“Your sister Pansy is coming to see you. Mind,
-there must be no outcry, and you must never tell
-any one she came, for she can stay but a few
-minutes, and no one must ever know she has been
-here.”</p>
-
-<p>In a few minutes more the two long-parted
-sisters were weeping in each other’s arms.</p>
-
-<p>“Do not try to talk, my darling sister,” whispered
-Pansy fondly, while Finley adroitly lowered
-the gas and turned the key in the door. Tenderly
-caressing Alice, Pansy continued: “I was not
-drowned, Alice, but I made you all think so that
-you might not worry over my fate. I am the
-wife of a good man, but he does not know my<span class="pagenum">[211]</span>
-sad story, and I can never own my relatives, for
-then he would find out everything, and he is so
-proud he would cast me off. But I could not stay
-away, dear, when they told me you were dying,
-so I came in secret.”</p>
-
-<p>“I am glad that you came, my precious sister;
-but there is some mistake about my dying, for
-the doctor says I have a fair chance of getting
-well,” Alice answered feebly.</p>
-
-<p>“Thank Heaven!” murmured her beautiful sister,
-and the silence of deep emotion fell over them
-as they clung to each other.</p>
-
-<p>Finley looked on with exultation. These moments
-of reunion between the long-parted sisters
-were worth a thousand dollars to him now, and
-much more in the future; for, having once established
-a claim on Pansy, he would never rest
-satisfied until he had wrung from her every dollar
-she could command for years to come.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, Alice, I long to see our mother, but I dare
-not do so. She must never know that I am living.
-You must keep the secret of this meeting, and, oh,
-you must love her well, and be very good to her
-for my sake, as well as your own,” murmured
-Pansy, with tears in her beautiful eyes, as she<span class="pagenum">[212]</span>
-drew herself reluctantly from Alice’s clasping
-arms.</p>
-
-<p>“Must you go so soon?” sighed the suffering
-girl.</p>
-
-<p>“I dare not stay longer,” sobbed Pansy. She
-bent down and whispered hurriedly: “Alice, I
-will send you some money anonymously, and you
-must let no one know it came from me. Spend it
-for yourself, mamma, and Nora. Good-by, darling!”
-And, pressing her lips to her sister’s
-cheek in despairing love, she rose upright, and
-said anxiously:</p>
-
-<p>“Mr. Finley, I must go now, or they will come
-in and find me here.”</p>
-
-<p>She had pushed her thick veil back to the top of
-her bonnet, and her beautiful, pale face was
-clearly defined, even in the dim light of the room.
-Mr. Finley had forgotten that in this room, which
-was upon the first floor, there was a window that
-opened upon a narrow alley. The shutters were
-drawn, but the sash was raised, and Willie Laurens,
-anxious to see how Alice was, but fearful of
-intruding on the strict quiet prescribed for her,
-had tiptoed through the alley and slanted the
-shutters that he might gaze into the room.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[213]</span></p>
-
-<p>He saw with amazement the beautiful form
-kneeling by Alice and clasping her in its tender
-arms, saw the fond parting kiss, heard the words
-addressed to Mr. Finley, and beheld with mad,
-murderous rage the beautiful, despairing face of
-the sister whose sin had disgraced him and put
-the girl he loved so far above his reach.</p>
-
-<p>The seed Mr. Finley had industriously planted
-in his pliant mind had grown by now into a tree
-that was ready to bear deadly fruit. With a
-smothered imprecation, he rushed back into the
-store, and presently, when Pansy came stealing
-through the darkened hallway on her way to the
-street, her brother was waiting for her with the
-fires of hell in his young heart.</p>
-
-<p>He lifted the pistol in his hand, fired, and Pansy
-fell, bathed in blood, just inside the doorway.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[214]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXX">CHAPTER XXX.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">A SUPPOSED SUICIDE.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>In the very moment that Willie Laurens beheld
-his doomed sister fall by his hand, a torrent of
-remorse and despair overwhelmed the anger that
-had hurried him on to the awful deed, and, hurling
-the pistol from his grasp, he rushed to her
-side, and fell down on his knees, uttering bitter
-cries of remorse and self-reproach.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Finley, coming instantly upon the scene,
-dragged him furiously to his feet.</p>
-
-<p>“You devil, you have killed your sister! Now
-fly, fly, and save yourself from the law!”</p>
-
-<p>But even while he spoke, the dining-room door
-was thrown violently open, and Mrs. Finley, followed
-by Nora, rushed upon the scene.</p>
-
-<p>By the light thrown from the open doorway of
-the room they had left, Pansy’s recumbent figure,
-with the blood flowing from it, was plainly seen
-on the floor.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, Heaven, what is this?” cried the distracted
-woman, and Willie wrenched himself<span class="pagenum">[215]</span>
-loose from his stepfather’s hold, and answered
-despairingly:</p>
-
-<p>“Mother, it is Pansy. She came back, as this
-wretch here was always hinting she would, and
-my fiendish temper got the better of me&mdash;&mdash;”</p>
-
-<p>“And you killed her, you devil!” interrupted
-Mrs. Finley. She lifted her arm, shrieking
-hoarsely: “Go, go&mdash;with a mother’s curse on your
-wicked head! You are no longer a child of
-mine.”</p>
-
-<p>But Mr. Finley exclaimed sharply:</p>
-
-<p>“Hush your clatter, you parcel of fools! Perhaps
-she is not dead, after all. Doctor Hewitt
-will be back in a moment. Willie, go to your
-room, and stay there until I come to you!”</p>
-
-<p>Trained to habits of the strictest obedience to
-his harsh stepfather, Willie mechanically obeyed,
-and then Mr. Finley turned to his wife and said
-sharply:</p>
-
-<p>“I shall tell Hewitt that this is a case of suicide,
-and don’t either of you dare contradict
-me!”</p>
-
-<p>At that moment Doctor Hewitt appeared upon
-the doorstep, returning from his fool’s errand,
-and Mr. Finley hurriedly drew him in, and shut<span class="pagenum">[216]</span>
-the door, turning the key in the lock. Strangely
-enough, no one had been attracted to the scene
-by the sound of the pistol shot, and he felt safe
-to carry out the deception.</p>
-
-<p>“Doctor, here is a new case for you!” he exclaimed,
-and, turning up the gas, the dreadful
-scene was revealed in all its horror and pathos.</p>
-
-<p>Doctor Hewitt had been physician to Arnell &amp;
-Grey for many years, and, in the beautiful girl
-lying unconscious in a pool of blood on the floor,
-he instantly recognized the little factory girl who
-had come to harm years ago and then disappeared
-so mysteriously as to leave abroad the impression
-that she had drowned herself.</p>
-
-<p>“Pansy Laurens!” he exclaimed, in a shocked
-tone, and Mr. Finley replied:</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, it is poor Pansy. Is it not dreadful to
-think that, after staying away all these years, she
-should return to commit suicide in her mother’s
-house?”</p>
-
-<p>“Suicide?” echoed Doctor Hewitt.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes; we all heard a shot, and, rushing into
-the hall, found Pansy lying like this, and this
-pistol on the floor, where it had dropped from<span class="pagenum">[217]</span>
-her hand,” exhibiting the pistol Willie had thrown
-down.</p>
-
-<p>Doctor Hewitt was on his knees by Pansy’s
-side, examining her wound, and in a few minutes
-he looked up, and said, in a tone of relief:</p>
-
-<p>“She has not succeeded in her awful design.
-The bullet only went through her shoulder, and
-she is not likely to die from that.”</p>
-
-<p>“Thank Heaven!” cried Mrs. Finley gladly,
-and her wicked husband could not help slightly
-echoing her words, for he was beginning to feel
-like a murderer, remembering how he kept at
-white heat, by his taunts and sneers, the fire of
-murderous rage in Willie Laurens’ heart.</p>
-
-<p>“She must be put to bed at once, and her wound
-dressed,” said the physician; and they carried her
-upstairs to her own room, where she had spent
-such unhappy hours four years ago. Then Mr.
-Finley said:</p>
-
-<p>“Doctor Hewitt, I would be glad to keep this
-whole miserable affair, even Pansy’s presence in
-this house, a secret, for the sake of her innocent
-young sisters. Will you help me to do it?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” Doctor Hewitt replied, and then he sent
-Mr. Finley down to see after the patient who had<span class="pagenum">[218]</span>
-been forgotten for the moment in the horror of
-this new calamity.</p>
-
-<p>When Pansy’s wound had been dressed she
-revived, and found her mother and sister by her
-side. They greeted each other with solemn, tender
-sadness, and then Pansy recognized the physician,
-and asked him quietly if she were going
-to die.</p>
-
-<p>“I hope not. Your wound is a painful one, but
-not necessarily dangerous. With good nursing,
-you will recover,” he replied pleasantly, and then
-he went down to see about Alice.</p>
-
-<p>Pansy lay for a long time in silence, then asked
-that Willie might come to her. When he came
-into the room, it seemed as if years had gone over
-his head, he was so changed by his grief and remorse.</p>
-
-<p>If she knew that his hand had fired that fatal
-shot, she made no sign of her knowledge. Greeting
-him with tender sisterly love, she drew him
-down to her, and whispered softly:</p>
-
-<p>“Go to Franklin Street, and tell Colonel Falconer
-to come with you to see his wife. Yes, I
-am his wife, Willie,” as he started wildly. “Do<span class="pagenum">[219]</span>
-not tell him I was wounded. It would startle him
-too much. Only ask him to come to me.”</p>
-
-<p>She realized that further concealment of her
-past, after all that had happened would be useless.
-She must confess all, and throw herself on
-Colonel Falconer’s mercy.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[220]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXXI">CHAPTER XXXI.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">AN AMAZED HUSBAND.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Willie Laurens found Colonel Falconer pacing
-up and down the walk in front of his house,
-watching impatiently for his wife’s return from
-the errand of kindness on which she had vaguely
-told the maid she was going.</p>
-
-<p>It was no wonder he was impatient, for it lacked
-scarcely ten minutes to train time. The carriage
-was waiting for Pansy, and Phebe, the maid, was
-already seated within it.</p>
-
-<p>“You are Colonel Falconer, sir?” Willie Laurens
-asked politely.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. Have you any business with me?”</p>
-
-<p>“A message from your wife. She wishes that
-I should conduct you to her side.”</p>
-
-<p>“Has anything happened to my wife?” exclaimed
-Colonel Falconer excitedly.</p>
-
-<p>“You will soon know if you will accompany
-me,” returned Willie evasively.</p>
-
-<p>“Where is she?”</p>
-
-<p>“At my mother’s house on Church Hill.”</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Falconer gave a keen, scrutinizing<span class="pagenum">[221]</span>
-glance into the young man’s face by the light afforded
-from a gas lamp near by.</p>
-
-<p>Then he started violently.</p>
-
-<p>In the boyish beauty of Willie’s face he detected
-a strong likeness to his wife.</p>
-
-<p>“Your name?” he exclaimed.</p>
-
-<p>“Willie Laurens.”</p>
-
-<p>“Are you related to my wife?”</p>
-
-<p>“That is for her to say, Colonel Falconer,”
-replied the young man modestly.</p>
-
-<p>“But I don’t understand this at all. My wife
-should be here to accompany me at once. She
-will miss her train,” exclaimed Colonel Falconer
-testily.</p>
-
-<p>“I think she expected that, sir,” was the answer
-he received from Willie, who began to grow nervous
-as he scrutinized the big, good-looking colonel,
-wondering what he would say if he knew that
-the slight youth before him had attempted his
-wife’s life.</p>
-
-<p>“He would strike me down at his feet in a
-moment,” he decided nervously, and, in order to
-ward off all further questions, he said:</p>
-
-<p>“I think, sir, that if you would come at once<span class="pagenum">[222]</span>
-with me to Mrs. Falconer she would explain
-everything to your satisfaction.”</p>
-
-<p>“Very well, then, I will do so, for I am very
-much puzzled over all this. Will you come with
-me in my carriage, Mr. Laurens?”</p>
-
-<p>“I shall be glad of a seat with you, sir, as it
-will enable us to reach Mrs. Falconer sooner.”</p>
-
-<p>“Come, then!” And they entered the carriage,
-where they found Phebe in a fever of curiosity.</p>
-
-<p>“Would it be advisable to take my wife’s
-maid?” the colonel then asked; and Willie, remembering
-that Pansy would need a nurse, and
-that his mother would have her hands full in caring
-for Alice, replied in the affirmative.</p>
-
-<p>He then gave the address to the driver, and in
-a very short time they arrived at their destination.</p>
-
-<p>“Perhaps you had better leave the maid in the
-carriage,” suggested Willie, and Colonel Falconer
-readily acquiesced, thinking that Pansy would be
-ready to accompany him home in a few minutes.</p>
-
-<p>During the drive to Mr. Finley’s house he had
-come to the conclusion that Pansy’s warm sympathies
-had been enlisted by some charitable object
-for which she wished to secure his pity and<span class="pagenum">[223]</span>
-aid. For this laudable purpose she had doubtless
-delayed starting on her trip, thinking that
-to-morrow would do as well.</p>
-
-<p>“But Juliette and the Wyldes will have already
-gone,” he thought. “No matter; Mrs. Wylde can
-chaperon Juliette until Pansy goes.”</p>
-
-<p>But his complacent feelings were soon dissipated,
-for, as they went upstairs, Willie Laurens
-said reluctantly:</p>
-
-<p>“Colonel Falconer, your wife was seized with
-a sudden sickness an hour ago, and you must not
-be surprised or frightened if you find her still
-in bed.”</p>
-
-<p>Then he threw open Pansy’s door.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[224]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXXII">CHAPTER XXXII.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">THE REVELATION.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Colonel Falconer was so shocked and startled
-by Willie Laurens’ words that he staggered rather
-than walked across the threshold of the room
-where Pansy was lying, with close-shut eyes,
-among the white pillows of the bed, carefully
-watched by Nora Laurens, who now, at a sign
-from her brother, arose and left the room.</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Falconer found himself alone with
-Pansy, and, at the closing of the door, she opened
-wide those wondrous eyes of violet blue, and
-looked mournfully up into his face.</p>
-
-<p>Oh, the pain, the grief, the despair of that
-glance! It went straight to the man’s loving
-heart, and he fell on his knees with a groan, and
-pressed his lips to her white brow in passionate
-love.</p>
-
-<p>She lay still and sorrowful, while fond words
-of love poured from his lips, and kisses rained on
-her fair face. She said to herself that if he repudiated
-her and cast her off after he had heard
-her sad confession, she would have the memory<span class="pagenum">[225]</span>
-of these caresses to comfort her when her noble
-husband was lost to her forever.</p>
-
-<p>By and by he lifted his head, and said reproachfully:</p>
-
-<p>“You should not have gone out, my darling,
-if you were not feeling well. You know you
-have not been strong for some time.”</p>
-
-<p>She knew that she must speak now, and so
-she answered faintly:</p>
-
-<p>“I have had an accident, Colonel Falconer. I
-have been shot in the shoulder.”</p>
-
-<p>He recoiled with a cry of dismay, and she continued,
-in a low but distinct voice:</p>
-
-<p>“Stay here by me, and&mdash;I&mdash;will&mdash;tell you all&mdash;about
-it. I am not going to die, they say, although
-it&mdash;might&mdash;be&mdash;better if I were.”</p>
-
-<p>“Pansy, you must be raving! You do not mean
-that,” he exclaimed, in alarm, and with such a
-tender look that she exclaimed remorsefully:</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, how good you are to me! But I do not
-deserve it, for I have deceived you shamefully,
-and when I have confessed my sin you will&mdash;cast
-me off&mdash;you will never&mdash;speak&mdash;to&mdash;poor&mdash;Pansy
-again!”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[226]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Now I am quite sure that you are raving.
-You have done nothing, my precious wife, for
-which I could visit you with such harsh punishment
-as that,” exclaimed her husband fondly, as
-he bent over her and smoothed back with loving
-hands the curling locks that strayed over her
-blue-veined brow.</p>
-
-<p>A heavy sigh drifted over the lips that were
-pale with pain, and Pansy murmured sadly:</p>
-
-<p>“I am not raving. Although I am in great
-pain from the wound in my shoulder, I know
-quite well what I am saying. I have deceived
-you, my kind, noble husband, and when you know
-all you will hate me.”</p>
-
-<p>“Nonsense!” he replied cheerily, and, clasping
-her cold little hand warmly and closely in his, he
-murmured reassuringly:</p>
-
-<p>“Come, let us have that dreadful confession,
-my pet, that your foolish alarms may be speedily
-dissipated.”</p>
-
-<p>But no answering smile met his. Pansy was
-as pale as death as she began:</p>
-
-<p>“Louisville was not my&mdash;native place&mdash;as I told
-you. I&mdash;I&mdash;was born&mdash;in Richmond&mdash;and I am
-at this moment&mdash;under my mother’s roof.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[227]</span></p>
-
-<p>Colonel Falconer started violently, but he still
-kept fast hold of her little hand as she continued:</p>
-
-<p>“That is not all. I&mdash;I&mdash;had run away from my
-home when I met Mrs. Beach. There&mdash;there&mdash;was
-a stain&mdash;upon my name&mdash;although,” passionately,
-“I swear to you it was not my fault!
-I am&mdash;Heaven pity me!&mdash;that girl whom Juliette
-Ives hates so relentlessly because she caused the
-breaking of her engagement with Norman
-Wylde.”</p>
-
-<p>“Pansy Laurens!” Colonel Falconer uttered, in
-a voice of horror; and he dropped her hand and
-started back.</p>
-
-<p>She made no reply. Her confession had exhausted
-her strength, and she had fainted.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[228]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXXIII">CHAPTER XXXIII.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">NOBLE FORGIVENESS.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Colonel Falconer stood gazing like one petrified
-at his unconscious wife until suddenly his
-own face whitened to a marble pallor, an expression
-of keen agony convulsed his features,
-and, clasping both hands upon his breast, he sank
-backward into a chair, while a low moan of pain
-escaped his lips.</p>
-
-<p>He had been seized with a spasm at the heart,
-a misfortune that had befallen him at various
-times in his life, but of which he had never spoken
-to Pansy, being very sensitive on the score
-of the heart disease, which was hereditary in the
-Falconer family, and of which his sister, Mrs.
-Ives, had died.</p>
-
-<p>For a few moments he lay back in the chair,
-struggling with all his strength of mind against
-his misery; then, putting his hand into his breast
-pocket, he brought out a small vial, from whose
-contents he swallowed a few drops. The effect
-soon became apparent in a cessation of the terrible<span class="pagenum">[229]</span>
-pain. Then a low, frightened cry from the bed
-made him look toward Pansy, and he found that
-she had revived and was staring at him with a
-glance of wonder and fear.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, what is it? Have I killed you?” she
-gasped faintly.</p>
-
-<p>“It is nothing&mdash;a slight spasm of the heart,
-brought on by excitement. I am better now,”
-Colonel Falconer replied coldly, and just then the
-door opened and Mrs. Finley came nervously into
-the room.</p>
-
-<p>“Mamma, this is Colonel Falconer,” Pansy half
-whispered, adding anxiously: “I have told you
-how good he has been to me, and I have told him
-who and what I am, but briefly. Now I want you
-to tell him the story of my willful girlhood, and
-the full extent of my sin.”</p>
-
-<p>“Will you listen, sir?” asked the pale, gray-haired
-little woman timidly.</p>
-
-<p>A dark frown came between his eyebrows, but
-he answered impatiently:</p>
-
-<p>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p>And so, in the little room where Pansy lay, pale
-with pain and despair, the story of her girlhood<span class="pagenum">[230]</span>
-was told to the husband she had deceived&mdash;told
-kindly and gently by her mother’s lips, yet without
-abating one jot of the truth.</p>
-
-<p>“If she had taken her mother’s advice, sir, she
-would never have come to this pass. I told her
-that a rich young man like Mr. Wylde wouldn’t
-think of marrying a poor little factory girl, but
-she didn’t believe my warning. She wouldn’t
-heed me,” sighed poor Mrs. Finley, when she had
-told, in her pitiful little way, the story of Pansy’s
-willfulness and disobedience.</p>
-
-<p>But she, poor thing, looked pleadingly at her
-pale, silent husband.</p>
-
-<p>“But you see how it was, don’t you?” she cried
-imploringly. “I loved him so, and I fell under
-his fascinations so that I couldn’t help myself;
-and I thought mother would be so pleased when
-she found out I was his wife she would forgive
-all the rest. Ah, Heaven! I paid dearly, dearly
-for that disobedience!”</p>
-
-<p>He sat silent, rigid, looking and listening without
-a word, and Pansy sobbed bitterly:</p>
-
-<p>“Did I not say you would never forgive me?
-But I deserve it. I have not one word to say for
-myself, only this: You will keep my miserable<span class="pagenum">[231]</span>
-secret, for when Norman Wylde charged me with
-my identity I denied it bitterly. Oh, he must
-never know the truth, and if I recover from my
-wound I will go away from here, Colonel Falconer,
-and never trouble your peace again.”</p>
-
-<p>He smiled a sad, derisive smile at those words,
-as if in mockery of her promise, and then said:</p>
-
-<p>“But I have not yet heard how you came by
-that wound.”</p>
-
-<p>“My brother Willie swore that he would kill
-me for the disgrace that I had brought on the
-honest name of Laurens. When I came back
-home to see my sister he tried to carry out his
-threat. I do not blame him, nor must you, for
-my stepfather had goaded him to madness by
-his taunts and slurs. Poor boy! He is sorry
-now for his insane deed, and the world must
-never know.”</p>
-
-<p>He smothered some angry words under his
-dark mustache, for Pansy was beginning to speak
-again in her soft, hopeless little voice:</p>
-
-<p>“While I lay here waiting for Willie to bring
-you, I made some clever little plans. Juliette
-went with the Wyldes, did she not?”</p>
-
-<p>“Of course.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[232]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Then you will telegraph her to-morrow that
-I have changed my mind, and will go North to
-some gay watering place, but that she will remain
-under the chaperonage of Mrs. Wylde. My
-presence in this house can be kept a dead secret
-until I get well enough to go away&mdash;into a convent,
-perhaps&mdash;into lasting exile, certainly. Do
-not grieve, mamma,” as a whimper of protest
-came from the little woman’s grieved heart. “You
-will have your other children, you know.” Then,
-looking back at her husband, went on plaintively:
-“In the meantime, you will have gone away, and
-by and by you will write back to your friends
-that poor little Pansy is dead and buried. You
-will come home to Juliette then, and&mdash;after a
-while&mdash;you will forget.”</p>
-
-<p>The plaintive voice broke, and Colonel Falconer
-sat still for a few moments, lost in deep thought.
-Suddenly he spoke:</p>
-
-<p>“You are very clever,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“I thought it all out for your sake. I was so
-anxious that no disgrace should touch you,” she
-answered humbly.</p>
-
-<p>“Poor little one!” he muttered; then rose and
-laid his hand solemnly on her head. “Dear, you<span class="pagenum">[233]</span>
-have been bitterly punished for your girlish
-fault,” he said gravely; then, in tones vibrating
-with tenderness, he added: “You are my beloved
-wife still. I forgive your deception, and I will
-never forsake you.”</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[234]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXXIV">CHAPTER XXXIV.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">IMAGINARY DECEIT.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>“Rosalind, what do you think of this?” asked
-Juliette, coming up to her friend with an open
-letter in her hand.</p>
-
-<p>It was the second day after her arrival at the
-White Sulphur Springs, and they were out on
-the lawn before the grand hotel. All was brightness
-and gayety. Throngs of beautiful women
-and handsome men lent variety to the sylvan
-scene, and the merry music played by the band
-made one’s step light and one’s heart gay.</p>
-
-<p>“What is it, Juliette?” asked Miss Wylde curiously.</p>
-
-<p>“A letter from my uncle, in which he explains
-the cause of his wife not joining us here.”</p>
-
-<p>“Is she not coming, then?” asked Mrs. Wylde,
-in a tone of regret.</p>
-
-<p>“No.”</p>
-
-<p>“But why not?”</p>
-
-<p>“She was taken suddenly ill that afternoon, but
-would not send us word, lest we should wait for
-her and be disappointed in going. She is better<span class="pagenum">[235]</span>
-now, and has taken up an idea that sea air would
-be of more benefit to her than the springs,” replied
-Juliette, reading from her uncle’s letter.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, I am sorry she will not join us. I had
-fallen in love with her,” exclaimed Mrs. Wylde,
-and her daughter echoed:</p>
-
-<p>“I had, too, mamma.”</p>
-
-<p>A frown crossed Juliette’s pearl-fair face, and
-she read on slowly:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“So I will take her away to the sea, and you can remain
-with Mrs. Wylde if she will have the kindness to
-chaperon you.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>She looked at Mrs. Wylde, and that lady said
-cordially:</p>
-
-<p>“Your uncle ought to know that I will take
-great pleasure in doing that.”</p>
-
-<p>“Thank you,” cried Juliette; then, crushing the
-letter in her hand, she said spitefully: “I believe
-Pansy had all that planned before, and did not
-mean from the first to accompany us here.”</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Wylde and Rosalind looked startled.</p>
-
-<p>“Why should she deceive us?” cried Rosalind.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, she had some hidden design in it, of
-course. She is naturally deceitful. I never liked
-her from the first!” Juliette cried peevishly,<span class="pagenum">[236]</span>
-goaded to jealous anger by their declaration that
-they were fond of Pansy.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, you ought to know, of course, having
-lived in the same house with her,” exclaimed
-Rosalind, in astonishment, adding: “But I never
-should have supposed that dear little thing could
-be deceitful and designing.”</p>
-
-<p>“Nor I, for she always seemed so frank and
-open,” said her mother. “Indeed, I had taken a
-great fancy to her.”</p>
-
-<p>Every word stung Juliette more deeply, for she
-hated Pansy with an intense hatred. She would
-have hated her for marrying her uncle if for nothing
-else, but added to this was always her suspicion
-of Pansy’s identity, and this fanned the
-fire of her rage into fury.</p>
-
-<p>She made an excuse for leaving the Wyldes,
-that she might give full vent, in the privacy of her
-own room, to the spite that possessed her, and
-then Rosalind observed:</p>
-
-<p>“Mamma, I do not think Juliette quite does
-justice to Mrs. Falconer. She hates her because
-she married Colonel Falconer and disappointed
-her expectations of getting all her uncle’s
-money.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[237]</span></p>
-
-<p>“That is it,” replied Mrs. Wylde. “Mrs. Falconer
-is without doubt a charming woman, and
-Juliette’s suspicions of her deceitfulness have
-their sole origin in nothing but envy and jealousy.”</p>
-
-<p>While Juliette, alone in her own room, was
-saying bitterly:</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes, they have fallen in love with her,
-have they? That is because she is the rich Mrs.
-Falconer. They have no admiration to spare for
-Norman’s sweetheart, the poor little tobacco-factory
-girl, who was quite as beautiful, innocent,
-and charming as my uncle’s proud wife.”</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[238]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXXV">CHAPTER XXXV.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">GENEROUS DEEDS.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>When Colonel Falconer, out of the generosity
-of his great heart, forgave his unhappy wife the
-deception she had practiced upon him, he made
-up his mind that he would take her away from
-the fatal city of her birth, never to return.</p>
-
-<p>They would go abroad, and begin a new life, in
-which they would be all in all to each other; and
-he would try to forget the dark shadow that lay
-on his wife’s past, and make her happy as she had
-seemed before they came back to Richmond and
-the tragedy of her buried sin rose to overwhelm
-her again with its ignominy.</p>
-
-<p>He made arrangements for keeping Pansy’s
-presence in her mother’s house a secret from the
-world. Phebe was told only such facts as were
-strictly necessary, and then installed as the faithful
-nurse of her mistress.</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Falconer himself came in disguise to
-visit her; and Doctor Hewitt, who was the only
-one outside the house who was in the secret of
-Pansy’s continued existence, never dreamed that<span class="pagenum">[239]</span>
-the invalid was the wife of one of the grandest,
-noblest men in the city, and mistress of a palatial
-home on Franklin Street. He pitied her very
-much, and advised her one day to remain with
-her mother and begin a new life.</p>
-
-<p>Pansy wept bitterly, but made no reply, and
-he went away feeling very sad over her probable
-future, for both she and Alice were so much
-better now that there was no occasion for his further
-visits. He would see the beautiful erring
-girl no more, and he feared that, with the return
-of health and strength, she would drift back to
-her old sinful life.</p>
-
-<p>In the meantime, Colonel Falconer busied himself
-generously in trying to brighten the lives of
-Pansy’s relatives.</p>
-
-<p>In the first place, he had to bribe that wretch,
-Finley, to silence on the fact that Pansy Laurens
-was still living. He accepted gladly enough a
-much smaller sum than he had demanded from
-Pansy, fearing that if he demurred he might not
-get anything.</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Falconer, with his keen insight into
-human nature, soon saw that Pansy’s mother was
-unhappy and ill-treated&mdash;a mere slave to her sullen,<span class="pagenum">[240]</span>
-brutal husband. He proposed to Pansy to
-settle a sum of money on her mother that should
-be strictly her own, and the income from which
-would enable her to lead a life of ease, independent
-of her miserly husband.</p>
-
-<p>“How shall I ever repay all your goodness?”
-Pansy cried, when he told her that he had settled
-twenty-five thousand dollars on her mother, and
-that Alice and Nora were to be sent to Staunton
-to boarding school. His kind intentions toward
-Willie were all frustrated, for the young man,
-ashamed and remorseful over what he had done,
-and standing in great awe of his aristocratic
-brother-in-law, had abruptly left home the same
-night on which he had wounded Pansy, and as
-yet no tidings had been received from him.</p>
-
-<p>The time came when Pansy was to leave home
-and mother for the second time, and it was, indeed,
-a sad parting; yet not as bitter as the first,
-for then Pansy was going alone into exile, but
-now there was a strong arm and a brave heart between
-her and the world.</p>
-
-<p>“Only love me, my poor little darling,” he had
-answered, gently and gravely, in reply to her expressions
-of gratitude, and she had promised that<span class="pagenum">[241]</span>
-she would, while, at the same time, she contrasted
-his noble soul with that of Norman Wylde.</p>
-
-<p>“One so noble and high-minded, the other so
-false and cruel! Oh, Heaven help me to tear his
-image from my weak womanly heart, and enshrine
-there this good and noble husband!” she
-prayed passionately.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[242]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXXVI">CHAPTER XXXVI.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">PLANS FOR THE FUTURE.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Two months had passed since Colonel Falconer
-had taken Pansy away from Richmond. They
-were summering quietly at a little mountain retreat
-in the Adirondacks, but his mail was sent
-to Cape May, and, by an arrangement with the
-postmaster there, was forwarded to him.</p>
-
-<p>He had done this to conceal the place of his
-residence from Juliette and others, not wishing
-that any prying eyes should intrude upon their
-seclusion, for Pansy was still weak and delicate,
-and her nerves had been sadly shattered by the
-trying scenes she had gone through.</p>
-
-<p>They had taken a little cottage in the mountains,
-and, with Phebe and a few servants, were
-keeping house in a simple, quiet way, waiting for
-the roses to come back to Pansy’s cheeks, that
-the colonel might leave her long enough to return
-to Virginia and settle up his business, preparatory
-to taking up his future residence in Europe.</p>
-
-<p>“You will not take Juliette with us? She hates<span class="pagenum">[243]</span>
-me, and every word and glance has a sting for
-me. She suspects my identity, in spite of all my
-denials,” pleaded Pansy.</p>
-
-<p>“She shall not go with us,” he said; then a
-thoughtful frown came between his dark eyebrows.
-“But what under heaven shall I do with
-her?” he asked.</p>
-
-<p>“Let her stay in the house on Franklin Street
-with a chaperon,” answered Pansy readily.</p>
-
-<p>“That will do very well, I suppose; but I wish
-she would get married. I should feel better satisfied
-over her then,” said the colonel, and they both
-thought at once of Norman Wylde.</p>
-
-<p>The color rose to her delicate pearl-fair face in
-a warm tide of crimson, and Colonel Falconer
-grew pale, and smothered an oath between his
-lips.</p>
-
-<p>“Pansy, I feel like I ought to kill that fellow
-for his villainy to you,” he said abruptly.</p>
-
-<p>“Let him alone. Heaven will punish him for
-my wrongs,” she answered, and then, clasping her
-beautiful hands imploringly, she wailed: “But,
-oh, my poor, deserted little child, my heart aches
-when I think of him! If I only had him with me
-I could be content.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[244]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Do not grow impatient, darling. I have promised
-to try to get the child for you, but it must
-be done very quietly, for no one must suspect that
-we had anything to do with abducting him. He
-must be abducted, you understand that, do you
-not, Pansy?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, for I know well that no amount of bribery
-would induce Mrs. Meade to give him up,
-and I dare not assert my legal claim to him,”
-sighed poor, unhappy Pansy.</p>
-
-<p>He tried to comfort her, as if she had been a
-little child, and at last she sobbed herself to sleep
-in his arms, and he held her thus for more than
-an hour, gazing on the sweet, sad little face with
-eyes full of love and pity.</p>
-
-<p>“Poor little darling, how bitterly and undeservedly
-you have suffered,” he thought, adding
-bitterly: “Curses on the false-hearted villain that
-betrayed her innocent youth! I hope I may never
-meet him again, for if I did I fear I should take
-vengeance into my own hands.”</p>
-
-<p>The next morning, when the colonel’s valet
-brought in the mail, it consisted of nothing but
-the New York papers. He had finished breakfast,
-and took them out on the porch to read.<span class="pagenum">[245]</span>
-Pansy followed him, and sat down in her little
-rocking-chair to enjoy the beautiful mountain
-scenery that lay outspread like a succession of
-pictures before her eyes.</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Falconer selected his favorite paper,
-lighted his morning cigar, and disposed himself
-comfortably to read.</p>
-
-<p>And none seeing the quiet, homelike picture,
-the handsome man, and the lovely woman, seeming
-so calmly happy in their domestic life, would
-have dreamed that a heavy storm cloud surcharged
-with woe was about to burst in fury upon
-their heads.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[246]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXXVII">CHAPTER XXXVII.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">THE STORM BREAKS.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Colonel Falconer opened his fresh paper, and
-the first thing that caught his eyes were these
-words, in staring headlines:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p class="center">A VIRGINIA TRAGEDY,</p>
-
-<p>INVOLVING SOME OF THE F. F. V.’S WITH THE WORKING
-CLASSES, AND BEING THE CLIMAX TO A ROMANCE OF LOVE
-AND SORROW EQUAL TO ANY EVER EVOLVED FROM THE
-BRAIN OF A NOVELIST.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>He uttered an exclamation of interest, and
-Pansy looked around.</p>
-
-<p>“What is it, dear?” she asked languidly.</p>
-
-<p>“Nothing&mdash;that is&mdash;&mdash; Well, you shall have
-the paper presently,” he answered, and read on:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>Something more than three years ago there was a
-ripple of excitement in the fashionable society of Richmond
-over the fact that an engagement of marriage between
-two prominent people had been dissolved, owing to
-a sudden infatuation on the young man’s part for a beautiful,
-charming young girl, an employee at Arnell &amp; Grey’s
-tobacco factory.</p>
-
-<p>The girl, though of poor parentage, and compelled to
-labor for her own support, was said to be wonderfully
-lovely, fairly well educated, and of so fair a character<span class="pagenum">[247]</span>
-that it had never been sullied by a breath of scandal. But
-parents on either side proved unkind. The young man
-was forbidden to marry the little beauty, and she on her
-part had stern orders from a widowed mother never
-to hold any communication with her lover.</p>
-
-<p>In a few months afterward, the young man was sent
-on a mission to Europe, and it was supposed that all was
-at an end with the unfortunate love affair. But nine
-months later there was a scandalous story circulated about
-the young girl, to which a color of truth was lent by her
-suicide by drowning in the James River. At last, some
-of her clothing was found in the river, but her body was
-never recovered. At the same time a beautiful, newborn
-boy baby was left on the steps of the young man’s father,
-and adopted by the old housekeeper.</p>
-
-<p>Two years later the hero of that long-past love affair
-returned, and seeing the adopted child, conceived the idea
-that it was his own. He sought the mother of his dead
-love in order to ascertain the truth, but could not find
-her, she having married a second time and removed to
-another part of the city. Lately, in desperation, he placed
-a detective on the woman’s track, with the result that she
-was soon found, and a story of sorrow laid bare that
-maddened the hero of the story.</p>
-
-<p>He told the mother that her daughter had been his wife
-by a secret marriage in Washington, and by this declaration
-was laid bare the perfidy of a wicked stepfather and
-a slighted love, who for revenge had bribed the man to
-lie about the marriage. This man, Finley by name, was
-sent to Washington to verify Pansy Laurens’ declaration
-that she was the wife of Norman Wylde. He was bribed
-by a fair and slighted lady to declare that there had been
-no marriage, thus breaking the heart of the poor girl, who<span class="pagenum">[248]</span>
-had never received a line from her young husband during
-his absence.</p>
-
-<p>When Norman Wylde learned of this horrible perfidy
-that had made of his beloved young wife a suicide, and of
-his legitimate child a foundling, he went wild with rage
-against the villain who had made these things possible, and
-struck him with all the fierce strength of an outraged
-arm. He fell heavily, and striking his head against the
-counter in his store was rendered unconscious by concussion
-of the brain.</p>
-
-<p>He is lying now in a state of coma, never having returned
-to consciousness since his fall. Norman Wylde
-is under heavy bonds pending the result of Finley’s injuries,
-but it is believed that a chivalrous Virginia jury
-will acquit him of blame in the vengeance he took against
-the destroyer of his domestic happiness.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Pansy turned her head at hearing a strange,
-choking sound, and saw her husband with his
-head fallen backward, and his face convulsed with
-pain, as it had been on the night when she made
-her confession to him.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[249]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXXVIII">CHAPTER XXXVIII.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">VISIONS OF HAPPINESS.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>When Pansy saw the condition of her husband
-she uttered a scream of terror that brought
-Colonel Falconer’s valet and her maid rushing to
-the scene from the back of the cottage, where
-they had been flirting with each other in default
-of something better to do.</p>
-
-<p>Charles, the valet, immediately ran into the
-house for his master’s drops, while Pansy lifted
-her husband’s head and pillowed it against her
-breast. Phebe could do nothing but wring her
-hands and utter excited ohs and ahs.</p>
-
-<p>“You had better leave him to me, ma’am,”
-said Charles, with a composure that betrayed his
-familiarity with these painful attacks. He took
-her place with polite insistence, and then Pansy
-remembered that her husband had seemed a little
-excited over something in the paper he was
-reading.</p>
-
-<p>She took the paper up from the floor, where it
-had fallen, and, in a very few moments, had<span class="pagenum">[250]</span>
-found out the cause of Colonel Falconer’s sudden
-seizure.</p>
-
-<p>Forgetful of everything but herself in the wild
-rush of joy that overwhelmed her soul, she rushed
-upstairs to her room, and, throwing herself into
-a chair, read and reread the precious paper, while
-her love for Norman Wylde, so long repressed
-and denied, thrilled her whole being again with
-inexpressible rapture.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, my love, my love! You were true to me&mdash;you
-loved me, you mourned for me, for I was,
-indeed, your wife! The dark stain of disgrace
-is effaced from me, and the whole world may
-know now that Pansy Laurens was an honored
-wife, and that her child had a right to its father’s
-name. Oh, my little Pet, my precious child,
-would that I could fly this moment and take you
-by the hand and lead you to your beloved father,
-telling him how much I love you both!” she sobbed
-passionately, forgetting for the moment the man
-downstairs, whose heart was so bound up in her.</p>
-
-<p>It was not natural that she should remember
-him at that moment, for the shock of joy had been
-so great as to blot out everything else for the
-time being. Joy in Norman’s constancy and love,<span class="pagenum">[251]</span>
-and horror at the sin of Mr. Finley and Juliette
-Ives, filled her whole mind.</p>
-
-<p>She forgot Colonel Falconer and his illness,
-forgot that she was another man’s wife, forgot
-everything but her love for Norman Wylde, the
-young husband from whom she had been sundered
-by such a cruel fate.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, my love, my darling, would that you were
-here now,” she kept murmuring over and over,
-forgetful of the lapse of time, until she was
-startled from her blissful reverie by a low tap
-upon the door.</p>
-
-<p>“Come in!” she exclaimed, and the door unclosed,
-admitting Colonel Falconer, who was
-ghastly pale, and staggered unsteadily across the
-threshold.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” cried Pansy, in a heart-piercing tone,
-for everything rushed over her at once at the
-sight of his haggard, pain-drawn face.</p>
-
-<p>“Poor child! You were so happy that you had
-forgotten me,” he said gently.</p>
-
-<p>“Forgive me!” she sighed remorsefully, and
-then suddenly the pretty dark head fell back
-against her chair, and she became unconscious.</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Falconer made no effort to revive her.<span class="pagenum">[252]</span>
-He stood by her side, gazing with gloomy eyes
-at the white, unconscious face, and at length he
-muttered:</p>
-
-<p>“Poor little one! I wish that you would die
-now, just as you are; then I should never have
-the pain of resigning you to one who has a better
-right to you than I have, and in whose love you
-will utterly forget him who has had no thought
-but of you since first he saw your beautiful face.”</p>
-
-<p>But he did not have his wish granted, for presently
-Pansy revived of herself, and looked up
-dreamily into his face.</p>
-
-<p>“I&mdash;I&mdash;fainted, did I not?” she murmured
-slowly. Then, remembering his illness, she asked:
-“Are you better?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” he answered, but his face was ghastly
-as he said it. Making a brave effort for calmness,
-he added: “You stayed away so long, Pansy, that
-I grew uneasy, and came to seek you.”</p>
-
-<p>“While I selfishly forgot you in my absorption.
-Oh, forgive me! forgive me!” she cried remorsefully.</p>
-
-<p>“There is nothing to forgive. Your news was
-startling enough to excuse you for everything,”
-he replied patiently. Drawing a chair near her,<span class="pagenum">[253]</span>
-he continued wistfully: “It must have been a
-great shock of joy to you, Pansy, to find that
-Norman Wylde was your true husband, instead
-of the false-hearted wretch we deemed him.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” she murmured faintly.</p>
-
-<p>“And you will wish to be restored to him at
-once, dear?” he continued, masking with a brave
-effort the pain he felt in speaking those words.</p>
-
-<p>She started wildly.</p>
-
-<p>“But&mdash;I&mdash;belong&mdash;to&mdash;you!” she faltered.</p>
-
-<p>“No, dear. The ceremony that bound you to
-me is void in law, since you had a husband living
-when I married you. You are free of any claim
-of mine. Shall you go at once to him, or will
-you write for him to come for you?”</p>
-
-<p>She read his keen anxiety in his ghastly face,
-and it came to her suddenly that her happiness
-would prove a deathblow to this good man, who
-was so devoted to her that it seemed impossible
-for his enfeebled heart to bear the shock of her
-loss.</p>
-
-<p>Looking up at him with troubled eyes, she said:</p>
-
-<p>“Leave me here alone till morning, that I may
-decide what is best for me to do.”</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[254]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XXXIX">CHAPTER XXXIX.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">REACHING A DECISION.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Colonel Falconer would never forget as long as
-he lived, nor would Pansy, the awful suspense of
-that night. He spent it among the mountains,
-walking hard all night, in order to overcome his
-misery by sheer physical weakness. She spent it
-on her knees by her bedside, praying.</p>
-
-<p>It seemed to her that it would be wrong to desert
-Colonel Falconer and go back to her dear
-love, her faithful husband, even though she really
-belonged to him, for it would surely break Colonel
-Falconer’s heart.</p>
-
-<p>“And how could I be happy even with my beloved
-Norman and our darling child, if I knew
-that I had caused the death of one who loved me
-so well, and who had died for my sake?” the
-generous young wife kept saying over and over
-to herself, and resolutely shutting out of her heart
-all thoughts of the happiness she could have if
-she returned to Norman.</p>
-
-<p>Passionately as she loved Norman, her young
-heart had become so inured to sorrow, that she<span class="pagenum">[255]</span>
-was capable of making a great sacrifice for another’s
-sake, and at last she decided that for
-Colonel Falconer’s sake she would bear the burden
-of a secret sorrow till the day of her death.</p>
-
-<p>“Norman believes me dead long ago, and he
-need never be undeceived,” she thought. “Then,
-too, he will have our sweet little boy to comfort
-him, while I will pray for them both every night,
-and feel that I have done right to sacrifice my
-one chance of earthly happiness for another’s
-sake.”</p>
-
-<p>Her resolve did not falter, although it had cost
-her so much to make it, and in the morning, when
-she went down to breakfast, she was pale as a
-lily, and the blue circles under her downcast eyes
-hinted at bitter tears shed in the lonely vigils of
-the night.</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Falconer had come in an hour before
-from his wild mountain tramp, and appeared at
-breakfast freshly dressed, but wretchedly pale and
-weary-looking, with a despairing look in his eyes
-that it was impossible to hide.</p>
-
-<p>The unhappy pair made a slight pretense at
-eating, then went out on the porch together, and
-Pansy said quietly:</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[256]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Let us walk up the mountain road a little way,
-that no one may overhear what I wish to say to
-you.”</p>
-
-<p>They walked away out of earshot of Charles
-and Phebe, who had no idea that anything was
-wrong between their master and mistress, and
-then Colonel Falconer asked sadly:</p>
-
-<p>“Have you made up your mind, dear?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes; I shall stay with you.”</p>
-
-<p>He stared at her, speechless with wonder, until
-the warm color rose to her face; then he exclaimed:</p>
-
-<p>“My dear Pansy, how could you do that? I
-explained to you, did I not, that our marriage was
-not legal?”</p>
-
-<p>Placing her trembling little hand on his arm,
-she whispered:</p>
-
-<p>“I understand all that. What I meant was that&mdash;you&mdash;should&mdash;help
-me&mdash;to secure a divorce&mdash;from
-Norman Wylde&mdash;that I might quietly remarry
-you. It could be done, could it not?”</p>
-
-<p>His face shone with happiness and love as he
-replied:</p>
-
-<p>“It would be easy enough, I think; but, Pansy,<span class="pagenum">[257]</span>
-darling, it would not be right for me to permit
-this sacrifice on your part.”</p>
-
-<p>“I will not permit you to call it a sacrifice. I
-love you, and I prefer to cast my lot with yours,”
-she answered truly.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[258]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XL">CHAPTER XL.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">A GREAT SACRIFICE.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>“Heaven help me, for I am scarcely brave
-enough to refuse this noble sacrifice of yours,
-Pansy,” groaned Colonel Falconer. “Oh, my little
-love, are you quite sure you will never regret
-this&mdash;never wish for Norman Wylde and your
-lost happiness?”</p>
-
-<p>Clasping her slender white hands tenderly
-around his arm, and lifting her sad white face,
-with all a woman’s tenderness shining out of her
-soulful eyes, she replied earnestly:</p>
-
-<p>“The happiness you speak of could not be mine,
-for if I left you for Norman the thought of you
-would always sadden me so that I should suffer
-from remorse and anxiety. I love you, though
-not with the wild passion I felt for my first love.
-But this deep, steady affection, born of admiration
-for your manliness and your many virtues, is
-so strong that it would divide the allegiance I
-should owe to Norman. You would be ever in
-my thoughts, for you need me so much, and
-would miss me so much, while he has long believed<span class="pagenum">[259]</span>
-me dead and could bear the shock of losing me
-better. Therefore, if you will help me about the
-divorce, I will be your wife again as soon as
-possible.”</p>
-
-<p>“I will send the most clever lawyer in New
-York to you, Pansy, and you can commit your
-case to him. Bless you for your noble decision!
-I did not dare hope for such a sacrifice on your
-part, but I love you so well that I have not courage
-to refuse it.”</p>
-
-<p>She bowed her head in silence, and he continued:</p>
-
-<p>“Of course you understand, darling, that I
-must leave you to-day and remain away from
-you until the divorce is procured. Do you wish
-to remain here quietly with Phebe, Charles, and
-the other servants, or have you any other plans?”</p>
-
-<p>She was silent a few moments, then she answered:</p>
-
-<p>“I will remain here.”</p>
-
-<p>He left the mountains for New York City that
-day, and on the next she was visited by an eminent
-lawyer, who took her case in hand, and assured
-her that he believed there would be no difficulty
-in securing a divorce.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[260]</span></p>
-
-<p>When he had gone she fell sobbing on the floor
-of her chamber, crying out:</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, my lost love, my lost love!”</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Falconer wrote her in a few days, saying
-that he would go to White Sulphur Springs,
-to try to make some arrangements for the future
-of Juliette Ives.</p>
-
-<p>“I shall never care for her in the same fashion
-as I did before I learned her treachery to you and
-Norman Wylde,” he wrote. “But she has no
-living relative but me, and she is dependent on me
-for support, and, for her mother’s sake, I will not
-shirk the responsibility.”</p>
-
-<p>He found his pretty niece cool, impudent, defiant.
-She utterly denied her complicity in Mr.
-Finley’s crime.</p>
-
-<p>“I did not even know the man. Never saw him
-in my life!” she affirmed.</p>
-
-<p>He was staggered by her effrontery and
-scarcely knew what to say, and she went on
-eagerly:</p>
-
-<p>“Dear uncle, please tell me the truth: You have
-found out at last that your wife is really Pansy
-Laurens, have you not?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[261]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Nonsense!” he answered sharply; and she
-opened wide her pale-blue eyes, exclaiming:</p>
-
-<p>“Is it possible she can still deny it, after finding
-out that she was really Norman’s wife? Ah, I
-see it all now! She will stay with you because
-you are rich and her legal husband is poor.”</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Falconer’s eyes flashed wrathfully.</p>
-
-<p>“Beware, Juliette, how you try me too far!
-Remember that you are helpless and penniless,
-except for my bounty!”</p>
-
-<p>“And because I will not cringe and fawn upon
-the lowbred creature you have made your wife,
-although, unfortunately, the tie is not a legal one,
-you threaten to deprive me of the pittance sufficient
-for my support! Very well, I can go and
-work in Arnell &amp; Grey’s tobacco factory. You
-will not consider it a disgrace for your niece to
-work there, as the woman you call your wife
-was an employee there for many years!” she
-burst out spitefully, her virago temper all aflame,
-and goading her to such rebellion that she actually
-shook her little jeweled fist in his face.</p>
-
-<p>She knew his good heart and generous nature
-so well that she believed she could defy him with
-impunity. He would not dare cast her helpless<span class="pagenum">[262]</span>
-on the world, no matter what she did to him or
-the wife he idolized.</p>
-
-<p>But her insults to Pansy had struck a fire of
-rage in his nature, and, while his face whitened
-with pain and his eyes gleamed with anger, he
-turned on her, and said sternly:</p>
-
-<p>“Since you are so willing to earn your own
-support, I wash my hands of a most unwelcome
-burden! Go into a tobacco factory as soon as you
-please, and I hope you may be industrious enough
-to retain a position there as long as Pansy Laurens
-did!”</p>
-
-<p>With those words, the offended gentleman
-stalked out of the presence of Juliette, who comprehended
-instantly that she had gone too far
-in her spiteful defiance, and that she must either
-humiliate herself by apologizing or go to work,
-as she had threatened, to earn her own living.</p>
-
-<p>It did not take her a minute to decide which
-of these alternatives to choose, and as soon as
-the door banged to behind the irate colonel she
-jerked it open and flew swiftly down the corridor,
-arresting his quick footsteps by clasping both
-hands around his arm.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, uncle, dear uncle, come back and forgive<span class="pagenum">[263]</span>
-me! I am sorry I wounded your feelings. I did
-not mean it; but every one had deserted me, and
-I felt so miserable!” she panted eagerly, as she
-clung to his arm.</p>
-
-<p>He stopped short and looked suspiciously into
-her false face.</p>
-
-<p>“Where is Mrs. Wylde?” he asked.</p>
-
-<p>“Come back, and I will tell you. We might be
-overheard here,” she replied, looking uneasily
-down the length of the broad hotel corridor, and
-very unwillingly he accompanied her back to her
-room. Then she said:</p>
-
-<p>“Mrs. Wylde and Rosalind have gone back to
-Richmond, and I am here alone with my maid.”</p>
-
-<p>“She promised to chaperon you,” he said,
-frowning.</p>
-
-<p>“I know,” whimpered Juliette; “but we quarreled
-dreadfully. They&mdash;they actually believed
-that man Finley’s falsehood about me, although
-I denied it bitterly. The truth is that they are
-the ones in fault, for they sent Norman off to
-London on a false scent, just to break up his love
-affair; but now they have the meanness to say
-that they would never have sent him if they had
-known he was actually married to the girl,”<span class="pagenum">[264]</span>
-panted Juliette angrily, adding: “So we had a
-bitter quarrel when they refused to believe my
-story. And Mrs. Wylde said she hoped you
-would take me from under her care soon, as she
-was tired of chaperoning a girl who had brought
-such trouble on her poor son. I told her I would
-never speak to her again, so then she and Rosalind
-packed up and went back, as Judge Wylde
-had telegraphed for them. She sent me a note,
-asking if I cared to go back with them, and I
-declined. But they set every one against me. I
-am so stared at and snubbed by people since Finley’s
-lies against me were published that I cannot
-bear to go outside my room,” concluded Juliette,
-going into hysterical sobs.</p>
-
-<p>“This is very bad. I do not know what I shall
-ever do with you, Juliette,” sighed the colonel, in
-dismay.</p>
-
-<p>“I shall go back to you, of course,” she sobbed.</p>
-
-<p>“No; that plan will not answer any longer. I
-can never have you again as a member of my
-family,” he replied firmly.</p>
-
-<p>She could scarcely resist the impulse to cry out
-against him with the sharpest reproaches, but
-wisely restrained herself, and presently he said:</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[265]</span></p>
-
-<p>“I will remain with you here for a week, Juliette,
-and in that time I will decide regarding
-your future.”</p>
-
-<p>That same day he wrote to Pansy and explained
-the situation to her, asking for her advice
-in the matter.</p>
-
-<p>When Pansy heard of the sad plight of the girl
-whose wickedness had wrought her so much woe
-she rejoiced at first, thinking that Juliette had
-met her just reward for her sin.</p>
-
-<p>Then kinder, more pitiful thoughts intervened,
-and at length she wrote to Colonel Falconer:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>Send Juliette here to me, and I will stand her friend
-if she will treat me with proper respect.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>He read those words to Juliette, who curled
-her lip, but did not refuse, for the contempt of
-all her old associates in her little social world had
-so cowed her that she was only too happy to accept
-Pansy’s offer.</p>
-
-<p>When they met again, Pansy said determinedly:</p>
-
-<p>“Miss Ives, there shall be no further concealments
-between us. I am Pansy Laurens, as you
-thought, but I am going to procure an immediate
-divorce from Norman Wylde, that I may be remarried<span class="pagenum">[266]</span>
-to your uncle, Colonel Falconer. Wait!”
-as Juliette was about to make an excited remonstrance.
-“It will be against your own interest
-to betray me, for your uncle’s will is made in my
-favor now, and if you go against me I will use
-my strong influence to have you sent adrift penniless.”</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[267]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XLI">CHAPTER XLI.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">A FALSE WITNESS.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Juliette Ives was walking along the mountain
-road just a few rods from the cottage, kicking up
-the dead leaves from the ground at every step,
-and frowning discontentedly.</p>
-
-<p>“It is almost two months since I came to this
-place, and it is as dreary as a prison. I hope we
-shall certainly get away this week, or I shall die
-of ennui,” she was muttering angrily to herself,
-when suddenly she came face to face with a man
-who was hurrying in the direction of the cottage&mdash;Norman
-Wylde.</p>
-
-<p>It was the first time he had seen Juliette since
-Finley’s sullen confession had convicted her of
-such a treacherous deed, and Norman’s brow
-grew dark at sight of the fair blond face, with its
-light-blue eyes, and pale golden tresses flying
-loosely in the wind under a picturesque little scarlet
-cap, for Juliette was always vain and coquettish,
-and even here in this secluded retreat, where
-she expected to see no one, paid particular attention
-to her personal appearance. But her charms<span class="pagenum">[268]</span>
-were all unheeded by Norman Wylde, who lifted
-his hat with grave courtesy, and was about to
-pass by when she arrested him with a pleading
-cry:</p>
-
-<p>“Norman&mdash;Mr. Wylde!”</p>
-
-<p>He paused, but with an impatient gesture, and,
-coming close up to him, she said eagerly:</p>
-
-<p>“I cannot let pass this opportunity of clearing
-myself from the foul imputation cast upon me by
-that wicked wretch, Finley. Oh, Norman, I swear
-to you that I had nothing to do with his sin! I
-did not even know the man.”</p>
-
-<p>She never forgot how handsome and how
-scornful her lost lover looked as he fixed his splendid,
-piercing black eyes on her false face. Regarding
-her with supreme contempt, he answered:</p>
-
-<p>“Unfortunately for your denial, Miss Ives, Finley
-had written proofs in his possession that
-proved your guilt clearly.”</p>
-
-<p>“I deny it in spite of all his proofs,” she cried
-desperately, but, smiling scornfully still, he answered:</p>
-
-<p>“As you please, Miss Ives; but permit me to
-pass. I am anxious to meet my wife!”</p>
-
-<p>“You have no wife!” she exclaimed, with such<span class="pagenum">[269]</span>
-spiteful yet earnest emphasis that he paused
-again, and said:</p>
-
-<p>“Deny it as you will; but I have proved to the
-world’s satisfaction that Pansy Laurens is my
-wife, and a week ago, when Mr. Finley recovered
-from the long stupor and loss of memory that followed
-upon his fall, he told me my wife still lived,
-in the person of Mrs. Falconer. I wondered why
-she had not come at once to me on learning that
-she was truly my wife. But, guessing that it
-was owing to her sensitive, retiring nature, I set
-myself to work to learn her whereabouts. I
-learned that she had separated from Colonel Falconer,
-and was living here in strict retirement.
-I hurried here at once.”</p>
-
-<p>“In spite of all that, I repeat my assertion: You
-have no wife!” answered Juliette, with savage
-emphasis and barbarous delight in the torture she
-was inflicting on his heart.</p>
-
-<p>“My Heaven!” he cried, shuddering. “You do
-not mean to tell me that Pansy is dead!”</p>
-
-<p>“No; it is worse than that.” She paused a
-moment, watching him keenly, the better to enjoy
-her triumph, then added: “She has procured a
-divorce from you.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[270]</span></p>
-
-<p>Then she shrank in spite of herself, for the
-rage and despair on that darkly handsome face
-frightened her, defiant as she was, and his voice
-seemed to breathe menace as he shouted hoarsely:</p>
-
-<p>“It is false! False as your treacherous heart,
-Juliette Ives!” And, with the words, he rushed
-madly from her toward the cottage, wild to know
-the truth from Pansy’s own beautiful lips.</p>
-
-<p>Juliette followed slowly after, with a white face
-of wrath and envy, for she well knew that, though
-Pansy was lost to Norman forever, he would
-never love another.</p>
-
-<p>Phebe went up to her mistress with a message
-from Mr. Wylde, and, after a long interval, returned
-with a brief, ambiguous note:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>I refuse to see you. I received my decree of divorce
-this morning, and to-morrow I shall be married to Colonel
-Falconer. Forgive me, Norman, for I have acted for the
-best as far as I could see my duty. Let our child comfort
-you. Love him, and make up to him for his mother’s
-loss. I go abroad in a few days, never to return. Forget
-me if you can, and if not, remember me with pity. Farewell
-forever, and may Heaven bless you!</p>
-
-<p class="ir2 pminus1"><span class="smcap">Pansy.</span></p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Crushing the perfumed sheet in his hand, he
-staggered across the doorway with a face like a
-corpse. A white hand fluttered down on his coat<span class="pagenum">[271]</span>
-sleeve, and tender blue eyes gazed into his agonized
-face.</p>
-
-<p>“You see now!” said Juliette triumphantly.
-“She was like the majority of women. She cared
-more for Colonel Falconer’s money than for her
-husband’s love! Oh, Norman,” her voice sank
-into a low, pleading cadence, “will you not forget
-her now and make up our wretched quarrel? Remember,
-we loved each other before you ever saw
-her face!”</p>
-
-<p>“I never loved you&mdash;never! And for the misery
-your sin has brought me I curse you!” he answered.
-“I have lost her, but it was through
-your treachery at the beginning that she was
-forced into a position where her noble nature
-made her sacrifice herself and me to a mistaken
-sense of duty. Ah, I understand her generous
-soul! Do not prate to me of gold. She cared
-nothing for that, but, in her pity for him, she
-has broken both her heart and mine.” And,
-throwing off her touch as though it were a serpent’s
-coil, he rushed away.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[272]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XLII">CHAPTER XLII.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">REMARRIED.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>In a short time the words were spoken that
-made Pansy Laurens for a second time a wife,
-and, though it was like a deathblow to her happiness,
-she bore herself with proud calmness that
-the good man by her side should have no cause
-to suspect that she had sacrificed herself for his
-sake.</p>
-
-<p>In a few days more they went abroad, taking
-Juliette with them, as also the valet and the two
-maids. Several months were spent in Italy, then
-when winter was past they traveled for several
-months. When autumn came round again Colonel
-Falconer began to think of purchasing a home
-and settling down in the land of his adoption.</p>
-
-<p>Juliette was behaving herself quite well; that
-is to say, she was treating her uncle’s wife with
-a show of respect, though hating her as bitterly
-as ever in her secret heart.</p>
-
-<p>At times she complained to her uncle that she
-did not wish to remain always abroad, but he had<span class="pagenum">[273]</span>
-only to remind her of the snubbing she had received
-from her friends at home to reduce her to
-instant silence and submission.</p>
-
-<p>At such times she would recall the Wyldes with
-bitter chagrin, and she made up her mind that
-she would marry a title if she could possibly
-compass it, and then go to Virginia to spend her
-honeymoon, in order to mortify those of her old
-friends who had dared to disapprove of her because
-of the revenge she had taken on her rival,
-the poor working girl, Pansy Laurens.</p>
-
-<p>She was anxious to get away from the guardianship
-of her uncle and his wife. To live always
-with the rival who had triumphed over her,
-and to have those triumphs renewed daily&mdash;for
-Pansy had been a decided success wherever she
-had appeared in society, and the society journals
-always mentioned them as “Colonel Falconer’s
-beautiful bride, and his pretty niece, Miss Ives”&mdash;was
-too bitter to her pride.</p>
-
-<p>“I am tired of it all! I have eaten humble pie
-till I loathe the taste,” Juliette muttered discontentedly;
-and when at last old Sir John Crowley,
-who was as yellow as a pumpkin, having spent
-the best years of his life in India before succeeding<span class="pagenum">[274]</span>
-to a baronetcy, proposed marriage to her,
-she accepted him joyfully.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, Juliette, that old man! Why, he is past
-sixty, and yellow and ugly and cross!” Pansy
-cried, in dismay; but Juliette tossed her head, and
-answered:</p>
-
-<p>“You married an old man for his money, and
-I’m going to marry one for a title and money,
-too, that’s all!”</p>
-
-<p>“But I have heard that he isn’t rich&mdash;that the
-title is almost a barren honor. He has nothing
-but a small estate in Cornwall. You will have
-to nurse him half your time, as he is in poor
-health.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t care, and I wish you would mind your
-own business! Uncle has promised me a marriage
-portion, anyhow, and that shall be strictly
-settled on myself. Sir John is so much in love
-with me that he’ll agree to anything,” Juliette retorted.
-But events proved differently. Sir John
-would not agree to the proposition, and so Juliette,
-in a huff, declared the match off, vowing
-that the baronet was a wretched old fortune
-hunter.</p>
-
-<p>Following hard upon the breaking of this engagement,<span class="pagenum">[275]</span>
-which occurred in the second winter
-after Pansy’s remarriage to Colonel Falconer,
-came a very sad event.</p>
-
-<p>A beautiful villa at Florence had been purchased,
-and the small family had settled down
-there for the winter. It was a very pleasant
-neighborhood, and one evening they were entertaining
-a small party of friends, when the colonel
-suddenly complained of severe pains, and a
-physician was at once summoned to his side. But
-medical skill proved vain, for within an hour he
-died, as Juliette’s mother had died, of heart failure.</p>
-
-<p>He comprehended that the end was near, for,
-between the paroxysms of pain, he whispered to
-Pansy:</p>
-
-<p>“You have made this past year very happy, my
-darling. I have never had cause to believe that
-you cherished a single regret.”</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[276]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XLIII">CHAPTER XLIII.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">A LOVELY WIDOW.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>“I suppose you will go home now and marry
-Norman Wylde!” cried Juliette spitefully.</p>
-
-<p>It was almost immediately after the funeral,
-and the sad young widow turned a shocked face
-upon the heartless speaker.</p>
-
-<p>“Juliette, how can you be so cruel? Do you
-think I do not grieve for my noble husband?”
-she exclaimed.</p>
-
-<p>“Norman Wylde could comfort you very easily
-in your grief,” was the unfeeling reply that sent
-Pansy from the room in bitter tears.</p>
-
-<p>Juliette was the trial of Pansy’s daily life. She
-had tried all in vain to overcome the girl’s jealous
-dislike of her, but it seemed a hopeless task, and
-she longed for the time to come when she would
-marry and leave her in peace.</p>
-
-<p>“I believe she would murder me if she thought
-she could do so without being discovered,” she
-thought sometimes fearfully.</p>
-
-<p>She did not dream that her patient endurance
-of her dreadful incubus and her never-failing<span class="pagenum">[277]</span>
-goodness had all along been having their effect
-on Juliette, although she struggled bitterly against
-that saving influence.</p>
-
-<p>Just now she felt more bitter than usual, for,
-in addition to the fact that she believed that
-Pansy and Norman would be reunited in a few
-weeks, she had found out that her uncle’s will
-was made solely in his wife’s favor, with the exception
-of a legacy to his niece, the amount of
-which was to be decided by Pansy.</p>
-
-<p>The next time Juliette saw Pansy she began
-to tease her about the will.</p>
-
-<p>“It was a shame for uncle to treat me so shabbily.
-He might have known you would put me
-off with just a few hundreds!” she cried spitefully.</p>
-
-<p>Pansy sighed at Juliette’s unrelenting hate, and
-answered patiently:</p>
-
-<p>“Colonel Falconer understood me better than
-you do, Juliette, or he would never have trusted
-your future to me. When his affairs are settled
-there will not be more than a hundred thousand
-dollars left, as he made several investments lately
-that resulted disastrously. But of that hundred
-thousand I shall give you fifty thousand.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[278]</span></p>
-
-<p>“You do not mean it!” Juliette cried incredulously.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” Pansy answered; and for a minute there
-was a silence, which the young widow broke in a
-tremulous, pleading voice.</p>
-
-<p>“Perhaps,” she said, “when this money is settled
-on you, Juliette, it will please you best to
-leave me, and make a home for yourself elsewhere?”</p>
-
-<p>“You want me to go away&mdash;you are tired of
-me!” Juliette cried, in a high, resentful key; and
-then Pansy lifted her head and looked at her with
-those sad pansy-blue eyes, in which tears of grief
-were standing thickly.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, Juliette,” she sobbed, “I&mdash;I&mdash;only want
-peace, and you make my life so dreary and unhappy
-with your unrelenting hate!”</p>
-
-<p>Juliette did not answer. She gave a choking
-gasp and rushed from the room.</p>
-
-<p>Pansy saw her no more for several hours; then
-she entered her boudoir with a pale face and very
-red eyes, and said humbly:</p>
-
-<p>“Pansy, please do not ask me to leave you! I
-love you&mdash;yes, love you, in spite of all my wickedness.
-Your goodness and sweetness have been<span class="pagenum">[279]</span>
-growing on me for years, although I tried to steel
-myself to their noble influence, and your words
-just now opened my eyes and showed me my
-heart. I repent all my wickedness toward you,
-and beg you to forgive me for my share in your
-unhappiness. Henceforth I will love you as
-dearly as my uncle loved you, and I will do all
-that I can to atone for my heartless behavior in
-the past.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, Juliette!” Pansy cried gladly. For it
-was an exquisite satisfaction to her to feel that
-she had conquered Juliette’s hate at last by her
-gentleness and patience.</p>
-
-<p>She accepted Juliette’s repentance by a gentle
-kiss on her white brow.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[280]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XLIV">CHAPTER XLIV.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">A MOTHER’S YEARNING.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>Pansy wrote to her mother of Colonel Falconer’s
-death, and in return received some unexpected
-news.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Finley, after he recovered from the long
-spell that had followed upon his fall and the injury
-to his head, had become more brutal and morose
-than ever, and made life with him very hard
-to bear. Finally he announced his intention of
-selling out all his property and going to California
-to invest the proceeds in real estate. He told his
-long-suffering wife that he was tired of her, and
-did not propose to take her with him. She acquiesced
-very thankfully in this decision, and the
-brute had gone away several months before, and
-no more had been heard of him, much to her joy
-and relief, for she had long ago repented her unfortunate
-second marriage.</p>
-
-<p>Soon after Finley left, Willie had returned,
-and, to her surprise, he had been hard at work
-in New York, and brought back his savings. He<span class="pagenum">[281]</span>
-was bitterly repentant for his wicked deed, and
-would write to his sister and tell her how much
-he had suffered from remorse. Mrs. Finley added
-that she was going to help her son set up business
-for himself, that he might marry little Kate
-North, to whom he was now engaged, with the
-free consent of her parents.</p>
-
-<p>“Poor brother Willie! I am glad he is going
-to be so happy,” thought Pansy, without a shadow
-of anger against the hot-headed boy; and then
-she read on, and found that Alice and Nora were
-still at school in Staunton. They were learning
-fast, and sent much love to their sister, and
-grieved for the good brother-in-law who had been
-so generous to them all.</p>
-
-<p>“But why does she not say something about my
-boy, my little Pet, who, perhaps, has some other
-name, now that Norman knows he is his son?”
-thought Pansy impatiently; but on turning the
-next page she read these words:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>Judge Wylde died last week, and they say he left
-a pretty penny to his family, though I don’t think Norman
-needs it much, he’s getting rich so fast with his law
-business. He works so hard, they say, that he has no
-time for any one but his child. He has given it the name<span class="pagenum">[282]</span>
-of Charley for your poor, dead father, which I think
-was quite nice of him. I see the little fellow often, as
-the Wyldes are quite friendly with me; also that good
-Mrs. Meade, who says she was quite certain from the
-first that things would turn out as they have. I haven’t
-seen Norman since your husband died. I don’t know how
-he takes it, but I hope you and he will make it up some
-time, as it can’t do Colonel Falconer&mdash;poor, dear saint&mdash;any
-good for you to stay always a widow. But forgive
-me, dear daughter, for I know your sorrow is too deep for
-me to hint at such things yet.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>Pansy sat silent for a long time, brooding over
-those words, and her breast heaved with many
-hopeless sighs.</p>
-
-<p>“No one need ever think of that,” she thought
-mournfully. “Norman will never forgive me for
-what I did. He will think always that it was
-for Colonel Falconer’s money, not for pity’s
-sake.”</p>
-
-<p>And at thought of her little child, her beautiful
-Charley, out of whose love she had been
-tricked and cheated by her wicked stepfather,
-Pansy wept most bitterly and longingly.</p>
-
-<p>“Whether he ever forgives me or not, I must
-see my child sometimes,” she thought; but she determined
-that she would spend her year of mourning
-at the villa. Life was not so unhappy since<span class="pagenum">[283]</span>
-Juliette had repented her wickedness and fallen
-in love with her uncle’s wife. They had become
-fast friends, and Juliette now prayed earnestly
-that the time would come when Pansy would
-again be Norman’s wife.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p><span class="pagenum">[284]</span></p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="CHAPTER_XLV">CHAPTER XLV.
-<br /><span class="cheaderfont">SUPREME JOY.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>A year went slowly past, and found Pansy and
-Juliette still at the villa; but it was not likely that
-the latter would be there much longer, for she
-had lately made the acquaintance of a handsome
-young man, a rich New Yorker, who had wintered
-in Italy, and who had been so very much
-smitten with the charms of Miss Ives that he had
-proposed marriage on very short acquaintance,
-and had been accepted, for he was the first man
-who had ever touched her heart since she had lost
-Norman Wylde.</p>
-
-<p>In truth, Juliette was very much altered for
-the better. She had taken gentle Pansy for her
-model, and was fast becoming a changed and improved
-woman. Not content with owning her
-fault to Pansy, she had written to the Wyldes,
-mother and son, and confessed her folly and her
-repentance, declaring that she now loved Pansy
-as fondly as she had once hated her, and that her
-dearest wish now was for the happiness of the
-two she had injured so much.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[285]</span></p>
-
-<p>When Arthur Osborne first declared his love to
-Juliette she had a hard struggle with her pride,
-but before she gave him her answer she told him
-the whole story of her folly and sin and repentance.</p>
-
-<p>“If you had known this you would not have
-asked me to be your wife,” she said sadly.</p>
-
-<p>But she was mistaken, for he reiterated his
-offer, declaring that he admired her frankness
-and believed in her repentance.</p>
-
-<p>“I will help you to forget your bitter past,”
-he said; then Juliette gave him a blushing yes.</p>
-
-<p>The betrothal was a month old when, one day,
-as Pansy sat alone in the drawing-room of her
-beautiful home, some visitors were announced,
-and Mrs. Wylde, with her daughter and a beautiful
-little boy, entered the room.</p>
-
-<p>Pansy sprang up with a little startled cry, and
-was immediately half smothered in kisses and
-embraces from all three.</p>
-
-<p>“Forgive me for my share in your past unhappiness.
-I had never seen you, and believed you
-to be a coarse, ignorant girl, unsuited to my son
-in every way,” murmured Mrs. Wylde regretfully.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum">[286]</span></p>
-
-<p>“Let us forget the past,” answered the noble
-girl she had injured, as she drew her child to
-her breast, wondering, yet not daring to ask,
-about his father.</p>
-
-<p>Juliette came in presently, and they met her
-with the cordiality of old friends. Then she
-looked at Pansy.</p>
-
-<p>“Norman is here, too,” she said smilingly, “but
-I think he was doubtful of a welcome, and he
-stopped in the summerhouse. Will you meet him
-halfway, Pansy?”</p>
-
-<p>The blush that rose to her face betrayed her
-heart without words, and Mrs. Wylde said tenderly:</p>
-
-<p>“Go, dear; we will excuse you.”</p>
-
-<p>Juliette took her trembling hand and led her
-to the door. Then she kissed her fondly.</p>
-
-<p>“Bless you both, dear!” she said earnestly, and
-went back to the guests.</p>
-
-<p>But little Charley, now almost five years old,
-followed his newfound mother.</p>
-
-<p>Norman was waiting in the flower-wreathed
-summerhouse, and at one glance into each other’s
-eyes the two read each other’s heart.</p>
-
-<p>“You will not send me away again, my darling!”<span class="pagenum">[287]</span>
-he murmured, as he clasped her to his
-heart in passionate love.</p>
-
-<p>A few weeks sufficed for their second courtship.
-They were married on the same day with
-Arthur Osborne and Juliette Ives. Both the
-brides looked wonderfully beautiful, and both the
-bridegrooms handsome and happy.</p>
-
-<p>In the spring they all went back to America.
-Juliette’s home was to be in New York, but not
-the least of Pansy’s pleasures was the fact that
-she would spend the rest of her life among the
-dear friends and old familiar scenes of her beloved
-Richmond.</p>
-
-<p class="center smallfont p1">THE END.</p>
-
-<p class="p1">No. 1165 of the <span class="smcap">New Eagle Series</span>, entitled
-“His Unbounded Faith,” by Charlotte M. Stanley,
-is a fascinating story. The reader will sympathize
-with the heroine in the storms of hate
-and jealousy that rage around her, but they will
-breathe a sigh of relief when she finds a secure
-haven in her husband’s love and faith.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p class="center xxlargefont boldfont">Love Stories</p>
-
-<p>There is a great deal of difference between
-love stories and sex stories. There is something
-about <em>love</em> which commands respect and
-reverence.</p>
-
-<p>There is nothing about the sex story which
-commands either. Most decent-minded people
-are disgusted with the sort of literature
-that some publishers are putting out in the
-guise of truth.</p>
-
-<p>If you want to know what a really decent,
-clean, wholesome love story is, ask your dealer
-to sell you a copy of the <cite>Bertha Clay Library</cite>,
-or the <cite>Eagle Library</cite>.</p>
-
-<p>In these two series, you will find everything
-that is necessary in fiction to hold your
-interest, and a great deal that is preferable to
-the sort of stuff which is being put out under
-camouflage by certain publishers who are not
-very careful either about the way they make
-money or what they publish.</p>
-
-<p class="center largefont boldfont p1">STREET &amp; SMITH CORPORATION<br />
-<span class="largefont">79 Seventh Avenue</span> <span style="padding-left:2em">New York City</span></p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="tb x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<div class="center">
-<p class="xlargefont boldfont displayinline"><em>Adventure Stories</em><br />
-<em>Detective Stories</em><br />
-<em>Western Stories</em><br />
-<em>Love Stories</em><br />
-<em>Sea Stories</em></p>
-</div>
-
-<p>All classes of fiction are to be found among
-the Street &amp; Smith novels. Our line contains
-reading matter for every one, irrespective of age
-or preference.</p>
-
-<p>The person who has only a moderate sum
-to spend on reading matter will find this line
-a veritable gold mine.</p>
-
-<p class="center p1 boldfont">STREET &amp; SMITH CORPORATION,<br />
-79 Seventh Avenue,<br />
-New York, N. Y.
-</p></div>
-
-<hr class="tb x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<div class="transnote">
-<h2 id="TN_end" style="margin-top: 0em">Transcriber’s Notes:</h2>
-
-<p>Punctuation has been made consistent.</p>
-
-<p>Variations in spelling and hyphenation were retained as they appear in
-the original publication, except that obvious typographical errors
-have been corrected.</p>
-
-<p>The following change was made:</p>
-
-<p><a id="BRef_118" href="#Ref_118">p. 118</a>: illegible words at the end of the page were assumed to be “so
-that I” (long drive to-day so that I)</p>
-</div></div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin-top:4em'>*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK LOVE CONQUERS PRIDE ***</div>
-<div style='text-align:left'>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Updated editions will replace the previous one&#8212;the old editions will
-be renamed.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG&#8482;
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away&#8212;you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin-top:1em; font-size:1.1em; text-align:center'>START: FULL LICENSE</div>
-<div style='text-align:center;font-size:0.9em'>THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE</div>
-<div style='text-align:center;font-size:0.9em'>PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-To protect the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221;), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person
-or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.B. &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (&#8220;the
-Foundation&#8221; or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg&#8482; work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work (any work
-on which the phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; appears, or with which the
-phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
- <div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
- other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
- whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
- of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
- at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
- are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws
- of the country where you are located before using this eBook.
- </div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221; associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg&#8482; License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg&#8482;.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; License.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work in a format
-other than &#8220;Plain Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg&#8482; website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original &#8220;Plain
-Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg&#8482; works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-provided that:
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin-left:0.7em;'>
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, &#8220;Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation.&#8221;
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- works.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works.
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain &#8220;Defects,&#8221; such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the &#8220;Right
-of Replacement or Refund&#8221; described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you &#8216;AS-IS&#8217;, WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg&#8482;&#8217;s
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg&#8482; collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg&#8482; and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation&#8217;s EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state&#8217;s laws.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation&#8217;s business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation&#8217;s website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; depends upon and cannot survive without widespread
-public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state
-visit <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org/donate/">www.gutenberg.org/donate</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg&#8482;,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-</div>
-
-</div>
-</body>
-</html>
diff --git a/old/67869-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/67869-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index df3676d..0000000
--- a/old/67869-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67869-h/images/cover_illo.jpg b/old/67869-h/images/cover_illo.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index fc46e93..0000000
--- a/old/67869-h/images/cover_illo.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67869-h/images/i005.jpg b/old/67869-h/images/i005.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 8193d5a..0000000
--- a/old/67869-h/images/i005.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/67869-h/images/publishers_icon.jpg b/old/67869-h/images/publishers_icon.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index d90b39a..0000000
--- a/old/67869-h/images/publishers_icon.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ